357 6 42MB
English Pages 0 [312] Year 1991
Michael
J.
Cunningham
BRITISH
GOVERNMENT POLICY IN
NORTHERN IRELAND 1969-89
NATURE AND EXECUTION ITS
,
c/.:. i
JN
A
Digitized by the Internet Archive in
2012
http://archive.org/details/britishgovernmenOOcunn
Hz w%$
DA
'
government policy Northern Ireland 1969-89
British in
SAN
fL*
,
CA
94108
government policy Northern Ireland
British in
1969-89 Its
nature and execution
MichaelJ. Cunningham
Manchester University Press Manchester and
New York
Distributed exclusively in the
USA and Canada by St. Martin
's
Press
Copyright
© Michael
Cunningham 1991
J.
Published by Manchester University Press
Oxford Road, Manchester
and Room 400, 175
New York, NY
Fifth
10010,
M13
9PL,
UK
Avenue,
USA USA and Canada
Distributed exclusively in the
by St. Martin's Press, Inc.,
175 Fifth Avenue,
New York, NY
10010,
USA
British Library cataloguing in publication data
Cunningham, Michael British
1969-1989: I.
J.
government policy Its
in
Northern Ireland
nature and execution.
Title
320.941
Library of Congress cataloging in publication data
Cunningham, Michael J., 1959British
government policy
in
Northern Ireland
1
969-89
:
its
nature
and execution / Michael J. Cunningham. p.
cm.
Includes bibliographical references and index.
ISBN 0-7190-2568-0 1
.
Northern Ireland
DA990.U4BC86
—
Politics
— 1969-
and government
Title.
90-25518
320.9416—dc20
ISBN
I.
1991
7190 2568 Q hardback
Phototypeset in Great Britain
by Northern Phototypesetting
Co
Printed in Great Britain
by Billings Limited, Worcester
Ltd, Bolton
1
Contents
Preface
vi
Acknowledgements
vii
page 1
Introduction:
The
division of responsibility
between
the British
government and Stormont
1
2
The Labour
3
The
4
The Labour administrations 1974-79
5
The
Conservative administration 1979-83
6
The
Conservative administration: 1983 to the Anglo-Irish
administration 1969-70
23
Conservative administration 1970-74
40 90 141
Agreement 7
8
The
172
Conservative administration:
The
Anglo-Irish Agreement to
1989
193
Conclusion
239
Appendix A: Principal
legislation
1969-89
Appendix B: Principal constitutional Appendix C: Principal security
initiatives
legislation
255
and party positions
and party positions
Appendix D: Northern Ireland Office Ministers Appendix E:
Anglo-Irish Intergovernmental meetings 1985-89
260 26
265
267
Bibliography
270
Index
287
Preface
In view of the proliferation of academic and journalistic texts concerning the Northern Ireland 'problem' which Harvey Cox has termed the 'Factory of Books' 1 The aim of this book is to it perhaps beholdens an author to justify another. provide a comprehensive and relatively dispassionate account of the legislative and institutional initiatives of the British government over the last twenty years.
This is not to make false claims of objectivity. The process of selection of facts and events in itself precludes this and any reader would be rightly suspicious of a writer claiming objectivity in so politically contentious an issue. However it is hoped that the substantive chapters will act as a source of reference for students and others wishing to find details of the major initiatives produced by successive British governments.
Each chapter deals with four policy areas; constitutional, security, economic and social. This is not an arbitrary selection but done for two principal reasons. Successive governments have argued that a policy focusing on only one strand is 2 inadequate and that a multi-dimensional approach is required. Therefore it is both necessary and instructive to examine these areas. Also, much of the existing literature focuses on one particular facet and it is thus a useful exercise to provide an overview of the different areas of policy. Policy implementation is presented chronologically by administration and the conclusion considers the questions of the degree of continuity in government policy and the significance of the party in power and bipartisanship. As a disclaimer it should be emphasised that the focus is on British government policy. The influence of the permanent administration, internal developments in Northern Ireland and the role of the Irish Republic are,
of course, important but these are not treated in
detail.
Notes 1
Cox
2
See the
1989. third section of the conclusion for a consideration of this aspect of policy.
Acknowledgements
My
principal thanks are due to Peter Mair of Manchester University and to David Coates of Leeds University. Thanks also to those who offered advice, provided information or read drafts including Martin Burch, Michael Connolly,
Mick Moran,
Bill Rolston, Stephen Young, the Northern Ireland Office and the For illuminating discussions on Irish issues I owe much to Paul Dixon, Richard Kelly, Christopher Norton and Sheina Orbell.
interviewees.
Introduction:
The
division of
between the British government and Stormont
responsibility
The initial settlement
To assess the impact of and reasons for renewed British involvement in Northern Ireland affairs in 1969 it is necessary to sketch the pre-existing responsibilities of Westminster in the principal policy areas with which this book will be concerned: constitutional, security, economic and social. Neither a detailed examination of policy implementation
under Stormont nor an assessment of the
devolution as a constitutional settlement will be attempted.
1
The
suitability
of
focus will be on
those elements which tended to insulate Westminster from Northern Ireland affairs as indicative
The
of the possible problems of later reinvolvement.
between Northern Ireland and Britain which was enshrined in the Government of Ireland Act 1920, which was the conclusion of years of legislative initiatives which had attempted to forge a new relationship between Ireland (i.e. all thirty-two counties) and Britain. The three Home Rule Bills of 1885, 1893 and 1912 were intended to establish legislative and administrative devolution for all Ireland within the Union. The third Bill had been passed in 1 9 1 4 but was suspended with the outbreak of the First World War. An attempt at a post-war settlement followed a complex of events which will not be traced here but the political imperatives of an increasingly militant Irish nationalism, evidenced by Sinn Fein's capture of seventy-three seats in the general election of 1918, and the parallel militancy of Unionist opposition to Home Rule symbolised by the signing of the Solemn League and Covenant in 1912 had made an all-Ireland settlement
was
constitutional relationship
to prevail for fifty years
increasingly untenable.
The outcome that
it
for the
Westminster government
in
1920 was advantageous
in
allowed, at least in the short term, a disengagement from Ireland without
jeopardising the imperial link or affecting the security of Britain which might
have resulted tion, that 'Irish
if control
of the Atlantic seaboard had been
lost.
of maintaining Cabinet and parliamentary unity at
Question'
(a
A third considera-
home
in face of the
recurring theme in later years) was also satisfied by the 1920
2
British
government policy in Northern Ireland 1 96 9—89
Act and the 1921 Treaty. Although acting within the parameters of self-interest, most commentators see Britain making 'the best of a bad job' as partition was a solution reflecting internal political divisions in Ireland.
The 1920 Act established bicameral parliamentary institutions for Northern and Southern Ireland with provision for their eventual unification. As a possible inducement towards this end a Council of Ireland was to be established with residual powers which could be supplemented following agreement between the two projected parliaments. The council was stillborn, being formally wound up in 1925, as southern representatives refused to recognise the settlement and relations between north and south deteriorated. In December 1921 the Anglo-Irish Treaty established the Free State as a dominion within the Empire with formal authority over all Ireland. The Northern Ireland government was given the right to opt out of the agreement and retain Northern Ireland's status under the 1920 Act, which it promptly exercised. The Irish Free State (Consequential Provisions) Act 1922 codified the relationship between the Free State and Britain and a Boundary Commission was established following the Treaty to consider possible amendments to the border. Northern Ireland refused to appoint a representative and that of the Free State later resigned following speculation that the Commission would cede parts of the Free State to the north as well as vice versa. The Commission's report was never published, and the 1920 settlement of a six-county Northern Ireland was left unaltered. A principal purpose of the 1920 Act was to establish the division of responsibility between the imperial government and that of Northern Ireland. In constitutional theory, if not political practice, Section 75 was the most significant. It reserved the sovereign right of Westminster to legislate on any matter and thus the concept of a federal relationship was ruled out although some commentators have seen the de facto relationship which developed as approximating to a federal one.
3
The
Section states:
Notwithstanding the establishment of the Parliaments of Southern and Northern Ireland ... the
supreme authority of the Parliament of the United Kingdom shall remain all persons, matters and things in Ireland and every part
unaffected and undiminished over thereof.
The
significance of Section 75
indivisibility
theory,
it
is
that although
it
clearly
demonstrated the
of parliamentary sovereignty as a factor in British constitutional
did not allow for adequate checks on Stormont, short of abolition.
There was no machinery Northern Ireland
for detailed parliamentary or executive scrutiny
affairs; unlike
State for Northern Ireland answerable to Westminster and
Committee was
established.
As
far as there
was any
no Northern Ireland Westminster
link with
administration Northern Ireland was the responsibility of the
was relegated
to the general
representative of the
of
Scotland and Wales there was no Secretary of
department.
Home
The Governor of Northern
Office but
Ireland, the
Crown whose duties included the power to veto legislation if
Introduction: the British government
it
was considered
ultra
vires,
and Stormont
was
a
possible
3
safeguard against Stormont
encroaching upon Westminster's areas of responsibility or passing legislation
which contravened Section 5 which prohibited laws interfering with religious liberty or equality. It was in relation to the possible discriminatory effect of the
government elections in 1922 was abolished in 1929) that the only major constitutional conflict arose and the royal assent was delayed. Political considerations were to win out over concern for the minority: Westminster appreciated that if Craig, the Northern Ireland Prime Minister, resigned over the issue of Stormont's competence in this field, the Unionist Party would be returned in a subsequent election and continued British resolve could result in direct rule which Lloyd George had deliberately tried to avoid in 4 the 1920 settlement. The principal judicial as opposed to constitutional check was contained in Section 51 which allowed any Northern Ireland Bill or Act to be referred by the British Home Secretary or the Governor of Northern Ireland to the Judicial Committee of the Northern Ireland Privy Council for a decision on its validity. In practice this was of little significance. Stormont was careful not to risk interference from Westminster by legislating in areas reserved for the latter; Westminster in turn did not encourage the courts to adjudicate on the constituabolition of proportional representation for local
(proportional representation for general elections
tional relationship.
The
was of three categories. Areas 'excepted' were it was considered should be retained by the sovereign parliament. These included the control of and disposal of the armed forces, the issuing of coinage, the regulation and control of external trade and control of all major sources of revenue including income tax, surtax and custom and excise duties. The second and intermediate category was that of 'reserved' responsibilities; these were powers not within the competence of the northern parliament but which, under the provisions of the 1920 Act, could be granted to an all-Ireland Assembly if the southern and northern parliaments so agreed. These included the Supreme Court of Northern Ireland, postal services, the registration of deeds and control of the banking system. As the all-Ireland Assembly never materialised these areas were retained by Westminster and under Section 23 of the 1920 Act the imperial government deducted from division of responsibility
those outside Stormont's remit which
reserved taxation the cost of maintaining reserved services.
The
was that of 'transferred' matters for which the Northern had legislative and administrative competence; perhaps the most significant of these given the divisions in Northern Ireland were the transfer of electoral arrangements, surviving the challenge of 1922, and the responsibility for law, order and internal security. These were to be under the control of the Minister of Home Affairs, which was one of six ministries, apart from that of Prime Minister, created to administer devolved or transferred matters. The others were Finance, Labour, Commerce, Education and third category
Ireland parliament
4
British
government policy
in
Northern Ireland 1 969-89
Agriculture. Therefore, in theory, the Stormont government was to have considerable
autonomy
in the
development of social and economic
policy.
detailing the evolution of policy in the period of devolved government,
Without
should be noted that the majority of commentators argue that Stormont did not introduce radically different social and economic policies from the rest of the United it
Birrell and Murie (1980) claim that the degree of divergence from British practice and the importance of local innovation was greater than has 5 frequently been argued. Buckland (1979) argues that both the parochialism of local authorities in Northern Ireland, acting as an internal constraint, and the position of financial dependence on the United Kingdom as a whole prevented Stormont from pursuing policies which were adequate to tackle social and economic problems which Northern Ireland suffered to a greater extent than Britain: for example relatively higher levels of unemployment and poor standards of housing. A third factor was the ideology of the Ulster Unionist Party which was generally opposed to adopting interventionist policies in the social and economic
Kingdom, although
spheres.
With respect to relations with Westminster, the principal constraint on social and economic policy developments tailored to Northern Ireland requirements was the financial arrangements concerning public expenditure. Under the 1920 Act, an Exchequer Board, composed of the Northern Ireland Minister of Finance, a Treasury official and a chairman, had been established to determine how much reserved and transferred revenue should be allocated to Northern Ireland as its share on a pro rata basis and how much Northern Ireland should pay as the 'imperial contribution' to help fund excepted services from which it benefited.
The original financial agreement soon ran into difficulty as it became
apparent
Northern Ireland could not maintain the imperial contribution which had been set and provide transferred social provisions, especially unemployment that
benefits, at a level
the
same
Great
it
comparable with those
became
Britain.) In
mittee) reported
in
Great Britain. (As taxation levels were
established that cash social services should
match those
1925 a Special Arbitration Committee (the Colwyn
its
in
Com-
considerations on the financial relationship and recom-
mended that domestic expenditure, rather than the imperial contribution, should have prior claim on the Stormont budget. Gradually as pressure on public expenditure increased, largely as a result of a rise in unemployment, the imperial contribution dropped to a residual
of the Exchequer issued a
amount
in the 1930s. In
1938 the Chancellor
new financial guideline which provided
that any deficit
incurred in Northern Ireland expenditure in the adherence to parity in the provision of services would be financed by the Treasury thereby avoiding an
unbalanced Northern Ireland budget. The concept of parity was further refined in 1955 when the Joint Exchequer Board laid down four principles governing the concept: parity of cash social services; a general parity of standards between
Northern Ireland and other depressed regions of the United Kingdom; allocation
Introduction: the British government
and Stormont
5
of additional expenditure to offset Northern Ireland's economic disadvantages;
make up
the gap in housing and educational standards. was both more complex and less well-defined than outlined above. As well as the formal rules there were also ad hoc arrangements between the Northern Ireland Ministry of Finance and the Treasury as it became clear that the 1920 formulation was being undermined by Northern Ireland's economic difficulties. The relationship also caused friction within Northern Ireland between those who had not only different ideological perspectives on public expenditure but also diverged on the degree of Northern Ireland's responsibility to imperial interests as opposed to the interests of Northern Ireland 6 itself when the two were in competition for resources. This conflict was perhaps exacerbated because the 1920 Act had circumscribed Northern Ireland's financial autonomy; transferred revenue only accounted for between 10% and 20% of public expenditure in Northern Ireland. Therefore, unless Northern Ireland introduced new taxes or increased existing ones, which would have been politically unpopular and a breach of the parity principle, its fiscal flexibility was
and special payments
The
to
financial relationship
limited.
However,
as Birrell
and Murie (1980) and
Birrell (1972) point out, there are
two factors which did allow the development of regional variations in social of the Treasury, Westminster did not on the distributive side. Therefore, priorities in expenditure between sectors (and between regions and social groups which gave rise to accusations of discrimination) were decided by Stormont: 'it is doubtful whether the Treasury's overall financial power was a significant restriction on Stormont's freedom to 7 distribute its financial resources'. Thus, although developments in social policy often followed Westminster legislation in step-by-step fashion, areas such as education, health services and housing did develop distinctive structures, with most divergence being in the first category. Secondly, expenditure was decided at 8 official level rather than at parliamentary level and Birrell and Murie (1980) imply that the Treasury was fairly susceptible to pressure over special payments and adopted a laissez-faire attitude. In the post-war period Northern Ireland developed a more vigorous regional policy than the rest of the United Kingdom, managing to attract substantial overseas investment and achieving a higher rate of 9 growth than Great Britain in the 1960s. A devolved administration was of some benefit but the lack of fiscal autonomy and inability to control all the machinery of economic policy, for example exchange rates, limited the scope of Stormont's
policy. Firstly, despite the financial control
interfere
policy innovation.
The fundamental
question here
is
not whether Stormont did or did not take
advantage of such opportunities as were offered;
it is
that of the relationship with
Westminster. Although the Treasury-Northern Ireland relationship would not
be
static
given the change in economic conditions of both Northern Ireland and
Britain over the fifty-year period
and the evolving ideas concerning the para-
meters of state intervention, a general position would be that Westminster was
6
British
not to allow Northern Ireland
government policy
in
Northern Ireland 1 969-89
much independent revenue-raising power but did
not closely scrutinise the distribution of Northern Ireland's share of reserved taxation.
This permitted both policy divergence and unfair allocation of public
expenditure, although this took place level.
more
at local
than central government
10
In their review of the relationship between Stormont and Westminster and the
former's capacity to diverge from Great Britain's social policy legislation Birrell
and Murie (1980) concluded that none of the channels of control open to Westminster - legislative, financial, judicial, political, economic and administrative - prevented Stormont from developing specific policy responses in the arena of social provision: in spite
of very real constraints, Northern Ireland and
its
government could and did
diverge substantially from the standards and legislation operating in Great Britain and at
Westminster. Independent action, different policies and substantially different legislation did emerge.
11
In the fourth policy area, that of security, the 1920 Act devolved to the Northern Ireland parliament the responsibility for internal law and order matters including the administration of prisons and recruitment of police. Neither the armed forces, an excepted matter, nor the RIC, which as a reserved matter would have been organised on an all-Ireland basis if a Council of Ireland had been established, were under the control of Stormont so it was left to introduce its own legislation and make its own arrangements to deal with the violence which
accompanied the establishment of the state. The 'exceptional' nature of security legislation and the form of the police service should not be seen as especially abberant as emergency powers had a long tradition in Ireland in the absence of a consensual model of policing. From their conception, therefore, the security forces in Northern Ireland had a military as well as a 'conventional' policing role. It is a criticism of Westminster that it did not more closely supervise the structure and recruitment of the police service and attempt to prevent the development of a police force which, despite reserving one-third of its places for Catholics,
be seen by supporters and opponents
The
alike as
came to
an upholder of a Protestant
state.
reason for the imperial government's lack of involvement, as with
its
and judicial 'supervision', was a desire to extricate itself from the day-to-day problems of Ireland. Buckland (1981) argues that the British government: 'was unwilling to take decisive action in the North to consolidate the new
constitutional
government's position' 12 given that it was still involved in negotiations with Southern representatives over the Anglo-Irish Treaty, and a truce had been effected between the
IRA and the British Army in the south. made the provisions to secure the existence of the in the period 1920-1922. The RUC was established by the
Therefore, Stormont still-threatened state
Constabulary Act (NI) in June 1922 as the successor to the RIC. It was augmented by the politically controversial Ulster Special Constabulary (USC)
Introduction: the British government
and Stormont
7
recruited under the general provision of the Special Constables Act 1914; with an
Order
Council of 1920 allowing for the formation of the
in
USC. The USC's
were frequently former members of the illegal Ulster Volunteer Force which had been mobilised in 1912 to resist Home Rule and the almost exclusively Protestant complexion of the force and its paramilitary organisation
initial recruits
made
most controversial element of the embryonic security forces. Origihad three sections: Class A who were full-time members recruited for six months; Class B which was a part-time force; and Class C which comprised a reserve register of volunteers to be called upon in periods of emergency. (By 1927 Class A and Class C were disbanded). Class B was to be maintained until the Hunt Report's recommendation of abolition in 1970, and under the control of the Minister of Home Affairs, came to symbolise either the sectarianism of the Northern Ireland state or the bulwark against Republican the
it
USC
nally, the
insurgency.
There were some misgivings
at
Westminster about the development of the
Northern Ireland security forces but the same constraints held as in other areas of policy; namely that too close a scrutiny would result in Britain becoming embroiled in an arena from which it was trying to disengage, and risk undermining the settlement of 1920. Similar difficulties concerning the division of
and the degree of Westminster supervision in the field of security 1960s and early 1970s. Constitutionally, and it would seem in practice, as it was to finance the formation of the RUC and USC though to have no operational control, Westminster could have exercised greater responsibility
were
to arise in the late
authority over the scrutiny of the development of the 'Protestant' security forces.
Contrary to
this
argument
is
the fact that the imperial parliament
hesitated to use special or repressive legislation in Ireland
grounds of scruple, to deny to Unionists the same latitude consolidation of Northern Ireland.
was the
Civil Authorities (Special
The
and was
had never on
unlikely,
in trying to secure the
legislative basis for this consolidation
Powers) Act (NI) passed in April 1922 which
replaced the Restoration of Order in Ireland Act 1919, relating to the whole of Ireland.
More
significant, perhaps, than the severe penalties for civil disorder
offences was the investing of the powers in the executive or,
Minister for
powers officer.
power
13
Home
Affairs
and the authority
The pre-eminence
who was bestowed
to delegate these to his junior minister or
of the executive over the judiciary, the
to review the operation of the Act,
Ireland
more specifically,
the
with wide-ranging discretionary
and the
any police
latter's lack
political divisions
of
of Northern
combined to make such powers a source of controversy - giving Northern
Ireland a quasi-fascist appearance in the eyes of its nationalist opponents.
The
initial
doubts of the Cabinet and Colonial Offices concerning the legality
of Northern Ireland developing 'what was in effect a military organisation' with British
money 14 did not materially affect the operation of the RUC
then until
or the
USC or
Powers Act which was renewed annually until 1928 and 1933 when it was made permanent. The Stormont-Westminster
the use of the Special
8
British
government policy
in
Northern Ireland 1 969-89
relationship in the field of security parallels that of the wider constitutional
arrangement: de jure
total
Westminster control
in the last resort
Section 75 of the 1920 Act was offset by a de facto reluctance to involved.
The
enshrined in
become
directly
measures in precipitating a change in the
later attempts to take direct responsibility for security
the early 1970s was one of the principal factors in
constitutional relationship with the introduction of direct rule.
Conclusion Westminster's granting of a considerable degree of autonomy to Stormont in policy
making stems from
its
lack of incentives to
three-fold advantage in that
it
maintained a
do otherwise. Partition had the foothold in Ireland to
territorial
safeguard strategic interests, while also extracating Westminster from everyday
concern with
both North and South, and allowing a
Irish administration,
Westminster which had bedevilled successive system could be maintained without an excessive drain on
reduction in Irish representation administrations. If this
the British Exchequer there was
at
little
incentive to develop a closer scrutiny of the
operation of devolved powers as granted by the 1920 Act.
The Relationship between Britain and Northern Ireland 1922-69 It is
now
necessary to examine which events and factors, between the partial
resolution of the Irish Question in the early 1920s and late 1960s,
its
re-emergence
in the
impinged upon the Westminster-Stormont relationship and could
potentially affect the durability of partition. It will
be provisionally maintained that governments of whatever complexion
Westminster were unwilling British political
life,
but
this is
at
mainstream of claim that there was unanimity between and
to reintroduce Ireland into the
not to
within the parties concerning either the question of partition or the status of the
The significant point is that dissidents in either of the parties which formed administrations or composed coalitions had too little influence to effect a change of status for Northern Ireland. Two principal groupings can be identified: 15 that which Canning (1985) terms the 'diehards', the pro-imperial Tories who opposed the Treaty of 1921 and were to oppose the weakening of the link between the Irish Free State and the Commonwealth, and the section of the British Labour Party which did not accept the legitimacy of partition. The latter group has been a constant presence in the British Labour Party from the 1920s to the present. It is broadly composed of two elements: those MPs who have Irish Free State.
Catholic links either of a family nature or because of a large constituency lobby
and those on the left who see a united Ireland as a progressive policy based either on an anti-imperialist perspective and/or providing a better prospect for labour politics in Ireland. In the early years the
members who were
former Independent Labour Party
influenced by Connolly's work would be representative of
Introduction: the British government
this position; in
and Stormont
9
contemporary politics the Labour Committee on Ireland adopts
a
similar perspective.
From political
the period of the 1921 Treaty to the outbreak of
involvement
in,
or supervision
of,
war
in
1939 direct
the Northern Ireland government by
Westminster was minimal apart from the abortive attempt to intervene in the abolition of proportional representation in elections in 1922 (see p. 3). The links
which did exist were largely at official level: principally negotiations between the Treasury and the Northern Ireland Ministry of Finance over the issue of financial support and the principle of parity. The Home Office was content to relegate Northern Ireland to the general department and no civil servant was assigned full-time to Northern Ireland affairs. At a parliamentary level scope for supervision was restricted by the convention, established as early as 1922, that areas which were the responsibility of Stormont could not be raised at Westminster. As these areas included the sensitive ones of electoral practices, location of industrial investment and control of the police the ability of Westminster to concern itself with accusations of discrimination in Northern Ireland was severely circumscribed. The Irish Free State (Confirmation of Agreement) Act 1925 resulted from discussions between the three Governments following the suspension of the Boundary Commission and ratified the border which exists today. From that date onwards the border was unlikely to be amended as opposed to being abolished or retained as the twenty-six- six county division.
The diplomatic focus switched to dominion and the UK; partition
the relationship between the Irish Free State as a existed as an issue tions with the
inasmuch
as
it
was raised by the
Irish
Free State in negotia-
UK over the question of the former's position of neutrality in the
The impetus for a reconsideration of Northern Ireland government was largely a function of Irish Free State pressure rather than that emanating from Great Britain. As stated above, the members of both Labour and Conservative parties who were concerned about Ireland were too small in number to exert much influence, and by 1925 the initial seeds of bipartisanship had been sown since the first Labour government of 1924 had not attempted to renegotiate the 1921 Treaty. It was considered politically impossible to coerce Ulster and MacDonald, 16 the Labour Prime Minister, was in any case unsympathetic to Irish nationalism. Also, the Labour government was keen to extricate itself from Ireland and appealed for Conservative support in its negotiations with the Irish Free State and the north over the Boundary Commission. 17 The relationship between the Irish Free State and the UK is beyond the scope 18 of this work but it tended to be only in connection with this relationship that partition or the position of the minority in Northern Ireland arose on the British political agenda. The relationship in the 1930s hinged on the Irish Free State's 19 desire, especially under de Valera, who became Prime Minister in 1932, to distance the Irish Free State from the and to exercise greater autonomy than war and
its
later declaration
of a Republic.
either partition or the activities of the
UK
British
1
government policy
in
Northern Ireland 1 969-89
the British government had envisaged under the terms of the Treaty. that the Irish Free State
was quite
It
seems
entitled to press for alterations to the
provisions of the Treaty given that the Imperial Conference of 1930 and the Statute of Westminster of the following year extended the
Dominions (including
power of the and
the Irish Free State) to legislate for themselves
UK parliament to legislate for them only with their consent. With the accession of de Valera there arose two principal issues and a subsidiary one with respect to the 1921 Treaty. He wanted the return of the Treaty ports, an end to the Oath of Allegiance and the suspension of land annuity payments to the British. Three ports - Berehaven, Queenstown and Lough Swilly - had been retained by Britain for strategic reasons as well as the right of access to other harbour facilities in time of war. The Irish Free State had conceded this because it thought it unlikely that Britain would compromise on 20 De Valera's the issue and had at the time more immediate preoccupations. government considered that the Oath of Allegiance was not binding by the terms of the Treaty and was an internal affair; it did however have symbolic significance as a move towards independence and caused consternation among the imperial lobby who saw it as the first step towards the Irish Free State's total severance from the Commonwealth. The failure to reach an angreement with de Valera led to a trade war, and caused divisions within the Cabinet on how hawkish policy towards Ireland should be. For example, Chamberlain, the Chancellor, favoured a more conciliatory approach than did Hailsham, the War Secretary and later Lord Chancellor. As far as Northern Ireland is concerned, the poor relations between the Irish Free State and Britain were likely only to make partition more permanent. Despite de Valera's life-long rhetorical commitment to unification the shortterm and politically more realistic aims (i.e. those which Britain could deliver
permitted the
irrespective of Northern Ireland opinion) tended to alienate rather than reconcile Northern Unionists to the idea of unification. The demand for the return of the Treaty ports, however justifiable in terms of national sovereignty, illustrated to Northern Ireland that the Irish Free State could not be relied upon to support
imperial interests in wartime and the rejection of the
Oath of Allegiance served to
highlight the ioyal' nature of the North.
A third factor in this period was the adoption of a new Constitution by the Irish Free State (now to be called Eire)
in 1937. Article 2
of the Constitution laid claim
to the thirty-two counties as the national territory of Ireland
also accorded a special position to the Catholic
and the Constitution Church, though this was repealed
in 1973.
Despite the predictable effect that de Valera's policies since 1932 would have on the Unionists, he wished to discuss partition with Chamberlain at the Imperial Conference of early 1938 as part of the continued negotiations over the Treaty ports and the ending of the trade war. It seems that de Valera, as did many Republicans, overestimated both the desire and especially the
ability
of the
1
Introduction: the British government
British to 'deliver' the Unionists.
and Stormont
1
He might, however, have felt moral or financial
pressure would pay dividends given that the government emphasised at the start
of the conference that coercion could not be employed. In Northern Ireland Craig, the Prime Minister, called an election as a response and
was rewarded
with an increased majority after a campaign of no accommodation with Eire.
As Canning records
21
these events renewed the focus on Northern Ireland for
time since 1922 with some of the liberal press being
critical of both the Northern Ireland administration and partition itself. Of the main parties, Labour was generally more conciliatory towards Ireland over the Oath of Allegiance and the annuities question than the Conservatives, although Chamberlain, supported by Simon the Chancellor and MacDonald, the Dominions Secretary, held the
the
first
ascendancy over those elements in the party who opposed relinquishing the ports which was effected by an agreement in 1938. However, as far as the north was concerned there was little disagreement over what could be achieved. Stubbs (1974) summarises Labour policy in the 1930s. Despite a formal commitment to Irish unity: 'fewer and fewer MPs raised this subject and fewer still were to raise it
once the war had broken out'
22
and
was
it
a residual topic for
both conference
and the trades union movement.
The
attempt to reach agreement with de Valera in 1938 did necessitate some
Northern Ireland
British investigation into conditions in
in order to
complaints over the treatment of the Catholic minority. carried out an investigation into conditions in the north, but
head off his
The Home it
was
Office
largely a token
gesture and tended to accept uncritically Unionist reassurances of the even-
handedness of the administration. Elements
in the
Dominions Office were more
sympathetic to Catholic grievances but a combination of factors ensured that a
thorough review of the actions of Stormont and local authorities and the question of gerrymandering and job discrimination would not take place. These include the perennial one of not wishing to get Westminster too closely involved, the
hope
of getting Northern Ireland involved in the discussions with de Valera which
precluded antagonising the Unionists, and the pro-Unionist sentiments of Harrington, Under-Secretary in the Dominions Office,
who
cautioned against
interference in Northern Ireland.
The
last
pre-war event of significance was a
visit
by Cripps,
member
a leading
of the Labour Party, to Northern Ireland in 1937 to canvass for a united Ireland
and little
to attempt to mobilise the
working
class against the Unionist Party.
success and at this time the Northern Ireland Labour Party, though
He had
it
had no
formal position on partition, rejected a resolution from one of its branches which
advocated co-operation with Eire workers towards unification and which con-
demned
sectarianism.
The
and
first
Canning
last serious
states:
attempt by a prominent
member
of the British Labour Party to
mobilise support against the Unionist Party in Northern Ireland had failed. Henceforth British
Labour would
rail
against partition from afar, primarily in the
Labour
press.
3
2
British
1
government policy
in
Northern Ireland
Britain's lack of commitment in supervising the actions of the
1
969-89
Northern Ireland
IRA among
parliament was strengthened by the outbreak of war and the revival of an
campaign
in 1939.
The former tended to increase sympathy for the
north
the British political elite given the position of neutrality adopted by Eire and the latter
meant
that liberal concerns over the Special
further marginalised.
was bound
24
Despite
its
Powers Act tended
to
be
'benevolent' nature, the policy of neutrality
to strain relations with Britain. In
September 1939 the War Cabinet
agreed that an approach to de Valera on the basis of a deal over partition was out of the question and, as this appeared to be the only terms on which Eire would enter the war, stalemate resulted. As in earlier periods, such as that of the trade war of the 1930s, there were elements of a hawks and doves split in the Cabinet. Churchill tended to favour coercing Ireland either through economic sanctions or by seizure of the ports returned in the 1938 agreement, while Eden and Chamberlain thought it a better policy to adopt a more conciliatory approach on the grounds that a neutral Ireland which was largely pro-British, and co-operated through providing information about German movements on the Atlantic seaboard, was a better option than the potential problems coercion would cause. In fact, it is doubtful that seizure of the ports was ever seriously entertained. The international ramifications would have been great as seizure would have breached the principle that the Dominions had the right to decide whether or not to join the war. Also, relations with the USA which the UK hoped would enter the war would have been strained, especially given the influence of both the pro-Irish and the neutralist lobbies in American politics. A second consideration, apart from the diplomatic one, is whether the Atlantic ports were of sufficient strategic significance to warrant a belligerent policy against the south given that Britain obviously had the north from which to operate. Canning argues that from June 1941 considerations either of trying to win Ireland over to the Allies or coerce it declined, partly because of the improvement of the British position in the Atlantic. 25 As it became clear that de Valera was unlikely to move on neutrality the other policy option was to exert pressure on Northern Ireland over partition as an incentive to de Valera. In June 1940 this was advocated by the Joint Planning Subcommittee of the Chiefs of Staff. A Report commissioned by Bevin, Minister of Labour and National Service, recommended a Joint Defence Council for the two governments in Ireland. In return for the south's co-operation, a constitution for a united Ireland
would be drawn up
at the cessation
of hostilities. Churchill's
response was that he would not be a party to coercion of the north which
would almost
this
For Churchill there were both practical and moral objections to such a strategy; the shadow of 1912 remained and there was a strong likelihood that Unionists would resist, by force of arms if necessary, an attempt
at
difficulties
certainly involve.
post-war absorption into a united Ireland. Leaving aside practical Churchill was instinctively sympathetic to Unionism and this senti-
ment was becoming more widespread among
the
Labour Party leadership
as
3
Introduction: the British government
and Stormont
loyal' Ulster's support for Britain neutrality.
Canning
and the Empire was contrasted with Eire's
Thus an emotional attachment
states that
reinforced the politics of pragmatism.
by 1914 Churchill's resentment of Eire's neutrality was
shared by Bevin, Attlee and Morrison were now
1
26
whose sympathies:
entirely with the Ulster Protestants, with
impressed. In this way, for the truly bipartisan; hence,
first
whose
loyalty they
were deeply
time since 1921, British policy towards Ireland became
when Labour
finally 27
achieved a majority in 1945,
it
made no
difference as far as Ireland was concerned.
The
details
detailed.
of British and Irish relations in the war years need not be further
The
significant point
is
that the chances of a
rapprochment between
north and south, possibly leading to unity (which had already been reduced by the south's weakening of the imperial link and
more remote and reduced as the
Britain's
loyalty
its
1937 constitution) became even
concern to press for such a development was also
The impact many from the south
of Ulster was contrasted with Eire's neutrality.
of this was not seriously undermined by the fact that
volunteered to fight for the Allies and that the rate of recruitment from Unionists in the north (there
had been
was no conscription
anticipated.
in
Northern Ireland) was not as great as
28
After 1941 the question of the constitutional relationship between Britain and the two parts of Ireland declined in significance as
it
became apparent
that de
Valera would not deliver on neutrality while partition remained. There remains
some controversy over a telegram which Churchill sent to de Valera on the occasion of the bombing of Pearl Harbour; the ambiguity of which led some to believe that Churchill was offering a deal on partition if the south were to enter the war.
29
De Valera interpreted it thus but it seems unlikely that Churchill, given
his previous consistent policy. In
pro-Unionism, would or could have executed such
a
response to an appeal for clarification by Cranborne, the Dominions
Secretary, Churchill stated that he: 'certainly contemplated no deal on partition. That could only come about by consent arising out of comradeship between North and South'. 30 As a coalition government had existed for the duration of the war and prior to that a national government since 1931 it would be difficult to discern a division between parties at senior levels on the Irish Question, though this is not to argue that there was unanimity on attitudes to Ireland over the trade war of 1932-8 or neutrality; rather, differences were of emphasis and did not always follow party lines. Also, Labour's relatively weak position in the coalition governments and its desire to prove its responsibility meant that the influence of the pro-nationalist lobby in the Labour Party remained marginal. As argued above, Ulster's role in the war when contrasted with that of the south tended to blunt the nationalist orientation of the Labour leadership. With the Labour landslide in 1945 various hopes and fears were raised. The
4
British
1
government policy in Northern Ireland 1 969-89
Unionists were suspicious of both the welfare policies and the supposed pro-
Labour Party and were fearful of the implications of Labour having a majority administration for the first time.. Conversely, the Anti-Partition League in Ireland, which formed fraternal links with the Friends 31 a backbench pressure group in the Parliamentary Labour Party of Ireland, which agitated for a more rigorous supervision of Stormont's activities and generally favoured unification, had hopes that the ending of partition would appear as a priority on the British political agenda. These hopes were to prove overly optimistic, just as Unionist fears were to nationalist sentiments of the
prove largely groundless.
The
reasons for this include the familiar desire of
British administrators not to
become more deeply involved
necessary. This was
by the
facilitated
failure of the
wartime
in Ireland than
IRA campaign and
Labour government had and industrial arenas from which Ireland would have been a time-consuming distraction. Thirdly, and possibly most crucially, there was not a sufficiently strong lobby in the Labour Party to have much influence on the parliamentary leadership. Trades union and grassroots interest was residual as reflected by the lack of motions at Conference, and the Friends of Ireland, while at least keeping Ireland on the agenda, seemed too small in numbers and divided to exert influence. In 1948 it was reported to 32 have 120 members out of 393 MPs, but many of these were nominal. Its membership was heterogeneous though the majority were either left-wingers, some with an ILP background, or had Irish links. These categories could, of course, overlap; Delargy, a leading figure in the Friends of Ireland, had a Belfast nationalist background and was on the left of the party. Stability in Northern Ireland, an unwillingness to coerce the Unionists and the 33 lack of a strong nationalist lobby in Britain helps to explain government policy on Ireland when the question was once more raised by the decision of Costello, the Fine Gael Taoiseach, to take Ireland out of the Commonwealth and declare a Republic. This was announced at the Commonwealth Conference in Ottawa in September 1948. This presented two basic issues for the British government; a codification of relations with the Republic and the status of Northern Ireland. In a Commons statement of November 1948 Attlee, the Prime Minister, announced that the Republic was to have the anomalous position of not being considered a foreign country in that the right of unrestricted emigration from the Republic to the UK would continue and also that there would be no constitutional change in the position of Northern Ireland. By 1949 the Ireland Bill had been introduced and it received its second reading in May. Most of it related to the relationship with the Republic but it also included a guarantee to the north. This guarantee, which was to become Section 1(2) of the Act stated: the relative stability in Northern Ireland. Secondly, the
an ambitious
it is
the
legislative
programme
in the social
hereby declared that Northern Ireland remains part of His Majesty's dominions and of it is hereby affirmed that in no event will Northern Ireland or any part thereof
UK and
5
Introduction: the British government
and Stormont
1
cease to be part of His Majesty's dominions and of the
UK without the
consent of the
Parliament of Northern Ireland.
This was necessary, argued Attlee, it is
the action of the Eire
made
it
as:
Government
in deciding to leave the
Commonwealth
quite inevitable that a declaration as to the position of that part of Ireland
that has
which
is
Commonwealth should be made. 34
continuing in the
He had made this clear in two earlier responses to Costello's declaration. Members of the Friends of Ireland and their supporters raised various Delargy, chairman of the British section of the Anti- Partition
objections.
League, attacked the inclusion of the clause dealing with Northern Ireland on the
grounds that
it
was
irrelevant in a Bill concerning the relationship with the
Republic of Ireland, and argued that by leaving the decision on partition to the its permanence would be ensured. This was an abandonment of the Labour Party's position of opposition to the 1920 Act, and at the same time moved the Labour Party into the Conservative and Unionist camp. Other backbenchers attacked the specific wording of the clause; two sections being of particular significance. One was that Northern Ireland 'or any part thereof could not be separated from the UK without the consent of the Northern Ireland parliament. This meant that counties with a nationalist majority, or the possibility of one developing, would not have the option of joining the Republic if they so desired and that the six-county Northern Ireland, the temporary expedient of 1920, was being reinforced. Wells, a Labour backbencher, raised this in relation to Fermanagh and Tyrone. The second objection raised was the decision
parliament of Northern Ireland
to allow the parliament
of Northern Ireland, rather than the people, to determine
any possible change in
status.
Some MPs
considered
a majority for unification developed in the north
it
this
unfortunate because
might not be reflected
if
in the
composition of Stormont; revealing the fears of gerrymandered constituency boundaries. Morrison, the Lord President, rejected the
grounds that
it
was contrary
call for a plebiscite
to British political practice
and was
less
on the
democratic
than parliamentary representation.
Morrison
also rejected
demands
for closer supervision of
Stormont by
Westminster, motivated by concern for treatment of the minority, and reaffirmed the constitutional convention:
under in
statute passed
Northern Ireland
by
this
Parliament
at
Westminster the maintenance of law and order
Government and Parliament of Northern would be unconstitutional and improper, if not impossible, for this Govern35 take on responsibilities in this respect.
Ireland and
is
the responsibility of the
it
ment
to
The
desire to keep Ireland at 'arm's length'
appeal, directed at the Conservatives
and
his
was
also apparent in Morrison's
own party:
6
British
1
I
earnestly trust that
shall not
Britain.
all
of us
will
government policy
Northern Ireland 1 969-89
in
be sufficiently courageous and restrained, and that we
permit this to be a disturbing and bargaining factor in the political scene in Great
36
Considerable opposition was presented by Labour
MPs
in
Committee
in
attempts to get amendments concerning a plebiscite and the omission of the 'or
any part thereof clause and in total 66 Labour MPs voted against the government of the Bill and were disciplined for so doing. However, only 9
at various stages
Labour members opposed the second reading, which was passed 317-12, and becoming law in June.
the third reading was unopposed; the Bill
The 1949 Act made little practical difference to the
question of partition but
it
symbolised Labour's movement away from aspirations towards unity and had the
hopes of Labour adopting a from that of the Conservatives, at least until the early 1980s. The Act had the effect of undermining relations between the Friends of Ireland and the Anti-Partition League; the former broke up in effect of further reducing Irish nationalists' significantly different position
disarray
and the
latter
contested four British seats in the 1950 election as a
protest against the Ireland Act without success. Although in practice the question
of the continuation of partition depended more on the determination of Unionists to resist unification, the recognition of this right in statute was to be of significance in
when
a later
Northern Ireland
With the
Labour administration was
to
become
directly involved
in the late 1960s.
collapse of the Friends of Ireland
and the Conservative victory of
195 1 there were even fewer groups in British politics which had either the desire or the capacity to raise either the issue of partition or the lack of Westminster supervision of the Northern Ireland government.
among northern had become residual
The
failure
of the
paign of 1956-62 to gain support
nationalists
that the former question
in Ireland itself.
IRA cam-
seemed
to
imply
The
long
dominance of the Conservative Party in Britain saw no changes in the relationship between Northern Ireland and Britain as the party was both politically sympathetic and formally aligned to the Unionist Party and as such had no wish to encroach upon the latter's governance. The 1964 election victory of Labour potentially saw more scope for a closer examination of Unionist rule. Wilson, who had become leader in 1963, was considered to be sympathetic to nationalism 37 and there were certain parallels with 1945 in that there existed a pressure group, the Campaign for Democracy in
which campaigned for a more serious consideration of Northern Ireland Notable in the parliamentary Labour Party were Rose and, after the 1966 election, McNamara. The Campaign for Democracy in Ulster was supported by up to a hundred Labour MPs in its monitoring of civil rights in Northern Ireland and support for groups such as the Campaign for Social Justice, which was mobilising around the issue of discrimination. The Campaign Ulster,
politics.
for
Democracy
in Ulster
had certain
parallels with the Friends of Ireland;
it
was
7
Introduction: the British government
neither a
homogenous body
and Stormont
1
terms of political persuasion nor did
in
it
primarily
although Irish unity would have been a long-term aspiration of
focus on most of its members. Despite this renewed pressure, the formal position between Stormont and partition,
Westminster did not change. The convention regarding the exclusion of subjects under Stormont's jurisdiction from discussion at Westminster was upheld until
1969 and the
Home
Office
still
included Northern Ireland in
who became Home
ment. Callaghan,
O'Neill, the Northern Ireland Premier,
its
general depart-
Secretary in late 1967, recounts that
was not keen
to involve
Westminster
in
programme with which he was proceeding. 38 O'Neill felt that any pressure from the Labour government to quicken the pace of reform in response to demands from the Campaign for Democracy in Ulster and other groups would the reform
jeopardise his position by increasing support for militant loyalism. In August
1966 O'Neill had met with Wilson and Jenkins, the then
Home
they had accepted his argument for the need for caution.
39
Secretary, and
Although O'Neill's
40
it seems likely that more ambiwould have caused even greater problems with militant loyalism, and the Labour government had no wish to involve itself except as a policy of last
reforms have been attacked for their timidity tious attempts
resort.
Thus the basic strategy of 1966-8 was to bolster O'Neill's tentative reformism; autonomy in August 1969 at the eruption of serious violence, neither he nor Jenkins had visited Northern Ireland and the first Home Secretary under Wilson, Soskice, had spent 41 only one afternoon there. In the two years between the August 1966 meeting, it
was mutually beneficial
this policy.
This
when Wilson
is
for the
two governments
to give O'Neill
reflected in the fact that, prior to Callaghan's visit in
appreciated that violent opposition to O'Neill's policies might
necessitate the use of troops at a later date,
Craig, Northern Ireland
and November 1968 when O'Neill,
Home Secretary, and Faulkner, Minister of Commerce,
met Wilson and Callaghan with a five point plan for reform, 42 neither at official nor at ministerial level had Westminster increased its monitoring of Northern Ireland. At the latter meeting Wilson reaffirmed, as he had to the Commons, his commitment to the 1949 Act and his faith in the Northern Ireland government to enact the reform proposals.
Background to the 1969 Intervention: Developments
in
Northern Ireland
The pressure for reform from the nationalist population and its sympathisers had Campaign for Social Justice in 1964 and the Northern Ireland Civil Rights Association in 1967 43 and had mobilised chiefly around the issues of reforming the restricted local government franchise, gerincreased since the formation of the
rymandered
local
government
electoral boundaries, the inequitable allocation of
public-sector housing and discrimination in the provision of public-sector
employment. Reinforcing the accusations of specific cases of discrimination was
8
government policy in Northern Ireland 1 969-89
British
1
the suspicion that decisions such as the location of the majority of industrial and infrastructural
was based
as
development
much on
in the
predominantly Protestant east of the province
political as
on
rational or technocratic grounds.
44
The
other principal source of Catholic grievance was the constitution of the security forces, particularly the role of the 'B' Specials
and the operation of the Special
45
Powers Act. The paradox of the O'Neill programme is that critics saw it as more related to the modernisation of the political and economic structure of Northern Ireland than to the reduction of Catholic grievance or disadvantage per se. However, one of the consequences of reform was the reduction of the autonomy and power of local government which was an important power-base for elements of Unionism. This alienation of a section of the Unionist community is partly explained by the internal tensions within the Unionist bloc which had existed since Northern Ireland's foundation. O'Neill, as a representative of the
more cosmopolitan,
Anglo-Irish, Anglican wing of Unionism, had always been an object of suspicion for
two other important
strata; the
anti-ecumenical,
more
parochial, largely
Presbyterian Unionism increasingly personified by Paisley and the working-class
whose historic distrust of the aristocratic and landed elements of Unionism had periodically manifested itself in independent and labourist MPs representing areas like the Shankill and Woodvale in Belfast. For these groups, whose membership sometimes overlapped in parties like the Democratic loyalists
Unionist Party rights lobby
(DUP) founded
were seen
in 1971, virtually
any concessions to the
as a recognition of the legitimacy of Catholicism
civil
and the
resurgence of nationalist irredentism. Proposals for the reform of local government had been introduced as early as
1965-6 parliamentary session although a White Paper did not appear until this was shelved; another being introduced in July 1969. Two principal points need to be established about these proposals. Firstly, sectarianism or the abuse of power by local authorities which, as opposed to central government administration, was a major concern for the civil rights movement, was not cited as a reason for reform. Reform in the 1967 White Paper was based on three criteria; efficiency, economy and the effective representation 46 of local aspiration, and as such resembled the process of rationalisation the
December 1967 and
occurring in British local government.
The
government system had been established in the late ninemany of the smaller authorities (Northern Ireland had fifty-five lower-tier urban and rural district councils) had neither the population nor the resources to justify the separate organisation of services. Thus the White Paper recommended the creation of between twelve and eighteen area councils existing local
teenth century and
to replace the existing local authorities. Secondly,
because of the administrative and the opposition of some of the Unionist-controlled councils the process of reform was slow. Not until autumn 1971 were elections scheduled for the reformed system with an extended franchise and by this time details of reorganisation
9
Introduction: the British government
and Stormont
1
events had overtaken the concerns of local government, or at least these particular proposals.
Prior to the 1969 proposals, the franchise
was limited
to resident occupiers
(owner or tenant of a dwelling house) and general occupiers (owner or tenant of land or premises - other than a dwelling house - of an annual rate valuation of not than £10) and allowed a multiple vote for limited companies. The disenfranchisement of categories such as adults living in relatives' homes
less
reduced the electorate
There was
also
to
about
movement
75%
in the
of that of Westminster elections.
reform of the central government electoral
Law Act (NI) 1968 abolished University seats, removed on the occupation of business premises and established a Boundary Commission to consider boundary revisions and an increase in the number of Stormont constituencies. This was not a principal part of the civil rights programme but an increased number of seats and franchise reforms would probably increase nationalist representation and might help to reinforce the nationalist integration into Northern Ireland politics following the Nationalist system.
The
Electoral
plural voting based
Party acceptance of the role of official opposition in 1965.
However as with
local
government reform this proved to be too little too late to appease the civil rights campaign and it was only in response to the disorder at the civil rights rally in October 1968 at Deny that O'Neill, after a meeting with Wilson and Callaghan in November, announced a revised reform programme. This five-point plan comprised a points system for public housing allocation though this was not to be mandatory, the creation of a Parliamentary Commissioner for Administration (PCA), reform of local government including the
company vote by 1971, revision of the Special Powers Act to conform to international obligations, and the abolition of the Londonderry Borough Council and its replacement by a non-elected Development Commission. (Londonderry had been a particularly blatant example of gerrymandering). By June 1969 Faulkner, as Minister of Development, had issued guidelines for the introduction of a points system for public-housing allocation which would substitute objective criteria for possible sectarian practices. This was accepted by abolition of the
the majority of local authorities despite
These reforms did not have the
its
voluntary nature.
effect of securing
O'Neill's political position. According to
Bew and
peace or of securing
Patterson (1985) the violence
of 1968 had brought the Protestant masses onto the political stage in protest at the
civil
rights
movement
territorial divisions' in their
failing to
marches.
'recognise the legitimacy of sectarian
The violence
the focus of protest from electoral practices activities
of the security forces.
47
The
also had the effect of shifting and discrimination towards the
modernisation programme of O'Neill
could not incorporate the reform of the security forces since these were of crucial
importance in the relationship between the state and the Protestant masses. Just prior to O'Neill's resignation in April
1969 the Unionist Parliamentary Party
endorsed, following previous opposition, universal suffrage in local elections and
20
British
government policy
Northern Ireland 1 969-89
in
seems that the role and accountability of the security forces was about to assume centre stage as the civil rights debate was being relegated on the streets 48 into something approaching the 'traditional' orange versus green confrontation. 49 The establishment of the Cameron inquiry in January 1969 by O'Neill to investigate 'the course of events leading to, and the immediate causes and nature of, civil disturbances in Northern Ireland on and since 5 October 1968' may be it
seen as a last-ditch attempt to defuse the complaints of the increasingly radicalised civil rights movement. It was also an attempt to delegate essentially political decisions to
an independent body and thus to disarm the militant
within both the Unionist party and
However
among the
Protestant
neither this nor the publication of the
community
White Paper
in July
critics
as a whole.
1969
(see p.
18) were sufficient to prevent increasing conflict which culminated in the
violence of August 1969.
This violence was crucial in that it resulted in the deployment of troops which the British government would not approve without a much closer supervision of the reform
programme of Stormont.
Secretary, told the to those
Two months
later Callaghan, the
Home
Commons:
who suggested at one time that Westminster might confine itself to the problem of
law and order and allow others, the elected Government
(i.e.
Stormont) to carry on with
the social, economic and political policies that they thought appropriate,
not possible in a democratic state to do together.
this.
The whole
I
say that
it
was
context must be considered
50
This does not necessarily mean that it was the British intention to involve itself more directly through either formal political or administrative integration, possibly via direct rule. It
can be interpreted to mean that the firm supervision of
Stormont's implementation of a (formally) jointly determined reform programme
was the best option
to avert direct British involvement.
military intervention could be essentially short-term.
Thus both
political
and
51
Notes For considerations on this see e.g. Wilson 1955, Brett 1970, Wallace 1971, 1 and Murie 1980 and Buckland 1979 and 1981. 2
Some
of the
left
argue that Britain played a
much more
Birrell
instrumental role in the
creation of partition; thereby preventing the development of a united working class to
challenge British control of Ireland and allowing Britain to retain control of part of a strategically significant territory.
3
4
and Murie op. Buckland 1981 p. 19. Birrell
See Reed 1984 and IFM 1983. 28 and Palley 1972 p. 398.
cit. p.
See Buckland 1981 and Birrell and Murie op. cit. for an evaluation of policy and the 5 wider questions of whether devolution was a success. 6 7
SeeBewetal. 1979 ch. 3. Birrell and Murie op. cit. p.
22.
1
.
Introduction: the British government
8
Crossman 1977
relationship
9
See
p.
1
.
and Stormont
2
187 reveals the lack of knowledge concerning the financial
between Westminster and Stormont.
later sections for details.
Cameron 1969 contains an examination of local government see Whyte 1983 for a reconsideration. 10
1
12 13
and Murie op. cit. p. 266. Buckland 1981 pp. 36-7. Section 1 of the Special Powers Act reads 'The
discrimination and
Birrell
Civil Authority
.
.
.
shall
have
power, in respect of persons, matters and things within the jurisdiction of the Government of Northern Ireland to take
all
such steps and issue
all
such orders as may be necessary for
preserving the peace and maintaining order.'
14
Buckland 1981
15
See Canning 1985 pp. 17-25.
16
ibid. p. 87.
17
SeeStubbs 1974 pp. 110 and 112. Canning op. cit. for a good account 1921-41 and Harkness 1969
18
p. 43.
for the
Commonwealth dimension 1921-31. 20
See Bowman 1982 for de Valera's position on Ulster. Canning op. cit. p. 176.
21
ibid, ch. 10.
19
22 23 24 25 26 27 28 29 30 31
Stubbsop.
cit p.
162.
Canning op. cit. p. 232. For a detailed account of Anglo-Irish Canning op. cit. p. 3 10. This question made Morrison change Canning op. cit. p. 3 1 1 See Fisk op. cit. ch. 14. e.g. see
Benn
relations in the
his
war years see Fisk 1983.
mind over Ireland. Stubbs op.
cit.
p. 171.
in Collins (ed.) 1985.
Minute quoted by Canning op. cit. p. 3 14. See Purdie 1983 for the policies of, and divisions
in,
the Friends of Ireland in this
period.
32
ibid. p. 83.
33
It
should be noted that the Friends of Ireland, or elements of it, often focused on
had the same standards of democracy and social on partition. This was one factor which caused friction with the largely conservative Anti-Partition League. 34 HC Vol. 464 Col. 1856 11/5/49. 35 HC Vol. 464 Col. 1956 1 1/5/49. 36 HC Vol. 464 Col. 1961 1 1/5/49. 37 e.g. Faulkner 1978 p. 130 and Bew and Patterson 1985 p. 11. Bew, Gibbon and Patterson 1979 also emphasise the significance of Wilson. 38 Callaghanl973p.2. 39 Wilson 1971 p. 270. 40 Bew and Patterson op. cit. p. 1 1 41 Sunday Times 1972 p. 81. 42 See p. 19 for details. 43 The reasons why it was in this period that civil rights mobilisation occurred is still
the question of whether Northern Ireland service provision as Britain rather than
British government policy in Northern Ireland 1 96 9-89
22 the subject of debate, as
is
the degree of influence of nationalist ideas and groups within
it.
See e.g. Bew, Gibbon and Patterson 1979 pp. 163-74. 44 See Hoare 1981. 45 The extent of, and reasons for, anti-Catholic discrimination are less relevant here than the British government's response to it. For the debate on discrimination see Hewitt 1981, 1983, 1985,
46 47 48 49 50 51
O'Hearn 1983, 1985 and Whyte 1983.
Connolly 1983
Bew and
p. 50.
Patterson 1985 p. 16.
ibid. p. 19.
Cameron
Report. 'Disturbances in Northern Ireland'
Cmd 532 Belfast 1969.
HC Vol. 788 Col. 48 13/10/69. See Bew et al. op.
cit. p.
181 and
Bew and
Patterson 1985.
The Labour administration 1969-70
Introduction
The
following six chapters will chart the main developments in the areas of
economic and social policy, in that order, for each of the The 1969-70 administration is exceptional in that it did not introduce specific constitutional initiatives from the British government. Therefore the first section of this chapter will outline the relationship of the two governments which developed in 1969-70 and then detail initiatives in the constitutional, security,
administrations up to 1989.
other policy areas.
The 1969 Intervention The meeting of ministers of both governments in August 1969, in Belfast and London, when troops were deployed, and the occasion of Callaghan's second visit to Belfast in October resulted in the publication of three communiques. The 1
of these followed the meeting of Chichester-Clark, the Northern Ireland Prime Minister and successor to O'Neill, and his senior colleagues with Wilson and his colleagues at Downing Street on the 19 August 1969. It detailed the agreement between the two governments concerning the first
division
of responsibility over control
of security
matters.
In
effect,
it
subordinated the Ulster security forces to the control of the General Officer
Commanding
who was
(NI)
responsible to the Minister of Defence.
The
Ulster
come under the General Officer Commanding's when they were deployed in riot control as opposed to
Special Constabulary was to control, as
were the
'normal' policing.
RUC
The
GOC
was committed
to
working
'in
the closest co-
operation with the Northern Ireland government and the Inspector-General of
RUC'. 2 This
division of responsibility was essentially a compromise. Westminster was not prepared to deploy troops without having operational control of security but was unwilling to remove all say by Stormont in security for fear of undermining the already beleaguered Stormont administration.
the
24
British
government policy in Northern Ireland 1 969-89
This arrangement was designed as a holding operation until the reformed could resume full control. As troop involvement was to be of greater duration than anticipated this ad hoc arrangement was to be severely tested. In the subsequent years until direct rule the operation of the division of responsibility as
RUC
became a conmore autonomy in security policy. At an operational level, professional rivalry between the army and the RUC was to persist until the late 1970s. 3 The communique also emphasised that institutionalised in the Joint Security
Committee
(see p. 27)
tentious issue at Westminster as Stormont developed
government intervention was not limited to security policy. Two senior civil servants were to be sent from London to Belfast 'to represent the increased concern which the UK Government had necessarily acquired in Northern 4 Ireland affairs,' and to engage in the joint working parties of officials which were to be established to review the progress of the reform programme. The accompanying declaration reaffirmed the adherence to the 1949 Ireland British
UK
Act which ensured that Northern Ireland would not cease to be part of the without the consent of the parliament of Northern Ireland. In fact, it went further than the 1949 commitment in that
it
included the wishes of the people of
Northern Ireland as well as the parliament, as guarantors of the Union. Having attempted to reassure the unionists by
this
restatement and nationalists by a
commitment to equality of treatment for all citizens, para. 5 welcomed the reform programme in operation; the establishment of the Parliamentary Commissioner for Administration, the pledge to
reform local government and the allocation of
housing, and the Northern Ireland government undertook: fullest
account
at all
times the views of Her Majesty's
The second communique 5 was
issued after Callaghan's
Ireland towards the end of August 1969 and
was
'to
take into the
Government in visit to
UK'. Northern
the
similarly a record of the
development of the reform programme: the setting up of the Scarman and Hunt Reports (see pp. 26-30), the Northern Ireland government's decision to establish
Community
Commission (CRC) and the role of the joint working commitments on fair housing and employment allocation would be honoured. Further possible reforms were to include machinery to promote good community relations, including legislation to prohibit incitement to religious hatred and a Ministry of Community Relations to give the aims of the CRC some weight at Cabinet level. the
Relations
parties in ensuring that
The
third in the series of communiques 6
October 1969 and highlighted the
was issued
in addition to the social policy
Hunt proposals
had
after Callaghan's visit in
reforms already mentioned,
been published, increased government grants for industrial investment and compensation for damage resulting from civil disorder. The other major reform was the plan to establish a that
just
centralised housing authority responsible for
all public-sector housing provision. was conceded that allegations of sectarianism was one reason, it was also justified on the grounds of the poor quality and quantity of the housing stock in Northern Ireland.
Although
it
The Labour administration 1969-70
25
The reforms announced in the three communiques indicate the thinking of the They formed the bulk of proposals to emerge and it was felt
British government. that, as
they dealt, or were perceived to deal with, the claims of the
civil rights
movement they would be sufficient to restore order to Northern Ireland or, perhaps more precisely, any continuing disorder would lack any legitimate justification and could be met with repression rather than further reform. In fact, there is some evidence that by early 1970 British emphasis had changed from further reform (as opposed to carrying out the pledges of August-October 1969)
condemning the actions of 'sinister elements' or resurgent Republicanism which could not be satisfied by reform. The tenor of the communiques reflects a good deal of accord between the two governments. While making it clear that it was to take a heightened interest in Northern Ireland affairs it suited Westminster to treat Stormont after the fashion of an equal partner since the support of liberal unionism was central to a strategy of preventing the introduction of direct rule. If the Northern Ireland government could point to its lack of room for manoeuvre in face of British pressure it might have the effect of deflecting militant loyalist opposition to the reform programme. British thinking appeared to be based on the idea that support for moderate unionism, allied to changes in central government that Faulkner was to present in 7 197 1, would create circumstances in which enough of the minority population would accept the equity of Northern Ireland administration for stability to be restored. This would allow military disengagement (by February 1970 three of 8 the eight additional army units had returned to Britain) and avoid the necessity to
of greater political integration.
Security policy Security responsibility, prior to August 1969, had rested with the Stormont
government; the principal legislation being the Civil Authorities (Special Powers) Act 1922 which had Northern Ireland state. Under
its its
genesis in the period of consolidation of the provisions the
Home Affairs Minister, without
reference to parliament, was permitted to take any measures he judged
fit
to
maintain public order; arrest without charge and internment being two of the
more
useful
methods
The executive control and had long been a source of Catholic repeal had been part of the Civil Rights Association
to suppress political opposition.
lack of judicial scrutiny of these powers
discontent and calls for platform.
Not only
its
the security provisions themselves but the agencies of
enforcement were closely linked
to the executive
sectarian nature of law enforcement.
the
RUC, was
The
and emphasised the politico-
Inspector-General, the chief officer of
Home Affairs, and despite formal was seen by many Catholics, as Hunt
responsible to the Minister of
operational independence, the
RUC
9
recognised, to be a political force closely identified with unionist supremacy. well as
its
identification with
one
political
As
grouping, the paramilitary nature of the
26
British
RUC
was another
government policy in Northern Ireland 1 969-89
which distinguished
'exceptional' feature
it
from British
policing policy. This, as with the Special Powers Act and the Ulster Special
Constabulary (USC), reflected
its
origins in the violence of the early 1920s (see
Chapter 1). In 1969 it had a strength of approximately 8,400. Its function was that of a part-time militia under the command of the RUC to be mobilised at times of civil disorder.
More
than the
RUC,
the Specials symbolised to the minority
com-
munity the partisan and ill-disciplined nature of the security forces. The Hunt Committee, which was established in the summer of 1969 by Stormont in response to the violence and published its report in October, noted that for 10 no Catholic was a member of the USC but did not go into 'various reasons' details.
Before a consideration of Hunt's recommendations that
was never
it
officially
conceded
openly sectarian fashion.
concluded
that:
that the
The Scarman
Report,
'undoubtedly mistakes were
it
should be recognised
RUC or USC had been used in an 11
in reference to the
RUC,
made and certain individual officers
acted wrongly on occasions. But the general case of a partisan force co-operating
with Protestant reject
it
utterly'.
mobs 12
to attack Catholic
people
However, the report did
is
houses -
all
in
we
of police malpractice, by
USC
deployment, the use of
act or omission, including decisions concerning
machine guns
devoid of substance and
cite six cases
west Belfast, and the failure to prevent
mobs burning
Catholic
occurring in August 1969.
The precise
degree of security-force abuses
the significant point
is
that both the
is
difficult to establish.
However,
RUC and the Specials, particularly the latter,
had shown themselves incapable of re-establishing order and confidence both because of sectarian bias and, more charitably, because they were inadequately trained to deal with the
initial
non-violent protests of the Civil Rights Association
and the later inter-communal conflict and house burning. Moreover, in terms of government policy, the degree of abuse by the RUC and the Specials was less significant than the minority's perception of the extent of the abuses and the lack of confidence in their impartiality. It seemed evident that some reform of the security forces was necessary if the Catholic population was to be reconciled with the Northern Ireland state. Stormont itself had been wary of the use of the USC in support of the RUC in the riots of July and August 1969, but had forces had to be utilised before the
little
alternative, given that all civilian
army could be
called in and the latter's deployment would have far-reaching constitutional implications. In July 1969, according to Scarman, Porter, the Minister of Home Affairs, had authorised the
use of the
USC
in riot control, for
without their being armed. not be used in
on the
The
riot control
On
which
it
was not
specifically trained, but
13 August Chichester-Clark stated that
it
would
but by the 15th the decision was reversed as pressure
RUC mounted. 13 implications of asking Westminster for assistance was clearly foreseen by
The Labour administration 1969-70 the Inspector-General of the
27
RUC when he turned
down
the request
made by
Commissioner of Police on 2-3 August to deploy troops. From early August, however, contingency plans were being made for the use of troops, and consultation was taking place between Stormont and Westminster at official and ministerial level. The Northern Ireland Minister of Home Affairs stated in his submission to the Scarman Report in relation to military intervention that: the Belfast
it
was made
clear that the
General Officer
London and
Commanding should
only consider this
was understood that there would be consultation at governmental level. I think at the time ... it was also indicated that in that eventuality the government in Westminster would have to consider the implication of such question after consultation with
intervention.
again
it
14
August reported a meeting of the Secretary to and the Permanent Secretary to the Home Office
Similarly the Financial Times of 6
the Northern Ireland Cabinet thus:
The
British
Government's view is that it would be the height of folly to allow its troops
(or
of another Government which, rightly or
police) to
be under the
wrongly,
seen as essentially Protestant in oudook and would use the troops to deal with
is
political direction
disorders which were religious in origin. Ministers believe that
unacceptable for troops to be used
were
to
- no matter whose
direction they
it
would be equally
came under - if they
maintain law and order for the existing Northern Ireland Government.
Thus when
it
seemed
inevitable to
15
Westminster that troops would have
deployed, as the escalation of the use of the
to
be
USC had not prevented disorder,
it
was only to be done on the basis of the creation of a joint security committee. This comprise the Northern Ireland Prime Minister and his senior colleagues,
was
to
the
UK's
representative in Northern Ireland
-
a senior Civil Servant or other
Commanding Army and the Chief Constable of the RUC. This arrangement was
appointments as the situation of the British
required - and
the General Officer
Stormont a formal input into the formulation of security policy but, in it would not be able to resist any recommendations which Hunt might make if they were endorsed by Westminster. At the operational level the RUC and the USC were to be subordinate to the GOC in the field of civil dis-
to give
practice,
turbances.
16
The Hunt Report was published in October 1969, two months after the deployment of mainland troops. Its recommendations were based on a concept of 'consensus' policing which was, in theory at least, the British model.
(The other
two members of the Advisory Committee were senior British police
The
RUC was to be
acceptance in
all
relieved of
its
sections of the community.
or guerilla activity should 'by responsibility of the
its
officers).
paramilitary role in an attempt to secure
The
its
task of combating paramilitary
nature and under the constitution ... be the
Government at Westminster'
17
rather than the responsibility
RUC, which ranged from responsibility for non-political crime to border incursions, was to be
of locally controlled forces.
The broad role
of the pre-Hunt
8
British government policy in
2
and
restricted to the former, ing,
protection
its
Northern Ireland 1 96 9-89
state-security role limited to intelligence gather-
of important persons
and law enforcement. As part of would be phased out; those retained
'normalisation' the general issue of firearms
would only be issued
as
and when needed. A more detailed consideration of the was to be undertaken by senior officers
principles governing the use of firearms 18
and the new Police Authority. Apart from its paramilitary nature, Hunt considered that the other major stumbling-block to acceptance of the RUC was its close identification with the Unionist government. Despite the fact
that, in
theory at
least,
the Inspector-
General had operational autonomy, the absence of any monitoring body or structure for public accountability served to emphasise the close relationship
between the Inspector-General and the Minister for Home Affairs. Consequently a Police Authority was to be established which would supervise reorganisation and to which the RUC would be accountable. The committee favoured, in principle, elected members of the authority but felt that this would not adequately represent the minority parties and therefore opted for nominees of various representative bodies, including the universities, the Northern Ireland Chamber of Commerce, the Irish Congress of Trades Unions, the Law Society, the Association of County Councils and four nominees of the Governor of Northern Ireland. The Minister of Home Affairs was empowered to require the Chief Officer (the Chief Constable after ranks had been reorganised along British lines) to submit an annual report to him and to the Police Authority. Additionally, provision was made for annual, or more frequent, inspection by H.M. Inspectorate of Constabulary and an Advisory Board was to be created comprising representatives of all ranks of the RUC, the Police Authority and the Chief Constable under the chairmanship of the Minister of Home Affairs with the function of ensuring good communication and liaison between the authority and the RUC.
The
third element of reform,
was the
supplementing disarmament and accountability,
revision of the complaints procedure
which had no provision
for the
proper recording of complaints or any machinery to avert their suppression by
RUC was free from effective and at worst an organised political police force. Two recommendations were made; the procedure introduced in England and Wales by the Police Act 1964 by which a complaint should be dealt with by a senior officer from another district was to be introduced and the Chief Constable was to be senior officials which reinforced the fears that the legal restraint
committed by his officers. RUC had a relatively 'clean bill of health'. Hunt accepted that genuine efforts had been made to recruit more Catholics into the force. This is presumably why the Committee decided that reform would be sufficient to win the support of the minority and to rename or totally to
vicariously liable for acts
In contrast with the
reconstitute the
extremely
USC, the
RUC would no doubt have been politically and administratively
difficult.
The Labour administration 1969-70
29
Various miscellaneous recommendations endorsed the underlying conceptual
framework of the report; that of 'normalisation' along British lines. Principal among these were the advocation of the abolition of the Special Powers Act (para. 143) and, to emphasise political impartiality, responsibility for prosecutions should be removed from the police and all offences would be handled by the Director of Public Prosecutions. This was premised on the minority community accepting the arbiter role of the British government in being above the conflict. Symbolic of the desire to introduce British standards was the appointment of Sir Arthur Young, a senior officer and City of London Police Commissioner, as Chief Constable for a year to oversee the reorganisation.
The most contentious recommendation in the eyes of the unionist community was that to disband the USC - a reflection of its paramilitary nature and its almost total rejection by the Catholic community. It was to be replaced by a locally recruited part-time force, the Ulster Defence Regiment, under the command of the
GOC (NI) and responsible for 'back-up' security functions in support of the
army, such as guarding key installations and manning road -blocks.
It would not which the USC had already been relieved by 19 the army. The form, strength (Hunt recommended 4,000) and equipment of the force was to be decided by Westminster in consultation with the Northern
be deployed in
riot duties, a role in
Ireland government, the latter represented through the Joint Security
Com-
The Ulster Defence Regiment (UDR) was created by the UDR Act 1969 and instituted on 1 April 1970 as part of the British Army. The Hunt recom-
mittee.
mendations relating to
RUC reorganisation, the establishing of a reserve section
based on the British special constabulary and the Police Authority were intro-
duced under the Police Act (NI) 1970.
These reforms in the security field paralleled those in social policy to the extent were based on the introduction of British standards and required a liberal-democratic consensus to be effective. Events were soon to undermine elements of Hunt. For example, one reason for reconstituting the local security forces was to prevent the necessity of a long-term commitment of troops. However, given the resurgence of violence in spring 1970 an unarmed RUC and UDR not operational in riot control would not prove capable of maintaining order and the former were soon rearmed. In fact 'normal' policing could only be maintained if the army was present to act as the primary security force. Secondly, Rose argues, the report did not fully consider the historical basis of the security forces' evolution in Northern Ireland and thus over-estimated the likely degree of acceptance accorded to the report by the 'reasonable men and women' at whom it was aimed. 20 The disbanding of the USC provoked serious rioting in the Shankill and the reform of the RUC did not quell the fears of the minority. The new complaints system did not solve the problem of identifying individual RUC officers suspected of committing offences, and the fact that inquiries were to remain in the hands of RUC, itself with no independent control, gave grounds for scepticism about its effectiveness. Another problem was that that they
British
3
government policy in Northern Ireland 1 96 9-89
B Specials were being recruited into the UDR which was undermine Catholic trust in it and claims were made that the UDR was 21 being infiltrated by loyalist paramilitaries. This, allied to IRA intimidation and later security-policy measures which were to alienate the minority, meant that the UDR was soon to be bedevilled with the same image of a Protestant force as the USC had had. The proportion of Catholic membership declined from 18-20% former members of the
likely to
at its inception, to
The
8%
shortly after the introduction of internment in 197 1.
failure to define the constitutional
and
legislative basis
22
of the army's role
another indication of the intention of deployment being
Northern Ireland is short-term pending the reform of the indigenous security forces. Not until 1972, following a test case, was the legislative basis of the army's powers to detain and stop and search clarified. Despite Hunt's recommendation of abolition, the Special Powers Act was to remain in force until 1972 and it was under a in
combination of
However, a
later
and Ministry of Defence directive that the army operated. Northern Ireland High Court judgment ruled that Section 4(1)
it
of the Government of Ireland Act 1920 did not cover the actions of the troops but
was limited
to the security forces
in theory, the actions of the in
common
covered by 'transferred' matters.
army could only
It
seems
that,
legitimately extend to those allowed
law: the duty of the citizen to aid the civil authorities in suppressing
government had operated on the assumption that, under the terms of the Special Powers Act, the army was legitimately acting in 23 support of the civil power. This point will be dealt with more fully later as it becomes clear that the resurgence of the IRA and an upsurge in violence meant that army involvement was to be of greater scope and duration than Westminster had envisaged, and was to play a larger role than the indigenous security forces. The implications of this was that the legislative position of army operations had to be clarified and that Hunt's hopes for a 'normal' type of consensual policing were to be marginalised. This trend dates roughly from the worsening relations between the nationalist community and the army towards the end of the Labour disorder, although the British
administration.
Economic policy Economic policy was a 'transferred' matter under the provisions of the 1920 Act and despite the problems of declining agricultural employment and the shedding of labour from the narrow industrial base of the traditional industries of engineering, shipbuilding and textiles, the efforts of the Northern Ireland Ministry of
Commerce had been
relatively successful in the 1960s. While average unemNorthern Ireland exceeded the British average the former's position had improved relatively in this period. The strategy of Stormont for
ployment
rates in
industrial regeneration
ment
was
basically two-fold: the attraction of industrial invest-
into the province to offset the decline in local industry,
development
to facilitate the attraction
of investment.
The
and infrastructural was made easier
first
The Labour administration 1969-70
31
by the large volume, in comparison with the 1970s, of internationally mobile capital in circulation.
Although devolution allowed some scope for flexibility, the strategy of financial support for incoming capital was in
many
respects similar to that of British
was administered under the Development Act (NI) 1966; paralleling British legislation of the same year. The main difference was that a higher rate of capital grant was available in Northern Ireland. Standard capital grants (i.e. assistance not related to the location of the plant or to the amount of employment generated) were provided under the Industrial Investment (General Assistance) Act (NI) 1966. As well as this separate legislation, Northern Ireland also benefited from the provisions of Selective
regional policy.
financial
assistance
Industries
regional policy designed to help disadvantaged areas in Britain as part of the
Labour government's emphasis on equalisation of industrial development between regions. These included the Regional Employment Premium (REP) introduced in 1967 as a direct subsidy to labour employed in assisted areas and the use of Industrial in
more favoured
Development
Certificates to restrict industrial
areas and thus encourage
its
development
location in peripheral areas.
The
Board (NEB), established to promote state-sector investment in industrial projects, also extended to Northern Ireland and would be controlled by the Minister of Development who liaised with the agency responsible in Britain, the Department of Trade and Industry. The other element in the attraction of investment to Northern Ireland, to complement that of direct financial support, was the development of the infrastructure and the encouragement of geographical and occupational mobility in the working population. These were the themes of a series of reports commis24 sioned by Stormont: Matthew (1963) endorsed the restriction on development in Belfast and the encouragement of population movement from rural areas in an attempt to develop medium-sized towns as centres of industrial development. 25 This was the 'growth-centre' concept broadly endorsed by Wilson (1965) and 26 by the Regional Development Programme for 1 975-95. The logic of the
provisions of the National Enterprise
growth-centre strategy, according to Hoare, was that: 'the spatial concentration of limited capital resources in potentially fruitful locations likely to attract a
more even
is
considered more
required volume of manufacturing industrial investment than 27
its
Northern Ireland.' This was to be augmented by an increase in provision of further and higher education and improved communication networks, as with the motorway development programme and modernisation of port facilities in an effort to offset the disadvantages of Northern Ireland's peripheral position in relation to the European market. This brief overview of Northern Ireland industrial policy prior to 1969 shows that a fairly coherent and successful attempt had been made to attract new investment despite the fact that, by most indicators, including rates of unemployment, rates of migration, average wage levels and GDP per capita, Northern Ireland was one of the most disadvantaged regions of the UK and was to be badly dispersal throughout
British
32
government policy in Northern Ireland 1 96 9-89
affected by the decline in mobile investment in the 1970s.
The intervention of the
government in 1969 was not marked by major industrial reform unlike in the areas of social and security policy. The reasons seem to include, as argued above, that although Northern Ireland had separate legislation and responsibility for industrial policy, in essence the policy of support for capital and regional British
incentives reflected that of the
Labour government
in Britain
and some of the
same policy tools were common to both areas. Secondly, Westminster at this time had no desire to take over the administration of Northern Ireland and the relative success of industrial development would have been a strong argument for Stormont to retain control of industrial policy. It was also sometimes argued that having a separate government and civil service to lobby for potential investment gave Northern Ireland an advantage over comparable regions of economic disadvantage in the
UK.
Incremental changes aimed
communique Cmnd 4178. to
at
support for industry were outlined in the
Assistance under the industrial development Acts was
be supplemented by compensation for damage arising from civil disorder.
The
Regional Employment Premium was to be maintained in Northern Ireland for a year after
its
abolition in Britain scheduled for April 1970; the level of the
40% to 45% from 1 October were to create additional employment grants of up to 50% of expenditure would be publicly funded. There was also provision for up to
standard capital grant was to be increased from
1969 and capital
£2
if projects
unemployment,
million to tackle seasonal
largely in the unskilled sector.
In 1970 a government-commissioned development
period 1970-75
programme covering
the
28
was published designed to update the earlier proposals of Matthew (1963) and Wilson (1965). This drew a direct link between improving employment prospects and housing, and reducing violence. In light of the Cameron Report it stated that such developments: 'will be of the greatest relevance to the problem of eradicating the root cause of unrest in Northern 29 Ireland'. The ability to attract new manufacturing industry would depend partly on political stability and this, in turn, would be facilitated by a reduction in unemployment which justified differential levels of grants favouring projects sited in the areas of high unemployment. A third policy advocated by the development programme, was the rapid expansion of industrial training, both through increased apprenticeships and government-sponsored schemes given that new investment would require different skills from those used in heavy industry and agriculture which were, and had been, shedding labour. The subsequent years were to witness an expansion of government-sponsored training centres and by 1975 Northern Ireland had proportionally ten times as
many
places as Britain
private-sector places did not materialise.
30
although the expansion in
The Labour administration 1969-70
33
Social policy
The reforms enacted in response to civil rights agitation and the grievances described by Cameron as a contributory factor in the disorder of 1969 can be broadly categorised into two kinds: those which were the direct adoption of British standards
The
Ireland.
and
latter
practices;
reflected
a
and those which were recognition
that
the
specific to
Northern
adoption of British
standards was insufficient in itself to bring stability to Northern Ireland and that
it
was an
UK. Of
'exceptional' part of the
the former category the
extension of the local government franchise and the adoption of a points
system for housing allocation have already been considered. The third reform was that of the creation of the Parliamentary Commissioner for Administration (PCA). The Parliamentary Commissioner Act (NI) 1969 established, as had the
corresponding British legislation of 1967, a Commissioner
who was charged
by central which had its genesis at Stormont and preceded the interventions of August-October 1969, was undoubtedly
with
the
investigation
of
allegations
government departments. This beneficial to the extent that
central
it
of
maladministration
legislation,
allowed redress for the citizen in the event of
government malpractice which included discrimination on
political or
religious grounds.
However, the impact of the adoption of British
legislation in a situation
of
worsening communal violence and tension would prove to be limited.
The
PCA
such
had no remit
to investigate general patterns of disadvantage in areas
employment; only individual claims could be examined which had to be submitted via a constituent's MP. Judicial decisions and matters relating to
as
beyond the scope of the PCA's consideration and it was assume growing significance in the early 1970s. In addition to the investigation of maladministration comparable to his British counterpart, the PCA was given the responsibility of monitoring those companies which tendered for government contracts. Each company tendering had to undertake not to practice any form of religious discrimination and was obliged to furnish the PCA with any information or documents required in the investigation of an allegation of discrimination. The PCA was required to submit an annual report to Stormont (Westminster after direct rule). These reports show that the work of the PCA reflected closely that of its British
security
were
also
these areas which were to
counterpart in investigating maladministration generally rather than specific claims
of discrimination.
However
this
could
reflect
the
difficulty
in
establishing a prima facie case of discrimination or lack of faith in the possibility
of official redress rather than the absence of discrimination. 31
The creation of the PCA was paralleled by that of the Commissioner for Complaints (CFC) by an Act of 1969; an office which preceded its adoption in Britain. Essentially, the role
of the Commissioner was that of
ombudsman
for
34
British
local
government policy in Northern Ireland 1 969-89
government and other public bodies not within the remit of the PC A. The and remit of the two bodies was demonstrated by the fact that the
similar function
same person was In light of the at the
hold both positions.
to
civil rights
grievances detailed in
Cameron, which was published
Com-
time of the third communique, recording that a Commissioner for
plaints
CFC was of much greater potential significance
was being introduced, the
because the majority of allegations of discrimination had been levelled against local authorities rather than central government The major exception was the
Northern Ireland proportionate
Civil Service
which by the
the lower levels; in 1970 the Parliamentary
extend
its
late
1960s had an approximately
32 number of Catholic personnel but
these were concentrated Commissioner Act was amended
remit to include personnel matters in the Civil Service.
The major limitation on the work of the Commissioner, was
at
to
PC A,
as in his role as
he had no power to consider the patterns of employment or provisions of government services; only to investigate individual complaints of religious
that
local
or political discrimination. This
is
of significance given that Catholic disadvan-
tage (as opposed to direct discrimination) in terms of
unemployment and con-
centration in unskilled sectors has persisted while findings of deliberate discrimi-
nation have been very few in relation to the
number of complaints. For example,
by 1972 the Commissioner had investigated approximately 1,570 complaints of maladministration, of which about 10% had alleged discrimination, and only one of these cases had been upheld
both the
(in
housing) and none in employment.
33
While
PC A and CFC were undoubtedly advances in that they provided redress
for the citizen in cases of maladministration, sufficiently forceful
it is
doubtful that they were seen as
by the minority community, and thus their contribution to
reducing grievances and disorder was limited.
As well as the CFC, four other principal reforms which were specific to Northern Ireland rather than being direct importations of British legislation, originated in the 1969-70 period. These were: the establishment of the Community Relations Commission (CRC) and its Ministry; legislation prohibiting incitement to religious hatred; the removal of housing responsibilities from local authorities to a centralised authority;
authority functions.
The
latter
and the centralisation of other
two were long processes and not completed
local until
1972.
The Ministry of Community Relations Act (NI) 1969 established the Ministry and was shortly followed by the Community Relations Act (NI) 1969 which established an independent Commission. This was composed of an equal number of prominent Protestants and Catholics, ten in total, and the PCA and the
CFC
as ex-officio member(s).
ment had decided
up Callaghan's idea promoted 1969.
to set
The purpose
objectives of the
a
According
to Faulkner, the
Commission but not
at the
Stormont govern-
a Ministry,, the latter being
inter-governmental meeting in
late
August
of a Ministry was probably to try to ensure that the
Commission would have more influence on government and
5
The Labour administration access to resources
if
1 969-70
represented
3
at
Cabinet
level.
A
potential disadvantage,
undermine the work of the CRC, was the unclear division of responsibility between the Minister and the Commission which was to lead to friction when the two bodies had a different conception of what precisely the function of the CRC was; or, more fundamentally, what exacdy did 'community relations' mean. The communique of October 1969, para. 14 stated that:
which was
to
Commission will include encouraging the establishment of harmonious community relations and advising Northern Ireland ministers on questions relating to community relations. The Commission will be authorised to assist local bodies concerned with community relations, to provide training courses, to promote conferences and to the duties of the
undertake research.
The
Minister would have the function of promoting awareness of community
relations
among
his colleagues, of administering legislation to provide
for amenities in socially deprived areas
funding
and of overseeing the functions of the
CRC. The concept of 'community relations' though vaguely defined, had two basic elements. One was to advise, and provide funds for, those groups 'on the ground'
independent
which were attempting
to
improve
social
and recreational amenities
in their
communities. This policy was largely based on the identification of a link between
and violence by the government and the hope that attempts to communal self-help might prove more successful than government paternalism. The second element of the CRC's work was an educative one: allied to material improvement was its role in combating sectarian attitudes and promoting cross-community activities. However, by the time it came into operation in December 1969 this second function was proving difficult to fulfil and most of the CRC's work was in the area of improving conditions within increasingly polarised working-class communities; a worthy aim but less ambitious than the promotional and anti-sectarian function also envisaged. The first chairman of the Commission, Hayes, and one of his deputies,
social deprivation
counter the former via
have both detailed the lack of a coherent strategy for a community programme, the problem of underfunding and the division of responsi35 bility. It is questionable whether either government had a clear strategy for the CRC; as much as it had a precedent upon which to draw it was the experience of racial problems in the USA and to a lesser extent in the UK, and it is arguable if Northern Ireland was comparable, especially once the national question became resurgent. Even if a coherent strategy could be developed based on the implicit belief in a relationship between social deprivation, popular grievance and disorder, the CRC felt that the constraints placed upon it by the Ministry prevented a sufficiendy dynamic approach being adopted. For example, the CRC could only allocate up to £20 to a project without prior ministerial approval and the Griffiths,
relations
Ministry never developed sufficient Cabinet support to ensure wholehearted
Stormont backing
for the community-relations policy.
Hayes
states:
British
36
government policy in Northern Ireland 1 96 9-89
a great difficulty in pursuing a coherent research
programme was
the need to secure
separate ministerial and Treasury approval for individual proposals and even then lack of direct access to argue the case. This caused a great deal of delay a reluctance to involve
academic and other researchers
proposals only to have them rejected at a later date.
The
Social
and confusion and,
in the trouble
finally,
of working up
6
Needs (Grants) Act 1970, administered by
the Ministry of
Com-
munity Relations, provided the statutory basis of the Commission's activities. It provided up to £0.5 million per annum over five years to be spent in areas of high social need.
This money was to be channelled through Community Development
Officers engaged in fieldwork and in liaison with local
community groups. The
which would build on local initiatives and increase confidence in communal self-help and put forward proposals in 1971 for an expansion in operations which would employ up to one hundred community workers in thirty project areas. This was never sanctioned by the Ministry and relations between it and the CRC declined further. Hayes and Griffiths resigned in 1972 and the CRC, which was regarded with some suspicion by local politicians, was wound up and the Ministry abolished by the power-sharing executive in 1974 (see chapter 4). The other specific piece of legislation intended to improve community relations and provide protection for the minority (although it could be used in the case of anti-Protestant agitation) was the Prevention of Incitement to Hatred (NI) Act 1970. It was modelled on British race-relations legislation, which did not apply in Northern Ireland, and, similarly, it was intended to indicate the govern-
Commission argued
for a policy
ment's liberal commitment to equality for
all
sections of society as stressed in the
1969 communique (Cmnd 4154) rather than proving effective in preventing inflammatory speeches or improving cross-communal relations. The Act made it an offence, with a maximum penalty of two years' imprisonment, to publish or distribute written or other matter likely to stir
attacks
up hatred or arouse
on the
religion).
It
which was threatening, abusive or insulting or
fear in any part of the population. (This included
basis of race, colour
proved
difficult to
and ethnic or national origin
as well as
secure prosecutions for two reasons: intent had to
be demonstrated against the accused and the offence had to be committed against a specific person or persons, i.e. a general attack on an institution, society or church was not an offence. Such was the difficulty caused by this framing of the Act that only one prosecution was brought and this was unsuccessful. 37
The third reform of this period specific to Northern Ireland, rather than an adoption of British practices, was the centralisation of public-sector house building and allocation. As
Cameron had noted, allegations of discrimination in housing allocation had been a major part of the civil rights movement's protest; a blatant example of this in the Dungannon area had fuelled the protests of autumn 1968.
As mentioned above, Stormont had undertaken
to introduce a points
scheme
The Labour administration 1969-70
37
before British intervention in 1969. Centralisation and the corresponding loss of local authority powers
was only
likely to
was not popular with the majority of the Unionist Party and
be effected under pressure from Westminster.
The
decision to
was contained in the October communique (Cmnd 4178) and it should be noted that the question of discrimination was only one, and not the principal, stated reason for such a policy. The Stormont-commissioned Development 38 Programme for 1970-75 had advocated a housing expansion programme of 73,500 new starts over the five-year period to remedy the poor housing stock in Northern Ireland and to boost construction employment. The British government supported these proposals and para. 21 of the communique listed five advantages to be accrued from administration by a central agency; a common public -authority rent structure, the facilitation of geographical mobility which 39 would further regional development and employment, the attraction of betterqualified professional staff, various economies of scale, and the ending of allegacentralise
tions of sectarian discrimination.
The centralised
authority,
which was
to take over all the responsibilities
to
be named the Housing Executive, was
of local authorities, the three Development
Commissions and the Housing Trust,
a
body funded by central government
supplement the house-building programme of the
local
authorities.
to
The
meant that was not completed until mid 1972 and the organisational structure of the Northern Ireland Housing Executive (NIHE) will be dealt with below (see administrative details of such a large-scale transfer of responsibilities the process
chapter
3).
removed from the and centralised. The reasons were similar: it was predominandy part of the modernising and rationalising policy which O'Neill had embarked upon and which was also transforming local government in Britain, and partly a response to claims of discrimination. Following the White Paper of July 1969 a 40 review body was established in December 1969 to consider the reorganisation of local government. Its conclusions were published in 1970 in which it recommended the abolition of the existing structure of both the rural and urban district councils and the county councils and their replacement with twenty-six singletier authorities which were to retain only the functions carried out by 'lower-tier' authorities in the rest of the UK. Four area boards were to be created to administer Health and Social Services and five area boards to administer Education and Library Services. The committees of the boards would be appointees of central government and the new district councils were to be responsible to central government departments. Other functions removed from local administration were responsibility for planning, roads, water, sewerage and car parks which were to be directly controlled by the Ministry of Development. This process of reorganisation was to take until 1973. It should be noted that the undemocratic and bureaucratic tendencies in the Macrory proposals might, to an extent, have been offset by the continued In addition to housing, other major functions were to be
local authorities
38
British
government policy in Northern Ireland 1 969-89
existence of a devolved administration and one which was possibly going to be
enlarged; indeed Macrory presented these proposals on the assumption that
Stormont was
to
continue.
The
tend to exalt technical and
report did
professional administration over democratic control but as local democracy had, in
some
cases, taken sectarian
forms such centralisation could be seen as
progressive although sectarian abuse was only part of the reason for reform
among a
general trend of reorganisation to facilitate economic efficiency.
Conclusion
The main
feature of this period of initial intervention
is
the broad scope of
reforms either instituted or proposed, especially in the areas of social policy and security policy; particularly since there
communiques of 1969 and Labour's
was only ten months between the
defeat in 1970. This reflects the fact that
the opportunities for government action were considerable, given the articu-
movement and associated government had the important advantage over its successors in that it entered the arena with what appeared to be clearly defined tasks, before the resurgence of the national question and lated
and unexceptional demands of the
The
bodies for equality of treatment.
without their inheritance of failed
The second one
to
work
Civil Rights
British
initiatives.
important feature of this administration
solely
specific reforms, with constitutional blueprints
would be Unionist
is
that
it
was the only
through Stormont. This was determined by the belief that being of marginal significance,
community into the system of would preclude the need for prolonged
sufficient to re -integrate the minority political control. This, in turn,
British security
and administrative intervention. marked by a high level of bipartisanship between the
Thirdly, this period was
two main British parties. The Conservatives challenged neither the strategy of working through Stormont nor the attempts to improve the position of the minority through institutional and legislative reform.
Notes 1
'Text of a
Downing
St.
Communique and
on 19/8/69'
Cmnd 4154
2
ibid. p. 2.
3
SeeHamiH1985chs7and8.
4
Cmnd 4154 op. cit. p.
5
Text of a Communique
3.
issued on 29th August 1969 at the conclusion of the
of the Secretary of State for the 1969. 6
'Text of a
Communique
Home
Department
to
Northern Ireland'
Cmnd
visit
4158
issued following discussions between the Secretary of Department and the Northern Ireland Government in Belfast on 9th 10th October 1969' Cmnd 4178 1969.
State for the
&
Declaration issued after a meeting held at 10 1969.
Home
.
The Labour administration 1969-70
39
'The Future Development of the Parliament and Government of Northern Ireland'
7
Cmd 560 Belfast
1971.
8
Bew and
9
Hunt 'Report of the Advisory Committee on
Belfast
Patterson 1985 p. 22.
10
ibid. p. 163.
11
Scarman Report 'Violence and
Cmd 566 Belfast
Civil
ibid. p. 15.
13
ibid. p. 17.
14
ibid. p. 130.
15
ibid. p. 130.
16
See
17
Hunt op. cit. para. 80. From February 1971 all unarmed
18
Cmd 535
Disturbances in Northern Ireland in 1969'
1972.
12
1978
Police in Northern Ireland'
1969 paras 84-94.
Cmnd 4154
1969.
patrols
were withdrawn
in Belfast (Faulkner
p. 74).
HC Vol. 788 Col.
19
Healey
20
Rose 1971
154 13/10/69.
p. 146.
21
Farrell cited in
22
ibid. p. 185.
O'Dowd, Rolston and Tomlinson 1980 p.
23
HC Vol. 83
24
Matthew Report
25
Wilson Report 'Economic Development
1
cols
186.
285-7 23/2/72.
1
'Belfast Regional
Survey and Plan' in
Cmd 45 1
Belfast
Northern Ireland'
Cmd
1 963 479 Belfast
1965.
26
'Northern Ireland Regional Physical Development Strategy 1975-95' Belfast
1977.
27
Hoarel976p.
28
'Northern Ireland Development Programme 1970-1975'
29
ibid. para. 2.
10.
McGurnaghan and Sams 1977 p.
30
Davies,
31
This problem was
to
Cmd
547 Belfast 1970.
303.
be encountered by the Fair Employment Agency created in
1976.
32 See Birrell 1978b and 'Report of an Investigation by the Fair Employment Agency Northern Ireland into the non-industrial Northern Ireland Civil Service' FEA Belfast,
for
1983.
33
Palleyl972p.423.
34 35 36 37
Faulkner 1978
p. 68.
Griffiths 1974,
Hayes 1972.
Hayes
p. 93.
Twelfth Report of SACHR(HC 151) 1987 Appendix A,
consolidated in the Public Order (NI) Order 1981 and
p. 33. The 1970 Actwas amended by the Public Order (NI)
Order 1987. 38 'Northern Ireland Development Programme 1970-1975' Cmd 547 Belfast 1970. 39 The development plans of the 1960s (see p. 31) had endorsed a growth-centre strategy which would necessitate population movements. 40 Macrory Report 'Report of the Review Body on Local Government in Northern Ireland'
Cmd 546 Belfast 1970.
The
Conservative administration
1970-74
Introduction
The
Conservative Party came to power in June 1970 under the leadership of
Heath, winning 330 seats to Labour's 287 and having an overall majority of 30. radically
servative
new government's
policy would depart As Callaghan has recorded his Con'shadow' Quintin Hogg had been supportive of Labour policy in the
There was
little
to suggest that the
from that of
its
1
predecessor.
preceding two years and there was
little
indication that a Conservative lobby
one that had influence on the leadership, which advocated a reappraisal of Irish policy. Despite this, elements in the Unionist Party had hoped existed, or at least
2
owing to the links between the two parties, a Conservative administration would prove more sympathetic to them. This would fundamentally mean less supervision of the Stormont administration and rather more emphasis on 'law and order' and less on Catholic grievances. It seemed unlikely that there would be a significant change of policy direction. Firstly, Northern Ireland did not seem to be high on the political agenda of the Conservative leadership. Heath himself had never been associated with the Unionist lobby within the party and he was personally concerned with economic modernisation based on a revival of laissez-faire principles and entry into the European Community. Secondly, any shift which was perceived to be proUnionist or a retreat from the reforms instituted by the Labour government could have a potentially adverse effect on relations with the opposition and neither party wanted Ireland to become a contentious issue in British politics. Thirdly, as that,
indicated above, there was no significant lobby, either within his party or in Britain as a whole, which
was pressing Heath for a markedly different policy. However, there were developments in Northern Ireland itself which were to undermine the general policy of building on the strategy which had been inherited. In
1970 there had been a continuing fragmentation and evolution of
the party system and a resurgence of nationalism with a worsening of relations
between the army and the Catholic population.
Among
the
more
significant of
The Conservative administration
1 970-74
41
these events was the increasing prominence of Unionists opposed to further
concessions to the Catholic community and to O'Neill's perceived liberalism. In
March
five
Unionist
MPs had been expelled
the government in a vote of confidence,
from the party
for failing to support
among them Craig who came to be one of
the leading figures in 'hardline' loyalism, and an advocate of stronger security
measures against the resurgent IRA and an opponent of political accommodation 3 Paisley, another who came to symbolise loyalist intransigence, was elected to Stormont in a by-election in
with the representatives of the minority community.
was elected to Westminster. The importance of these developments was that the British policy of working through Stormont was likely to be that much more difficult if the Unionist Party (no other was likely to be able to form an administration) could no longer count on the support of the majority community. In an attempt to stem factionalism within the Unionist Party and April and in June
head off support for those outside the party, like Paisley, O'Neill resigned in March and was replaced as leader by Chichester-Clark who was considered to be more capable of placating the hawkish element within the party. A similar process of political recasting was taking place outside the unionist community. In April the Alliance Party was formed and specifically aimed to provide a moderate bi-confessional alternative in Northern Ireland.
Of greater
was the creation of the Social Democratic and Labour Party (SDLP) 4 in August from nationalist, labourist and civil rights elements in the province. As this party was soon to establish itself as the dominant one in the Catholic community it was to be an integral part of the later 'power-sharing' initiatives especially as the Northern Ireland Labour Party continued to decline and the British Labour Party gravitated to the SDLP as the most effective and repre5 sentative political counterweight to unionism in Northern Ireland. significance
If the fluid state
of party politics
made British policy more difficult to effect so IRA in 1970 following the split in the
too did the rise of the Provisional
Republican movement
end of 1969 with the advocates of a physical force 6 dominance. The implications of resurgent Republicanism for the policy of reform was immense: if the question of the legitimacy of the Northern Ireland state's existence rather than the question of equality of treatment within it became the dominant ideological force in Catholic politics the reform strategy would have obvious limitations. The prospects for Republicanism asserting itself were helped by: the worsening Catholic-army relations which date from approximately the accession of the Conservative government; the riots in Ballymurphy, West Belfast in April and the strategy
Falls
establishing
at the
their
Road curfew ofJuly are
often cited as the turning-point in the deterioration
between (elements of) the Catholic population and the army. Bew and Patterson (1985) have argued that the 'drift' towards an emphasis on security from 1970 and away from social and economic reform, which Labour criticised, 7 was, however, already detectable towards the end of Labour's tenure. This reflected a feeling of frustration that the reform package of the 1969 comin relations
42
British
government policy in Northern Ireland
1 969-89
muniques (see chapter 2) had not prevented an increase in the level of violence, and a realisation that a quick resolution of the 'problem' was diminishing. The above is only a brief overview of the complex of political developments of 1970. not to be exhaustive but to highlight how the'se developments might undermine the British policy of support for the Unionist administration. If
The main point is it
could not effect Catholic acquiescence without alienating the Protestant
population and cause a further fragmentation of the unionist bloc, backing
Chichester- Clark would be a policy producing fewer returns.
Constitutional policy
June 1970 to Direct Rule
The
initial
period of the Conservative administration did not contain any major
rethinking by the British government in the direction of constitutional reform. In
was because the only realistic alternative to support for the Unionist government appeared to be direct rule which most commentators did not see as being advantageous for the government; partly because it was not clear exactly why its introduction would improve the situation. In the House of Commons in April 1971 Wilson said of Direct Rule: 'the Government of which I was the head would have said that it was the last thing we would have considered, and I believe 8 that this is the position of the present Government\ Wilson went on to say that he opposed the introduction of direct rule because he did not consider that it would materially affect the problems of security and violence. The army had operational control of security although the constitutional control was shared between Stormont and Westminster through the Ministry of Defence. At this time Labour did not want the British government to take direct control but rather be less susceptible, as they saw it, to the hawkish elements in the Unionist Party 9 and allow Faulkner less latitude in the formulation of security policy. The introduction of internment in August 1971 (see pp. 56-60) brought into sharp relief two fundamental problems. Firstly, it had the effect of unifying Catholic opposition to the Faulkner government and thus made the strategy of attempting reform through Stormont increasingly problematic; and secondly it heightened doubts, especially among the Labour opposition, that the Joint Security Committee established in 1969 was an adequate vehicle for Westminster's supervision of Stormont security policy. Most of the speculation about possible constitutional developments came from part, this
the opposition in this period. In
September 1971 Wilson proposed the estab-
lishment of a Commission as a means to increase Westminster's control of
Stormont.
would
The Commission would be composed of MPs of both parliaments and
members of an enlarged Northern Ireland Senate to ensure a wider cross-section of the Northern Ireland community than that provided by also include
elected
MPs. It would have recommend the
tion or to
the
power
to scrutinise
introduction of
new
and delay Stormont legislaWestminster in
legislation to
The Conservative administration 1 970-74 default of Stormont so doing.
For example,
to introduce further reforms at a
43 it
would intervene
if
Stormont
failed
pace considered desirable by Westminster.
Its
powers could also extend to a study of the Special Powers Act and make it subject to annual renewal by Westminster and to the monitoring of public expenditure to ensure that
it
was equitably distributed both geographically and between the two
communities. This proposal should be seen as an attempt to stave off direct rule rather than as a drift towards
it.
It
was, however, somewhat unrealistic in that
such a degree of scrutiny might undermine what credibility Stormont had
was
also the constitutional difficulty that the
and There
left
precipitate direct rule rather than reduce the chances of its introduction.
Government of Ireland Act 1920 did little room for
not furnish mechanisms for closer scrutiny in this form; there was
manoeuvre between the In
existing relationship
November 1971 Wilson
and prorogation or
abolition.
further refined his constitutional proposals
advocating long-term reunification based upon a constitution agreed by representatives
Dail, Stormont and Westminster and to come into agreement was reached. It was unlikely that any of the would take this proposal seriously, advocating as it did that
drawn from the
effect fifteen years after the
parties to the conflict
the Republic of Ireland rejoin the
Commonwealth
and, as an incentive to
be forthcoming to and range of social security provisions in the Republic. These proposals by Wilson, and Callaghan's tentative suggestions for an all-Ireland council to consider joint economic and security initiatives, had little influence on the Conservative government. They seemed largely designed to allow Wilson to unionists, the suggestion that British financial support should
improve the
level
contrast his
own
activity to the inertia
constitutional policy
The Northern
when faced with
among
a rapidly
the Conservatives in the field of
worsening
Ireland government produced two
situation.
Command
Papers in
late
community and also to the British government the degree to which the demands of the civil rights movement had been satisfied. The first, entitled 'A Record of Constructive 10 Change', was published in August and detailed the advances made in the reform programme agreed with the British government in 1969. These included 1971, both of which were intended to demonstrate to the minority
the reform of local government, the centralisation of many of its functions to area
boards and the extension of the franchise, the creation of the Housing Executive, the establishment of the Ministry of Community Relations
Commissioner, who
in his
and the Parliamentary
second Annual Report recorded that he had found no
evidence of discriminatory or culpable action by organs of central government.
The paper argued that the Northern Ireland government was not content with the minimum reforms of the 1969 agreements but was seeking to further safeguards against discrimination. In June 1971 Faulkner had announced that those companies tendering for government contracts would be required to give
an undertaking not to practise religious discrimination and the government was
now considering
similar measures to cover the private sector, although progress was dependent on the active co-operation of the trade unions and employers'
44
British
representatives.
One
reform of security
government policy
in
Northern Ireland 1 969-89
made was
that of
in the five-point
reform
area in which progress had not been
legislation.
This had been included
November 1968 but changes to the Special Powers Act were unlikely to be made while violence continued at the present level. The Green Paper was to have little impact as the introduction of internment in August and the killing of two Catholics by the army in disputed circumstances in
plan discussed with Wilson in
July had effectively undermined the legitimacy of Stormont in the eyes of the
Catholic community.
The
refusal of the British
government
to hold a public
inquiry into the two deaths precipitated the boycott of Stormont by the
and the establishment of an
SDLP
alternative, albeit short-lived, assembly. Against this
background, the detailing of the implementation of the reform programme as an indication of government good faith had become of marginal significance.
The same criticism may be levelled against the Green Paper of October 1971, 'The Future Development of the Parliament and Government of Northern 11 which was also insufficient to deal with the Ireland: A Consultative Document; of the situation given the SDLP boycott, although in June 1971 the had welcomed the committee proposals. The paper oudined three reasons for the review of central government: the major reorganisation of local government would increase the burden on the central administration, the lack of acceptance of the present system of Stormont by the minority and the government's desire for unity within the province. The proposals were thus aimed at improving the functioning of Stormont and increasing the role of non-unionist parties represented in it. Three new functional committees in the lower house to cover Social Services, Environmental Services and Industrial Services were proposed; their functions being to consider policy, to review the performance of the executive and consider legislation at the committee stage. The committees were to be broadly representative of the relative party strengths within the House and two of the four (the three new ones plus the existing Accounts Committee) would be chaired by opposition members. The other major proposals were the possibility of introducing alternatives to the first-past-the-post system with STV being the favoured option, and to increase the number of seats in the Commons by between twenty and thirty from realities
SDLP
the existing figure of fifty-two. Both these measures would be likely to increase the representation of members of the minority
community and those outside the two principal confessional groups, i.e. the Alliance and the NILP. The Senate was also to be enlarged to include representatives of local government and individuals outside the
main party groupings. Faulkner was
also prepared to
consider persons outside the Unionist Party and persons who were not members of the Commons for Cabinet positions. This move had predated the publication
of the Green Paper, since in April 1971 Bleakley, a member of the NILP and at that time not a Stormont MP, had been appointed Minister of Community Relations.
Under
was limited
to six
1920 Government of Ireland Act his tenure was not a member of the House of Commons.
a provision in the
months
as he
The Conservative administration
More
significant, in
1 970-74
45
view of the increasing polarisation in Northern Ireland, were
the limitations on reform of central government.
was
specifically ruled out.
The concept of power sharing who did not uphold the
Faulkner argued that people
Union and renounce violence could not
exercise collective responsibility with
Unionists. Para. 38 stated:
Government
the
believes that suggestions for a form of 'Proportional Representation
Government' where the
would be represented
parties in Parliament
in the executive in
proportion to their strength, are fundamentally unrealistic.
The need
to bolster Faulkner's position
made
to press for further reforms or question the
the 'Constructive Change' paper.
February 1971,
the British government unwilling
pace of implementation as outlined in
A speech by Maudling, the Home Secretary, in
illustrated that the
government thought
caused by
that disorder
grievances had been superseded by that of insurrection:
movement forward of the reform programme, we now been cast back in the last few weeks into this turbulence and violence once again, particularly in the streets of Belfast. Surely it may be that there is a linkage between these it is
deeply disturbing that despite the
have
two things. Because the reform programme was going ahead, because there was more peace and quiet in Belfast, so the people whose tool of trade
compelled
to start a
long cherished.
new campaign of violence
is
violence
felt
that they
to achieve the objectives that they
were
have so
12
From the introduction of direct rule to the
1973 White Paper
March 1972 as the division of responsibility for was becoming increasingly untenable to Westminster in view of the worsening violence (1972 was to be the worst year for deaths in Northern Ireland) and there was no indication that Faulkner's tentative proposals for constitutional reform were sufficient to appease the Catholic community whose attitudes had been further hardened by the incident of 'Bloody Sunday' in January 1972. Control of security was the touchstone of the meeting between Faulkner and Heath and their respective senior colleagues on 22 March. Faulkner was prepared to compromise on the other demands of the British government - the gradual phasing out of internment, and a referendum designed to remove the question of the border from the day-to-day political scene - but relinquishing control of security would remove the last vestiges of dignity from Stormont and Direct rule was introduced on 24 security
Faulkner resigned.
The
suspension of Stormont was designed to be short-term.
of the Ireland Act 1949, Stormont was to be prorogued
Under
initially for
the terms
one year and
Westminster would assume 'full and direct responsibility for the administration of Northern Ireland until a new political solution to the problems of the Province can be worked out in consultation with
all
concerned'.
13
This was
to include
representatives of paramilitary groups as well as constitutional politicians,
and
46
British
government policy
in
Northern Ireland 1 969-89
the remainder of 1972 saw a succession of talks aimed at trying to establish sufficient
common ground between
sentative institution in
the groupings to reconstitute a repre-
Northern Ireland.
The suspension of Stormont, later to be followed by its abolition in the Northern Ireland Constitution Act 1973, was constitutionally uncontroversial in that both the Government of Ireland Act 1920 and the Ireland Act 1949 subordinated the Northern Ireland parliament to that of Westminster.
The
administrative and legislative arrangements necessitated by prorogation were dealt with by the
Northern Ireland (Temporary Provisions) Act 1972. Legislation
be made by Orders in Council rather than by integrating it into the British system. This was because the government intended some form of devolutionary
was
to
structure to be established (though not necessarily with the
same
responsibilities
Stormont had previously enjoyed) and it would thus be easier to devolve power if legislative machinery was kept separate. The disadvantage was that, pending devolution, Orders in Council were not subject to the same scrutiny and amendment as conventional legislation in the Commons. Orders placed before the House had to be accepted or rejected in the form presented. This, allied to the small amount of time allocated to Northern Ireland matters in the Commons and the decision not to establish a Northern Ireland Committee, became a source of complaint for Northern Ireland representatives, Executive administration was vested in the newly created Secretary of State and his ministerial team which, through the Northern Ireland Office, would be responsible for the ministerial duties formerly held by the Stormont Cabinet. William Whitelaw was appointed Secretary of State, replacing the Governor as Chief Executive and assuming responsibility for security. His deputies were David Howell (responsible for Finance, Commerce and Agriculture), Paul Channon (Health and Social Security and Education) and Lord Windlesham 14 (Development, Community Relations and Home Affairs). The centralisation of many local government powers in Stormont and then the removal of Stormont itself had reduced the role of elected representatives in Northern Ireland, and in order to offset what has been compared to a quasicolonial form of administration an advisory commission was established to facilitate some local input into the policies of the Secretary of State and the Northern Ireland Office. Unionists were to boycott it in protest at the introduction of direct rule; however eleven members were appointed by Whitelaw on 25 May, drawn from various agencies in the Province, including the trade unions, the Police Authority, along with a
member
of
LEDU
and an academic repre-
sentative.
Although the details had not then been appraised, the policy of the government centred upon securing conditions for the revival of a devolved institution. It was thought this process might be facilitated by the continuing fragmentation of unionist politics which occurred as positions on direct rule were struck. Constitutional nationalists,
now
largely represented
by the
SDLP, were
unlikely to
The Conservative administration
1 970-74
47
settle for less than a guaranteed position within a new executive and attempts would be made to create or encourage a unionist grouping which would also countenance such a development. As indicated above, the way in which direct rule was introduced and its being subject to annual renewal indicated that it was seen primarily as a short-term measure; a necessary- response to the crisis
in security.
Devolution as an end had advantages in the lack of alternatives. Withdrawal
and/or a united Ireland were not seen as
realistic
and of
little
influence on
either front bench given the undertaking of the 1949 Act in respecting the
legitimacy of northern majority consent. Wilson and Callaghan's tentative
proposals concerning institutional arrangements with the Republic possibly leading to unity in the long term would have to be based on consent in
Northern Ireland. This would
entail
a
tripartite
arrangement of which a
devolved structure to provide Northern Ireland representatives would be necessary.
The
option of
full
Union of 1801 and
was also not favoured by either of the would risk recreating the problems of the 15 blunder of the first magnitude\
integration
British parties. Callaghan thought
be: 'an historic
it
Integration also had
little support in Ireland. Relations with the Republic and with the nationalist parties in the north would be worsened by such a policy and it was advocated by only an insignificant number of unionists, for
example
Paisley. Direct rule
provoked
little
parliamentary opposition, apart
from that of the Unionists, and there were only eighteen votes cast against the second reading and thirteen against the third reading on the 29 March. Direct rule
stepped up
itself
its
did nothing to reduce violence in the short term as the
campaign and the death
period immediately following direct rule
rate increased. it
16
IRA
However, during the
has been suggested that elements in
the Provisionals were considering the possibility of political negotiations rather solely on British a bombing campaign to precipitate There was also pressure among the Catholic community and from constitutional nationalists for a reduction in violence, and this led to the ceasefire of late June 1972. This was followed by talks between the Provisional leadership and Whitelaw in London. The main reason why Whitelaw was prepared to include paramilitaries in 18 political discussions was to ascertain the political position of the IRA. The Provisionals were a significant force in the situation which could not be ignored and a ceasefire would allow a breathing space while longer-term political and security policy could be formulated. If it were possible to bolster the 'political' element within the movement, this might both reduce violence and prepare the ground for its involvement in some form of internal settlement. It has been suggested that rather than push the Provisionals towards 'politics' the government wanted to demonstrate their basic 19 inflexibility and commitment to violence; thus the exclusion of the Provisionals from further political negotiations would be seen to stem from
than
reliance
withdrawal.
17
48
British
their irredentism rather than
government policy
in
Northern Ireland 1 969-89
from the government refusal to listen to all parties to
the conflict. 20
are beyondthe scope of this the commitment to use of arms remained and book but, for whatever reasons, the further political negotiation. Despite the them from thus tended to preclude truce collapsed after a fortnight on the 9 the granting of 'special category status' low profile, having adopted a moved into the no-go Army, July and the British campaign. From then on the emphasis bombing areas following a renewed
The
internal political shifts of the Provisionals
switched to the constitutional parties.
sanguine about moving
It is
doubtful
if
the government were too
the Provisionals towards involvement in a political
settlement, but the negotiations
had allowed them
to
demonstrate the other's
unreasonableness.
A discussion paper on Northern Ireland policy, the Northern Ireland Office's 'The Future of Northern Ireland' was published in October 1972. This followed on constitutional initiatives held at Darlington in September to which the political parties were invited. The prospects for any advance looked slender; the fragmentation of political groupings had not produced a realignment towards the centre, i.e. those wishing for accommodation with representatives of the other community. The Democratic Unionist Party (DUP), formed by Paisley and Boal in September 1971, boycotted the talks over the lack of a judicial inquiry into the deaths of two men in a confrontation between the army and Protestants on the Shankill Road. The three main nationalist parties, the SDLP, the Nationalist Party and the Republican Labour Party, boycotted the conference owing to the continuation of internment. (Attempts were in progress to find alternative measures but until concluded the government would not commit itself to unilaterally phasing out internment). This left in attendance the NILP, the Unionist Party and the Alliance. The government's thinking centred on a devolved assembly with broad crosscommunity support, but the submissions by those present, and papers submitted to Whitelaw by those boycotting, offered little encouragement for this policy. For a conference
example, of the principal unionist groups the Ulster Unionists advocated a
unicameral
representative
majoritarian principle, and
institution its
with
the
members drawn from
executive
formed on the
the largest party. Control of
policing was to be returned to the assembly (or whatever
name
it
was given) and
the role of Dublin restricted to co-operation in the suppression of terrorism and
an affirmation of Northern Ireland's right to self-determination, such as a statement by the Taoiseach recognising Northern Ireland. The DUP, by contrast, favoured full integration into the
UK
on the grounds
that any
new
assembly/parliament would not have the same powers as Stormont had enjoyed.
For the
nationalists, the
SDLP
favoured an assembly elected by
STV, and
executive positions proportional to the party strengths. Security would remain
under the control of Westminster and the Republic would be directly involved through the creation of joint sovereignty, which would be an interim stage to
The Conservative administration unification by consent.
paralleled those of the
The
1
970-74
49
proposals of the
NILP and
the Alliance broadly
SDLP on the composition of the assembly and the control
of security, but the former specifically rejected what was to become Irish
known as 'the
dimension' and any involvement by the Republic in discussions on 21
Northern Ireland's political future. Given the lack of consensus between the parties, the British government laid down the minimum requirements and parameters for political developments in the discussion paper. The main emphasis was on a revised form of assembly. Attlee's pledge in the
1949 Act concerning the consent principle ruled out
joint
sovereignty or the repartition of Northern Ireland, and para. 73 ruled out
independence, given that Britain could not maintain financial or military support while conceding virtual sovereign status. Integration, as argued above, enjoyed
Westminster and was not seriously entertained by the paper, it had little support in Northern Ireland, would make relations with the Republic more difficult, and increase the legislative burden on little
support
which noted
at
that
Westminster.
Having established a devolved assembly as its favoured option (since was not on the agenda owing to the lack of consent) para. 79 laid down that it would be necessary to receive cross-community support: 'real participation should be achieved by giving minority interests a share in the exercise of executive power'. To relate these proposals back to the Darlington submissions it was clear that any institutionalised Irish Dimension would conflict with the positions of the DUP, the Ulster Unionist Party and the NILP, and guaranteed executive positions for minority parties were acceptable only to the last of these parties. The government's strategy now rested on hopes for a further realignment of unionist groups producing some which would support the power-sharing unification
concept.
The
question of the Irish dimension was the second major element of the
paper. Interdependence between north and south in the areas of security and
economic policy, as well as the impending common membership of the EEC from 1 January 1973, were arguments supporting a closer relationship. Para. 78 stated that: 'whatever arrangements are
made
for the future administration of
Northern Ireland must take account of the province's relationship with the Republic of Ireland'. As with many of the official statements and communiques concerning the Irish dimension this paragraph is a model of non-specificity.
However,
if
the 1949 Act ruled out either sovereignty by the Republic or joint
acknowledge the legitimacy of the Republic's which was more explicit than any time since the abortive Council of Ireland provided for in the 1920
sovereignty, this section did
interest in the evolution of Northern Ireland policy at
Government of Ireland Act. This recognition laid the foundation for the resurframework which would come to the fore in the following
rection of the Council year.
Before the proposals were fashioned into a White Paper a referendum was
50
British
government policy
in
Northern Ireland 1 969-89
held on the constitutional position of Northern Ireland. With the introduction of
Heath had committed the government to a plebiscite on the grounds would reassure the people of the province that their consent would be 22 and that this would have the effect of bringing greater respected on its future province. The Border Poll, as it was termed, was held on 8 political stability to the provisions of the Northern Ireland (Border Poll) Act March 1973 under the questioned the value of such a poll when Heath had first 1972. Labour had was also critical of its timing. Labour felt that the poll announced it and the party Paper on constitutional the White proposals and feared that it should not precede tensions. Another community problem was that there were was likely to heighten which vote; Northern Ireland remaining for to as part of the UK, only two choices direct rule,
that
it
new administration The nationalist parties advocated a boycott and on a turn-out
or joining the Republic. Possible internal arrangements for a
were not canvassed.
of 58.5% retaining the British link had a majority of 591,820 votes to 6,463 respectively
The
57.5% and 0.6% of the
electorate.
1973 White Paper and the Sunningdale Conference
The White Paper published in
March
Paper and outlined
'Northern Ireland Constitutional Proposals' which was 1973, reiterated the points five principal
made
in the
1972 Discussion
areas which, although not enjoying all-party
agreement, were considered by the government to be the possible basis of political
advance. These were
legislative
some form of devolved
institution; a
unicameral
assembly of between eighty and one hundred members; an important
committee structure within the executive; codification of human rights and freedoms; and institutional arrangements for co-operation and consultation on an all-Ireland basis. The preamble to the White Paper recognised the need to co-operate with the Republic on social and economic issues and to facilitate
role for a
effective regional policies
through co-operation in the
main
constitutional proposals
more
likely to reflect the divisions in the unionist
EEC.
It
then dealt with the
which would form the basis of a following Bill, having reaffirmed the pledge of the 1949 Act bolstered by the Border Poll result. The assembly itself was to be granted legislative and executive powers since the government felt that the devolution of substantial authority would be an incentive for the Northern Ireland parties to make it work and it would reduce the burden on Westminster. It was to have approximately eighty members elected by STV based on the existing twelve Westminster election constituencies. STV was
community and
potentially
allow smaller party representation which would increase the chances of support for the government's plans for the constitution of the assembly.
The heads of the Northern Ireland departments would be drawn from assembly members and would collectively form the executive. To ensure a close link between executive and legislature and to ensure that assembly members were closely involved
in policy
making, each head of department was to be
1
The Conservative administration
1
970-74
5
chairperson of a functional committee which would be associated with policy
development as well as reviewing departmental
activities.
This procedure would
replace the non-elected Advisory Commission, an interim the Northern Ireland loss of power
(Temporary Provisions) Act 1972
to
body established by compensate for the
by local representatives.
government belief that the majority of people in both to succeed and that: 'it is the view of the Government that the Executive itself can no longer be solely based upon any single party'; a wider base than simple majority rule was necessary. Therefore the composition of the executive would have to be proportionate to the party Para. 52 expressed the
communities wanted the Assembly
strengths in the assembly to prevent the abuses associated with the one-party rule
of Stormont. In answer to
critics
who argued
that these proposals
were undemo-
unworkable the government maintained that majority rule only worked equably where there was alternation of parties forming the administration.
cratic or
While wishing to emphasise the powers of the assembly and its potential role in political co-operation, Westminster was to reserve any matters which could prove to be a source of controversy or which were likely to cause a stalemate in the assembly's operation. Electoral and legal arrangements, including franchise qualifications and the appointment of judges and magistrates, and security policy were to be outside the competence of the assembly though all had previously been within the remit of Stormont. The sovereignty of Westminster was underlined in that it could overrule any assembly decision concerning transferred matters, which were to be largely those of Stormont with the exception of those cited above, and therefore examples encouraging cross-community
included education, housing, social services, industrial development, environ-
ment and
agriculture.
To
compensate
for security
being a reserved matter the
executive was to have an advisory role in the formulation of policing policy and the district councils
were also accorded an advisory
role to the executive
and the
Secretary of State as partial compensation for their loss of 'upper-tier' respon-
government reorganisation. on the Council of Ireland stated:
sibilities after local
The As
section
far as the
United Kingdom
formation of such a body.
The
Ireland institutions to consult
No
is
concerned,
it
favours and
constitutional proposals
is
prepared to
facilitate
the
would permit the new Northern
and co-ordinate action through
a
Council of Ireland.
23
would be written into the Bill as discussions about a form and responsibility would have to follow the development of the assembly and negotiations between it, the Republic and the UK. Therefore nothing categorical could be stated about the form and functioning of the council until after the elections to the assembly due to be held in June 1973. The other main provisions of the White Paper were related to the details of the relationship between the Assembly and Westminster. Legislation passed by the Assembly would be nullified if considered discriminatory - a final safeguard if the specific provisions
council's viability,
5
52
British
statutory
government policy in Northern Ireland 1 969-89
and non-statutory agencies established since 1969
failed to prevent
was to have employment which had been the source of Catholic grievance under Stormont. Financial provisions were broadly similar to those that had existed in the previous period of devolved government. The assembly was to have no power to raise taxes apart from locally based forms of revenue such as rates and licence fees. Devolved services would be financed by the yield of attributed taxes (the Northern Ireland share of centrally collected taxes in proportion to its population) which would be paid back via the Consolidated Fund of the UK. The difference between locally generated revenue and that needed to maintain parity of services and benefits would be paid discrimination. This was considered necessary since the assembly
control of areas such as housing and public-sector
in
an annual subvention by the Secretary of State.
The Debate on the White Paper in the Commons demonstrated the broad support among the British parties for the government proposals, and this was reflected in a vote of
argued
329—
24
supporting the proposals. Unionists and Devlin
that the proposals provided
an attenuated and unworkable form of
democracy. Whitelaw was unmoved by these the limits ... on power-sharing laid
down
in the
objections and reiterated that:
White Paper within which the Secretary
of State could devolve powers to an Executive and the limits within which an Executive could be formed, are absolutely clear and must be kept absolutely firm.
The
25
debates on the second and third readings of the Constitution
Bill
covered
ground to that of the White Paper. Whitelaw emphasised that the committee structure of the assembly would bridge the gap between assembly members and the executive, that relations with the Republic were to be part of any settlement, and that there was nothing inherently difficult or unworkable in similar
the proposals. The Unionists were unconvinced, arguing that the executive would be both distant from and unanswerable to the assembly as the former had to work under the directive of the Secretary of State and his 'pro-consular' 26 position. The normal chain of responsibility between executive and legislature
could not function.
This problem had especial significance for the unionists because the executive was to have the power under Section 12 of the Act to 'consult on any matter with any authority of the Republic of Ireland' and 'enter into agreements or arrange-
ments with any authority of the Republic of Ireland in respect of any transferred matter'. This could be interpreted as an attempt to force in the Irish Dimension via the executive in face of the opposition of a substantial part of the legislature.
Relations were not helped if
at this stage
by Callaghan's remark
in
Committee
that:
there were an attempt by the majority in Northern Ireland to sabotage the Assembly
should regard
it
That should be
as Britain's responsibility to say that
clearly understood,
and
This was taken by some unionists
it is
said in
no
we
shall reconsider
spirit
of threat.
to imply that a future
I
our position.
27
Labour government
The Conservative administration 1970-74
53
would not be bound by clause 1 of the new Act which pledged that Northern Ireland would remain part of the UK as long as the majority desired it, and which replaced the section of the 1949 Act which had granted the decision on the union to the Northern Ireland parliament. The Northern Ireland Constitution Act was passed in July 1973, post-dating the Assembly elections, and gave statutory effect to the White Paper proposals. The establishment of the assembly and the form and powers of the executive were supported by a clarification of the area of legislative and financial competence of Westminster and a pledge to establish a Standing Advisory Committee on Human Rights to advise the Secretary of State on the operation of law and its effectiveness in providing redress for grievances (see p. 84 for details).
The election took place on 28 June 1973 under the Northern Ireland Assembly Act of May. Seventy-eight seats were contested on the STV system using the existing twelve Westminster constituencies; the same system had been adopted in the local elections of the previous month. The official report on the 28 election records that the reasons for the introduction of STV were not explicitly stated by ministers but were probably a combination of hoped-for political effects, an increase in small and non-confessional party representation, and the practical constraint of lack of time to effect boundary revisions which would ensure a fair first-past- the -post form of election. The results of the election did 29 reveal further splits in the Unionist groupings and gave the British government hope as a majority of seats were won by those who fought on a pro power-sharing platform. However if the form of voting had been designed to bolster centre parties
it
did not have the desired effect.
0.25% of the
The
report estimated that less than
transferred vote crossed the sectarian divide and the non-sectarian
and the NILP, fared badly. by Faulkner who endorsed the White Paper, gained 24 seats. The anti-White Paper Unionists gained a total of 26 seats, comprising 8 anti-Faulkner Unionists, 8 members of the Democratic Unionist Loyalist Coalition (DULC) led by Paisley, 7 members of the Vanguard Unionist Loyalist Coalition led by Craig and 3 for the West Belfast Loyalist Coalition. The total anti- White Paper vote was just over 35%. The SDLP, supporting the power-sharing proposals, emerged as the second party with 19 seats and the remaining 9 went to parties in support; 8 for the Alliance and 1 for the NILP. This gave a majority of 52-26 in favour of the government's proposals although the situation was somewhat fluid owing to the power struggle in the Unionist Party and the possibility of defections from Faulkner to the unpledged 30 unionists. A notable feature of the election was the relative solidity of the Catholic vote for the SDLP; for the first time in a Northern Ireland election no Nationalist Party candidate had been elected. Both the Nationalist Party and the Republican clubs had fought on an abstentionist ticket due to the continuation of
parties, Alliance, Liberals
The
Official Unionists, led
internment.
54
British
government policy in Northern Ireland 1 969-89
By November agreement had been reached between
the Alliance, the
SDLP
and the Official Unionists on the formation of the executive. This was a necessary development by which the longer-term element of the White Paper could be effected: the creation of a Council of Ireland based on negotiations between the executive, Dublin and Westminster. These were to take place before the executive was due to take office on 1 January 1974. The three parties which were to form the executive (those opposed to it were invited to only one session of the negotiations and refused to attend) and the two 31 There national governments met at Sunningdale from 6-9 December 1973. were three
crucial elements to the talks: the Irish government's acceptance of
majority consent in the north as essential for any constitutional change; the 32
and discussions on policing and judicial encompass both parts of Ireland. The Republic's delegation, led by Taoiseach Liam Cosgrave, issued a communique stating that: 'the Irish Government fully accepted and solemnly declared that there would be no change in the status of Northern Ireland until a majority of people in Northern Ireland desired 33 A statement of what had been implicidy recognised by a change in that status'. the south for years did little to allay unionist fears as the British government failed to get the Irish government to agree to an amendment to the Constitution which would remove the articles claiming jurisdiction over the whole of the island. Even the limited extent of the communique provoked a challenge to its constitutionality. A High Court judgment ruled that the communique was not in conflict with the constitution as it did not acknowledge that Northern Ireland was part of the UK and was no more than a statement of policy. The Republic's failure to amend the Constitution was not unexpected but did not help Faulkner in his formulation of the Council of Ireland;
changes
to
attempt to
The
'sell'
own
the Sunningdale package to his
party or other Unionists.
other parties to Sunningdale put on record their positions on the status of
Northern Ireland. Britain added nothing
to that
contained in the 1973 Act with
the corollary to the majority consent principle that
majority in the north were to vote in favour.
it
would not oppose unity
if a
34
The final form of the Council of Ireland was to depend on further discussions between northern and southern representatives but these never materialised. An initial
projection formulated at Sunningdale
member
was
for a two-tier structure: a 14
executive Council of Ministers, 7 appointed by the Dail and 7 by the
assembly and a 60 member consultative and advisory assembly composed of equal numbers of members of the Dail and the assembly elected by the respective institutions by proportional representation. Decisions taken by the Council of Ministers would have to be unanimous to be enacted and its powers were envisaged to cover areas of mutual interest where all-Ireland co-operation could
be
beneficial, and indeed had existed to some degree between Stormont and the Republic. Examples included trade, energy, agriculture, tourism, transport and
cultural developments.
The
financing and staffing necessary for the operation of
the council was to be joindy undertaken by the Republic and Britain.
5
The Conservative administration
The provision
1 970-74
for the further delegation of powers to the council,
5
on the
basis
of agreement by both legislatures was potentially important and ambiguous.
This seemed
to
permit the possibility of the council effecting changes in the
constitutional position of
'Dublin
is
just a
all
Northern Ireland and fuelled Unionist fears that
Sunningdale away'. However, the unanimity clause concerning
Ministerial decisions
event that
35
would provide
a safeguard against this exdept in the unlikely
seven of the assembly's nominees on the council executive were in
favour of unification. Secondly, the structure of the council itself was premised on the existence of a Northern Ireland assembly and thus partition was implicitly accepted in the workings of the council. Even if the Unionists placed little faith in the Republic's statement of recognition, the structure itself would act largely as a bulwark against unification or the Republic's members taking an unwarranted interest in the north's affairs. In theory, the powers of the council could develop whereby it could vote partition out of existence but only if a majority in the north wanted it so the Union was not practically more at risk than without the existence of a council. What perhaps was more important for Unionists was that the British government was engaged in a process in which it saw a united Ireland as a possible end and was appearing to be agnostic on the question. The third element of the Sunningdale talks was that of security and possible reforms for joint initiatives. Britain's main concern was for a change in conditions of extradition which was precluded if the subject claimed political motivation for an offence. The constitutional and legal complexities precluded an immediate decision on extradition reform or on other possible changes such as the creation of all-Ireland courts or the right of courts to try offences committed in the other part of Ireland. Therefore, a Joint Law Enforcement Commission was estab36 lished which reported in May 1974. Further co-operation on 'normal' policing and law enforcement was to be considered following the diminution of terrorist violence through tripartite talks between the Council of Ministers and the Police authorities of Northern Ireland and the Republic. Power has argued 37 that on the balance of concessions Sunningdale was a 'victory' for Britain and the Unionists since the British government's declaration did not demand anything new of the government whereas Cosgrave had been seen to accept that a northern veto on unification was legitimate - a step further than previous administrations had taken. However, even if this analysis is correct it did not alter the fact that the Unionists saw the council's function as the start of a process towards unification as did the SDLP who insisted on stressing the Irish dimension and not resting content with the power-sharing element in the 1973 Constitution Act. The reason for this unwillingness to compromise was that reforms on policing and an end to internment were not forthcoming and the SDLP had to be offered something concrete by the government to retain its co-operation. Bew and Patterson argue that the Norchern Ireland Office had previously thought that the SDLP would accept a largely internal settlement to 38 justify its competition as an alternative to the Provisionals. However, the more
British
56
government policy in Northern Ireland 1 969-89
'green' element in the SDLP may have thought it necessary to retain the commitment to the Council so as not to be outflanked by the Provisionals, despite
the difficulties this presented Faulkner. Essentially, the vagueness of the
Sunningdale agreement which was necessary
newly created executive and the two governments only served opponents to focus on the parts that confirmed their suspicions.
to fuse together the to allow
its
'Quintessentially, the Sunningdale
Agreement refracted and obscured debate
the point that each participant could draw conclusions favourable to his particular political stance.'
and ambiguity'.
The
39
Farrell has described
it
as: 'a
to
own
masterpiece of balance
40
position of the executive elect
was made more
difficult
when
Faulkner,
the Chief Executive, resigned as leader of the Unionist Party on 7 January
following the rejection of the Council of Ireland proposals by the Unionist
Council, the party's ruling body. This was to add strength to the claim of
Unionists opposed to the settlement that the executive did not
fulfil
the criterion
of popular support in the province. As well as external opposition with which to contend, the executive, composed of six Unionists, four
member, was
SDLP and one Alliance SDLP
riven by internal discord, especially over security with the
refusing to give whole-hearted backing to the
RUC
and emphasising an
all-
Ireland approach to policing reform. Formulation of social and economic policy
was only rudimentary and the Assembly was later criticised for debating and manoeuvring over the ratification of Sunningdale rather than establishing itself as a credible legislative body.
41
The General Election of February 1974 provided opponents of the agreement with an opportunity to test its support and those Unionists opposed to the council
and power-sharing stood title
as the
United Ulster Unionist Council, an umbrella
for the anti-agreement Unionists, Craig's
coalition
was the
won 50.8%
sole supporter of the Executive to
parties with
members
Vanguard and Paisley's DUP. The
of the votes cast and eleven of the twelve seats. Gerry Fitt in the executive
be elected, the
total vote for the three
being 38.2%.
Security policy: the introduction of internment and the
Compton and
Parker reports
The Conservative government inherited the division of responsibility for security as devised in the
communique of
1969. This arrangement, whereby Stormont
retained control of legislation and the role of the
army was considered to be became increasingly unsatisfactory and subject to much criticism from the Labour opposition. Despite amendments to public order and firearms
short-term,
Stormont had been unable to prevent an increase in violence. 42 This increase, and a change in the pattern of violence from inter-communal rioting towards direct conflict between the security forces and the paramilitaries, particularly the IRA from early 1971, was to culminate in the decision to introduce legislation
The Conservative administration
1 970-74
57
internment in August 1971. This had serious repercussions as nationalist
opposition
Stormont,
to
severely
strained
it
party
heightened
relations
at
Westminster and revealed the problems of the somewhat blurred division of responsibility
The
between the two governments.
Westminster and Stormont was and based on whether it would be effective against the IRA. Westminster was prepared to accept it if Stormont considered it necessary and would not rule it out on principle as being unacceptable in a democratic state. In a debate in April 1971 Maudling argued that internment had to be assessed on its merits and could not be ruled out if likely to be effective in reducing 43 However, at that time the army felt that internment would be violence. attitude towards internment at both
largely pragmatic
counter-productive.
Westminster's
marks a
laissez-faire
attitude
shift in security policy,
towards the question of internment
allowing Stormont
Downing
Street Declaration Stormont
much more Under
security decisions than in the previous two years.
of a role in
the terms of the
had nominally retained control of
and now it had come much more to the fore than in 1969. Bew et al. claim: 'from August 1971 to February 1972 Faulkner was given his head, and army, not to say Ministry of Defence, opinion was systematically overruled. security
This was certainly the case with respect
This would seem Westminster.
The
to
to internment'.
44
have resulted from a change in perceptions
revival of
at
Republicanism and the change in the nature of
meant that the emphasis on institutional reform was becoming secondary to the need for a more aggressive stance against the IRA. If policy was evolving towards the primacy of security it has to be explained why this meant giving a freer hand to the Faulkner government. A principal reason was that Faulkner was seen as a 'last chance' by Westminster. Without concessions to him, his position would become more difficult with the right wing of his party culminating either in a Prime Minister under whom pacification of Northern Ireland seemed more remote or in the direct
violence alluded to above
intervention of Westminster.
At the time of the internment decision, Faulkner was both Prime Minister and Minister of Home Affairs and thus his was the final decision. In his 45 autobiography he claimed to be a late convert to the idea, not persuaded that its success in the 1956-62 campaign was of relevance to the 1971 situation. During the Chichester- Clark Government the few times in the Cabinet.
I
generally
possibility
argued against, and
of internment was discussed a I
recall at least
on which the Prime Minister appeared in favour and I attempted 46 backed up by other members of the Security Committee
two occasions
to dissuade him,
and it was only by July with the failure of political initiatives that a consensus was developing among security advisers that internment was a necessity. However this account might be coloured by hindsight and the
government policy
58
British
near-unanimous judgment Sunday Times (1972):
that internment
internment was not, as
it
was a
in
Northern Ireland 1 969-89
disaster.
According
might appear, Faulkner's response to mid-summer.
to the
When
he
March the issue was not whether internment was to By then Faulkner had been an advocate of internment
took over as Prime Minister on 23rd
come but when and on what scale.
inside Chichester-Clark's Joint Security
Committee
for six
months.
47
Faulkner also claimed that he favoured a more selective use of internment and
Maudling was concerned lest it should be used exclusively against Catholics and be seen as an overdy political act directed at silencing opposition. However, the initial 'swoop' of 337 men on the 9 August was aimed exclusively at Nationalists and not limited to those thought to be leaders or members of either branch of the IRA. The exact timetable of the drift towards internment and the relative influence of the factions within the Joint Security Committee and the security forces for and against it are difficult to determine given the nature of such an operation. However both Faulkner and the Sunday Times indicate that Tuzo, GOC since February 1971, was opposed to it and up until the end of July the army was engaged in considering alternatives none of which seemed likely to be more effective. To this extent internment was a policy of last resort. The failure to recognise the political consequences, allied to the operational problems of a lack of up-to-date intelligence and a relatively open border, was as much in evidence at Westminster as at Stormont. Maudling, Carrington, the Minister of Defence and Whitelaw, the leader of the Commons, offered no opposition to either internment />^r se or the details of its use and Tuzo was not consulted, apart from on technical details, at the meeting at the Ministry of Defence on 5 August when 48 internment was agreed upon. Westminster's response to internment was muted and circumscribed by its continued refusal to countenance direct rule. Faulkner relates that at a meeting with Heath, Maudling, Carrington and Home on 18 August full support for Stormont was reaffirmed. 49 Lynch, the Taoiseach's, call for the end of internment was rebuffed and direct rule was firmly renounced. In an emergency debate called by Labour in September, against a background of increasing violence, Wilson repeated his opposition to direct rule as not being of relevance in that
reducing violence. There were two elements to Wilson's criticism of the govern50 ment. Firsdy there was insufficient urgency concerning political initiatives and
Maudling had not visited Northern Ireland to explain the thinking behind
British
policy (a comparison with Callaghan's high profile of 1969).
The second
criticism
taken place during the
It had was an indication
concerned the timing of the internment decision.
summer recess which the opposition
felt
government was eager to avoid too close an examination of it by the House. This raised the suspicion that the decision was influenced more by hard-line Unionists than was acceptable, and thus politically selective, and the
that the
The Conservative administration
1 970-74
59
army and Westminster Ministers' opinions correspondingly carried too little Labour stated: 'A proper balance has to be struck between the preservation of Stormont's self-respect and the exercise of adequate Westminster influence. During the last year the balance has clearly slipped weight. Hattersley for
towards Belfast.'
51
There was some pressure from the Labour left and non-Unionist Northern MPs for Labour to divide the House in condemning internment. However, Callaghan rejected a call for a vote of censure on the grounds that it might encourage extremism in Northern Ireland. Bipartisanship should be maintained as a show of solidarity as the three Prime Ministers were meeting the following week to discuss internment and the wider political situation. As a compromise a commission of lawyers should be established to consider the cases of those held, whether or not they had invoked the right of appeal, and those against whom there was no evidence should be released. However, evidence in the judicial sense was often lacking which was precisely why internment had been Ireland
introduced.
Heath, in concluding the debate, denied that internment had been introduced
summer
during the
recess to avoid parliamentary scrutiny or that action
had
taken place against the army's advice. Faulkner's criterion for interning was such that
he placed no orders: 'without being
that the
person concerned was and
Provisional
campaign'.
satisfied
still is
on evidence placed before him
an active
member
wing of the IRA, or has been closely implicated
of the Official or in the recent
IRA
52
A number
of internees did not fulfil this criterion and the emphasis on meant that Heath had not managed to reassure those who, accepting internment might be justifiable, felt that it was used in a discriminatory fashion. This dissatisfaction led to 74 members (68 Labour) voting against the government despite Labour's official abstention. The subsequent months put further strain on bipartisan politics at Westminster with the allegations of ill-treatment of internees and the publication Nationalists
of the
On
Compton Report in November 1971 (see pp. 60-1). 29 November 1971 a major debate took place in which
for the first time
since the revival of the troubles the opposition voted against the
government, though the differences between the front benches were more of detail than of substance, and
seemed
bipartisan politics.
as
The
much to placate the
rank and
file
as to signal
an end to
motion, presented by Callaghan, included a disin-
and also called for a transfer of commission to consider political
clination to support a continuation of internment
security control to Westminster, a constitutional
advance and an end to interrogation in depth (see
p. 61).
The
debate did not
Labour would have introduced internment had they been in office. Hattersley argued that internment and the policy of mass house-searching had killed bipartisan policy and stated: resolve the question of whether
British government policy in Northern Ireland 1 969-89
60 I
do not believe
that
my
Right Honourable Friend the Leader of the Opposition would
have countenanced internment or that he would have slavishly agreed to proposals of Mr Brian Faulkner, as did our present Prime Minister.
ment in principle and
He
in practice is as strong as
mine.
believe that his criticism of intern-
I
53
maintained that there were three elements to opposition: internment was
wrong
and adversely affected the between Stormont and Westminster. It seems unlikely that
in principle, counter-productive in practice,
distribution of power
Labour would have accepted that
resisted the pressure for internment given that Hattersley
could not be unconditionally dropped and that he conceded that
it
the Special Powers Act could not be repealed while violence persisted.
Thomson, shadow Defence spokesman, accepted
that full jury trial
might be
impossible owing to intimidation (thus anticipating Diplock) and focused on the
need
to
improve the internment procedure by informing the internees of the
nature of the charges against them and allowing them lawyers to represent them at the advisory
committee hearings. All internees had an automatic right of
appeal to the committee which had been established by Faulkner in September 1971. In a further effort to limit the scope of executive power and discretion
accorded
to the Minister
of
Home
Affairs,
Callaghan advocated making the
Special Powers Act subject to annual renewal and revision by Westminster and
argued that hearings should be instituted
at
which judges could assess the
credibility of the evidence against the internee, thereby introducing a quasi54 judicial element into the process. It was hoped this would avoid the situation
whereby the information on which arrests were made was of such dubious quality that of 1,260 who had been arrested and detained 625 were subsequently released without a detention order being placed. In response,
Heath argued
that the opposition
was inconsistent and
that, despite the
wording
of the motion, the leadership did not support the ending of internment.
He
rejected the proposals to incorporate elements of a 'court' procedure on the
grounds that it would put at for internment were based.
risk those
These positions were largely repeated deaths of 13 civilians
at the
providing information on which orders in the four
hands of the army
in
months up to direct rule. The January 1972 reinforced the
arguments over the division of security responsibility adding the
Compton
security policy
Report.
55
In February
Labour
divided the
to those following
House over both
and the lack of political progress. The Compton Report had been
up to investigate allegations of brutality against internees following pressure from the Irish Republic, which was to bring a case against the UK in the
set
European Court, and adverse
publicity in sections of the British press.
report failed to placate criticism for a
number of reasons.
Its
The
terms of reference
were limited to arrests made on the first day of internment, there was no evidence given under oath and no cross-examination of witnesses. Moreover, the inquiry was to concentrate on the morality and legality of the so-called five techniques
1
The Conservative administration
1 970-74
6
(hooding of suspects, deprivation of sleep, subjection to high-pitched noise, long periods of standing and a bread and water diet) which had been used against only
more
fourteen internees while there was suspicion that
'conventional' abuse
had
been widespread.
The
five
techniques were designed to lower the resistance of internees and
thus facilitate the obtaining of information or confessions and had their genesis in the colonial campaigns of the 1950s
and 1960s. The report concluded that all the
techniques constituted ill-treatment of a physical nature. in para.
much
105 was to cause
However the
definition
controversy:
Where we have concluded
that physical ill-treatment took place, we are not making a on the part of those who handled these complainants. We consider that an inhuman or savage form of cruelty, and that cruelty implies a disposition to
finding of brutality brutality
is
inflict suffering,
think
it
coupled with indifference
to,
or pleasure
in,
the victim's pain.
We do not
happened here.
Brutality therefore
was defined with reference
to the motives of, or effects on, the
perpetrator.
Other miscellaneous individual and groups of complaints of assault were The evidence for these complaints was considered inconclusive given the lack of medical and photographic checks made on internees leaving the Holding Centres. Compton was critical of the fact that senior medical officers were involved in neither the planning stages nor the arrest operation itself, which made it impossible to draw firm conclusions about the circumstances in which 56 injuries were received. Four series of grouped complaints were made, relating considered.
to
compelling detainees to undertake physically demanding exercises, releasing
detainees late at night in the vicinity of shooting incidents, forcing detainees to
run along a rough path in bare feet and threats of throwing them from a helicopter.
The
'a measure of illwas mildly censorious of the other incidents. However, techniques, the summary of the report concluded that none of the
last
of these was considered to constitute
treatment' and the report as with the five
grouped or individual complainants suffered brutality term'.
'as
we understand
the
57
The likelihood of the report satisfying Dublin or critics in Northern Ireland was further reduced when no disciplinary charges or prosecutions followed the Although
identification of abuses.
it
may have been
individuals involved, the failure to cross-examine fuelled the suspicion that neither
punish offenders.
The
Stormont nor Westminster were concerned
report itself could not act as a court in such cases but
attempt was seen to be
members of the
difficult to identify the
RUC Special Branch witnesses
made
to follow
up
its
conclusions of criminal acts by
security forces. Also, the report
made no attempt and had no
authority to study abuses in the context of internment as a security strategy.
As
were not subject to the requirements of judicial of abuse was fairly strong. Compton did not consider
interrogation statements admissibility the risk
to
no
62
British
whether internment
as a policy
government policy
was
Northern Ireland 1 969-89
promote such abuses or the
likely to
basis of the actions of the interrogators.
in
The government
legal
did later issue a
and army interrogation, whether under the Special Powers Act or normal legislation, had to be pursued in accordance with the law. As well as assault, threats, intimidation and insults were specifically excluded from legitimate interrogation practice. Widespread dissatisfaction with the report led to Maudling announcing the 58 in mid November. It was charged with setting up of the Parker Committee directive stating that police
advising on what procedures should be authorised in the interrogation of suspects.
of the
The
debate on
legality
interrogation.
of the
RUC
Compton focused on two
five
principal issues: the question
techniques and the control of those involved in
Special Branch officers had been orally trained by British
Intelligence in early
1971 thereby by-passing ministerial or parliamentary
scrutiny.
Hattersley believed that Faulkner had ultimately sanctioned the use of the five
techniques, raising again the problem of the division of responsibility, and
considered that Compton's semantic definitions were nonsensical; their sub-
emphasis undermining the notion of an objective yardstick basic
jective
definition
to a legal
of inadmissible treatment. Lord Balniel, Minister of State for
Defence, stated that the: formal authorisation to remove certain detainees to the interrogation centre was necessarily given
by the Northern Ireland Minister for
Home
knowledge and
Affairs with the
concurrence of Her Majesty's Government. Ministers knew that the interrogation would
be conducted within the guidelines
would be the same
as
laid
down
in
1965 and 1967 and that the methods
had been used on numerous occasions
in the past.
59
This implied that British Ministers knew of the use of these techniques although their 'detailed application'
by which Balniel meant either
it
was a matter
RUC
officers.
for those with
immediate
responsibility,
The government appeared hamstrung;
knew of the use of the techniques and sanctioned ill-treatment or,
not know,
if it
did
was inadequate. Para. 12 of the Parker Report stated that: 'it cannot be assumed that any UK minister has ever had the full nature of these particular techniques brought to his attention and consequendy, that he has ever specifically authorised their use'. Even if they had it was not clear that ministerial directives would make their use legal. Pending the Parker Report which was to be published in March 1972, the government stated that the techniques were not in use but did not rule out their 60 possible reintroduction. On 2 March Heath said that they would not be employed except with approval by the Commons. 61 The request for their further use was never made reflecting the embarrassment of being the subject of the Republic's case at the European Court and the effect on the minority community in Northern Ireland.
The
its
role in supervising security policy
Parker Report post-dated
this decision
and was thus of limited relevance.
The Conservative administration
1
970-74
63
The majority report argued that there was no real risk of injury if safeguards were them on both and moral grounds: 'there is no reason to rule out these techniques on moral grounds and ... it is possible to operate them in a manner consistent with 62 Safeguards included the clarification of the highest standards of our society'. their legality; both majority and minority reports considered the techniques applied in the use of the techniques are proceeded to justify
utilitarian
illegal
under existing domestic law. Guidelines should be established by the
Minister of Defence on the advice of a specially constituted committee and the
Minister could then ensure protection from prosecution for those involved in interrogating.
At an operational
level, the
the supervision of a senior officer
and
use of the techniques should be under
a complaints
procedure should be estab-
lished for internees.
Lord Gardiner
in a minority report
dismissed both the moral and utilitarian
Compton's definition of brutality as and attacked the subjective nature of his formulation. Although
case for such procedures describing
'remarkable'
63
he considered the moral case against their use as paramount, Gardiner was
adamant about for tic
their illegality.
There was no provision
in the Special
Powers Act
such action and neither army nor ministerial directive could override domeslaw.
Gardiner also argued that the techniques were contrary to one or more international agreements to
which the
Human
UK
was
a signatory, including: the
5); the Geneva Convention European Convention on Human Rights (Article 3); and the International Covenant on Civil and Political Rights (Articles 7 and 10). This point was not pursued on the grounds that their illegality in domestic law made it unnecessary to decide on the position with respect to international law which would require a lengthy evaluation of what constituted torture. Gardiner there-
Universal Declaration of
1957 (Article
3);
Rights (Article
the
moral objections no consensus on the medical effects of such actions and to legalise them would adversely effect Britain's international reputation. The pragmatic case had not been proven and Gardiner doubted if the techniques were more efficacious than normal interrogation and, given the hostility aroused, their use was counter-productive. The government accepted the findings of the minority submission although it was not until 1977 that it told the European Court that it would in no circumstances use the five techniques again. 64 The case of internee abuse had highlighted the problems of a lack of Westminster control of security operations and this was reinforced by a case in 1972 when a Northern Ireland High Court judgment dismissed on appeal a case against Hume, a prominent SDLP member, and others who had been arrested by the army on the grounds that Section 4(1) of the Government of Ireland Act 1920 did not allow the Special Powers Act to cover the actions of British troops. The legal basis of army operations had never been clarified and there was considerable doubt that the curfew imposed on the Falls in July 1970 was within the law. fore rejected the legalisation of the techniques; as well as the
there was
64
British
government policy
in
Northern Ireland 1 969-89
65 Maudling stated that the army had been sent on the assumption that it would operate under the terms of the Special Powers Act in support of the civil authorities, a belief upheld by an English High Court decision in 1971 which
rejected a habeas corpus case brought by an arrestee against the army.
decision meant that the army was restricted to the citizen in aiding the authorities
The Hume
common-law powers of
which did not extend
a
to searches, arrest or the
stopping of vehicles. In practice a large degree of operational autonomy had been given to military
commanders
in their
response to
influenced by the political strategy being pursued.
The government
civil
disorder which was also
66
introduced the Northern Ireland
Bill to
confer on the army
powers which it was believed to have had, thus nullifying any cases being brought against it and overruling the section of the 1920 Act mentioned above which restricted the army's use under the Special Powers Act. The Bill was passed in one night to become the Northern Ireland Act 1972. Objections were raised by some Labour members that it was unacceptable to alter the constitutional basis of troop deployment in Northern Ireland and to increase Stormont's role. Maudling replied to such criticism by arguing that
it
was
a clarification rather than a
changing of the law by its restoration to what it was assumed to be before the High
Court
ruling.
He concluded the first reading by stating that the common law was
inadequate and: in order, for example, to search vehicles believed to contain explosives, they
(i.e.
troops)
must operate under the Special Powers Act, which must be the Act passed by the Northern Ireland parliament, which has the responsibility for peace, order and good government in Northern Ireland under our present constitution. That is the legal position that we have to face.
The
67
Bill's
passage was a formality with an
amendment
to restrict the Act's
operation to one year being defeated by 158 votes to 20.
The
increase in violence, the introduction of internment and the subsequent
abuses, and the confusion surrounding the constitutional position of troop
deployment had a cumulative
which resulted in the transfer of security Heath to Faulkner and his Cabinet on 22 March. Faulkner considered this unacceptable and resigned the next day whereupon direct rule was introduced. Opening the second reading of the Northern Ireland (Temporary Provisions) Bill on the 28 March the new Secretary of State Whitelaw stated that the government: 'took the view with a prolonged state of emergency and a very large number of British troops employed 68 effect
control being one of the proposals put by
the division of responsibility between Belfast and Westminster was unsatisfactory
Whitelaw also undertook to review personally all internment which had peaked at over 900, and to review the operation of the Special Powers Act.
in principle'.
cases,
The Conservative administration
1 970-74
65
Direct Rule Developments: the modification of Detention Procedures
The security policy at an operational level following direct rule was contradictory and related to the attempts to sound out the potential of engaging the IRA in political
dialogue (see p. 47). This included the negotiation of a ceasefire, the
granting of special category status, a low profile for the
and a reduction in the numbers interned.
70
The
army
failure
in Nationalist areas
of the ceasefire, a
renewed bombing campaign and the failure of political negotiations led to an army offensive ending the 'no go' areas of west Belfast and Derry at the end of August. However this stronger line and the move away from negotiations with paramilitaries did not indicate a renewed emphasis on internment, for such a policy had at least three major disadvantages: it provoked hostility among constitutional nationalists whom the government wanted to bring into a new political settlement; it damaged Britain's international image, this being most significant with relation to the Republic whose co-operation on border security and possible extradition was crucial; and it tended to emphasise the political nature of the conflict whereas normal legal procedures would allow the government to present the violence as criminal in origin. This was, of course, made more difficult by the granting of special category status, which was de facto political status, a decision Whitelaw was soon to regret. The first move to establish the primacy of the judicial process and demonstrate the impartiality of it was the Prosecution of Offences (NI) Order 1972 which the Attorney General announced during the passage of legislation to suspend Stormont. Adapted from a Bill already before Stormont, it established the Office and related department of a Director of Public Prosecutions which would take responsibility from the police for prosecutions in all but the most minor offences. This had been recommended by the Hunt Report and its potential effect had been reduced by the delay in implementation and it was doubtful that removal of prosecutions from the police to the Director of Public Prosecutions, answerable to a member of the British Cabinet, would convince Republicans of the impartiality of British justice.
While searching phase
it
for
an alternative to internment the government
out immediately because of the renewed
felt
unable to
IRA campaign from July
1972.
end of the month there were calls from some Unionist MP, McMaster, for the introduction of martial law
After eleven deaths in one day at the
backbenchers and a and full authority over the courts to be given to the GOC. Against such a background the government felt unable to dispense with some form of executive detention.
A
commission
71
was
set
up
in
September 1972
to 'consider legal
procedures to deal with terrorist activities in Northern Ireland' and, to bridge the gap between its report of December 1972 and recommendations for new legislation to replace the Special Powers Act, the Detention of Terrorists (NI) Order was introduced on 7 November, receiving parliamentary approval on 11 December.
66
British
government policy in Northern Ireland 1 969—89
was a modified form of internment. On arrest, unless was served with an interim custody order (ICO) issued by the Secretary of State or his deputy. Within twenty-eight days the Chief Constable had to refer the case to a commissioner or else the suspect was released. On hearing the case, the commissioner could recommend further detention if satisfied that the suspect was concerned in the commission, direction or organisation of terrorism and detention was necessary for the protection of the Essentially detention
sent for
trial,
a suspect
The use of a commissioner, a senior legal figure, was designed to emphasise the quasi-judicial nature of the process and act as a check on executive
public.
power.
7
The
suspect was informed of the charge against him/her and allowed to
commissioner's hearing, an element absent However, this hearing, without which detention from the internment procedure. could not be continued, departed considerably from the judicial process. It was held in private, the suspect and his/her legal representative could be excluded on
prepare a defence to be put
at the
and the common-law rules of admissibility did not apply. For at commissioners' hearings was derived from informers whose identity would not be revealed. There was an automatic right of appeal against a decision to detain which was considered by a three-person committee. As an additional safeguard all detention orders were reviewed after twelve months and subsequently after six months. The review hearings were not security grounds
example,
much
of the evidence
designed to reconsider the evidence against the detainees, but rather to establish
whether detention was further
justified in the interests
of public safety. These
reviews were often related to wider political strategies such as the promotion of the primacy of the courts following Diplock and accelerated by the Gardiner
Report ofJanuary 1975
73
or as a
means
to
promote
talks
with paramilitaries.
74
There is no doubt that the machinery of the detention process was an improvement over that of internment, and by revoking Regulations 11 and 12 of the Special Powers Act it did have a symbolic value in moving away from Unionist repression to British law. If this was calculated to allay nationalist fears, elements
of the system persisted to undermine any potential growth in confidence. Despite the commissioners' role the executive nature remained paramount. In the
Commons
vote to approve the order, Elwyn-Jones and
McNamara
point out that there was no judicial or external intervention in the eight day detention period, there appeared to be
for
Labour
initial
twenty-
no reasonableness
criterion in
suspicion of involvement in terrorism the grounds on which the Secretary of State
made
the
ICO and the Secretary had authority to recall to detention, under who had previously been released thereby
the original custody order, a detainee
introducing a
'cat and mouse' element which could circumvent the commissioner Perhaps most importantly, there was no time limit set between the referral of the case within 28 days and the commissioner's hearing; the effect being that people were often detained for periods of six months or longer without any judicial consideration of their case, which critics interpreted as backdoor
system.
75
The Conservative administration
1
970-74
67
The number of people detained between July 1973 and October 76 1974 averaged approximately 470 and the limited number of commissioners examining the cases slowed the process. The government refused to provide the financial or personnel resources to speed the process which was necessary to avoid the criticisms that the judicial element was a cosmetic exercise. Another suggestion for the reform of the commissioner system was the internment.
possible use of a plurality of comissioners at each hearing to facilitate the
processing of evidence, though without an increase in numbers this would slow the cases further. Elwyn-Jones also backed the appointment of Commonwealth
representatives rather than restricting the position to in
an attempt
to cultivate minority acceptance.
UK judicial office holders
The Labour
opposition did not
oppose the order and the suggested amendments were of limited value, as orders could not be
amended but had to be accepted or rejected in the form shadow Northern Ireland Secretary, accepted
they were presented. Rees, the
the order for three principal reasons: detention
stances citing the
European Convention
was
justifiable in the
in his support; the
circum-
order was an
improvement on the internment provisions of the Special Powers Act which would remain in force if the order were defeated; and it was a temporary measure pending forthcoming legislation which could be more fully scrutinised and amended. Consequendy, the order was approved by 179 votes to 32. Opponents to it either argued that executive detention was intrinsically indefensible or that the government had failed to furnish convincing evidence that intimidation of juries or witnesses was prevalent enough to justify such a measure.
77
The Diplock Report and the Emergency Provisions The Diplock Report was published were
specifically related to the
in
December
1972.
problem of dealing with
than by detention or internment.
The
Legislation Its
recommendations
terrorist violence other
significance of the report can scarcely be
marked the advent of a policy in which the use of prosecution through the courts was gradually to replace executive detention in an attempt to bury the distinction between political violence and 'normal' crime. Secondly, the report provided the basis for the Northern Ireland (Emergency Provisions) Act 1973 which, although later amended, is the basis of legislation in force today. Thirdly, it revealed the relative ease with which long-established overestimated. Firstly,
judicial
it
procedure could be jettisoned when expedient.
After a review of the existing provisions for detention Diplock concluded that public
trial
in a court of law
available to these tribunals
none but the
guilty will
existing situation
was required
to replace detention as: 'procedures
can never appear to be as complete a safeguard that
be deprived of their
were those of securing
78 liberty'.
The problems
arrest, the gathering
with the
of evidence and
securing of convictions against suspected terrorists in the face of intimidation
68
British
government policy
in
Northern Ireland 1 969-89
against witnesses and juries, and the possibility of perverse acquittals by the latter.
Although the evidence does not seem indisputable, Diplock considered that the problems of perverse acquittals (a judge could overturn a perverse conviction)
and the intimidation of juries were
sufficient to justify the suspension of jury trial
in cases involving 'scheduled' offences.
Scheduled offences were those most
commonly associated with terrorist activity and listed as a schedule to the 1973 Act. These included robberies and assaults involving firearms and explosives, arson, murder, riot and miscellaneous offences against persons and property, and membership of associations oudawed under Special Powers regulations. An offence was scheduled/^ se; the motive for the crime was not relevant since this would reinstitute the concept of a political crime although in specific cases an 79 offence could be descheduled on the direction of the Attorney- General. Diplock considered and rejected the use of more than one judge in the hearing of scheduled offences. The report considered that it would place too great a burden on the judicial system as only fourteen judges - the seven Appeal and High Court judges and the seven County Court judges - would be qualified to chair what were to become known as Diplock courts. Additionally, it was considered that the adversarial procedure and decisions in such areas as the admissibility of evidence would prove inconvenient with more than one judge presiding. This was not seen as necessarily a retrograde step for the defendant.
The
suspension of jury
trial,
allied to the
establishment of the
rationalise the choice of charges
and reduce the
believed had previously occurred.
80
The second major recommendation
possibility
DPP, could
of bias which some
of Diplock related to the admissibility of
confessions obtained by suspects. If detention were to be phased out, the premise
on which the report was based, there was
a necessity for facilitating convictions
The lack of evidence provided by witnesses, whether a result of intimidation or communal support for paramilitaries, meant a reliance on confessions as the principal method of securing convictions. The through the
judicial process.
embarrassment over the five techniques and the directives regulating interrogation procedure seem to have been effective in preventing abuse of suspects. However, as judicial practice stood, it was the operation of the common law concerning admissibility and the Judges' Rules on interviewing procedures that were hindering convictions. The former endorsed that all statements should be made voluntarily and judges had stricdy applied this concept. In May 1972 the Lord Chief Justice had ruled as inadmissible statements made at the Palace Barracks to
RUC Special Branch detectives on the grounds that the nature of the
interrogation had
made
those involved give information which they would have
otherwise been less willing to give. 81
Diplock considered that acquittal of guilty persons.
this interpretation 82
tance for the protection of
of admissibility resulted in the
Objections that they were of fundamental impor-
civil liberties
were overruled by the argument
that
The Conservative administration
1 970-74
69
neither the European Convention on Human Rights nor the civil law in most European countries required such technical rules. Para. 81 on the operation of Judges' Rules in Northern Ireland stated: the rules deal primarily with the questioning of suspects after they are in custody and are
designed to discourage
this. If
inadmissible any statement
upon
own
his
initiative
applied strictly they would have the effect of rendering
made by the accused
after his arrest unless
This was undermining the whole basis of interrogation which:
atmosphere
in
was volunteered
it
without any persuasion or encouragement by anyone in authority.
which the
initial
desire to remain silent
is
'is
to build
up an
replaced by an urge to
confide in the questioner. This does not involve cruel or degrading treatment'.
The
solution
recommended was
that current technical rules
83
and practices
should be suspended for the duration of the emergency, which was a matter of definition for the government,
and
that 'psychological' pressure should
be an
admissible practice in the obtaining of information. Para. 89 contained a
suggested redefinition:
Any
inculpatory admission
made by
the accused
may be
given in evidence unless
it is
proved on a balance of probability that it was obtained by subjecting the accused to torture
inhuman or degrading treatment the accused shall not be liable to be convicted on made by him and given in evidence if, after it has been given in evidence, it is similarly proved that it was obtained by subjecting him to torture or to inhuman or degrading treatment.
or to
.
.
.
any inculpatory admission
This formulation was based upon the European Convention on
and also prohibited the threat of physical violence. Another area where Diplock felt the technical rules
to
Human
Rights
be a hindrance in the
securing of convictions was the onus of proof in cases relating to the possession of
proscribed articles:
e.g. firearms,
ammunition and explosives under Acts of 1883
and 1969. As the law stood, the owner or occupier of premises or a vehicle was not required to prove that she/he had no knowledge of the presence of such articles;
the onus resting with the prosecution. Diplock argued that
it
was
common sense that there was a primafacie case for believing the person occupying the premises to have such
they did not articles:
'shall
know
*
be deemed to be in the possession of the occupier of those premises and of any person
residing at or found
did not
A
knowledge and the onus should be on them to prove them about their property under duress. Such
or else had
on those premises
know and had no reason
at the
time of the discovery unless he proves that he
to suspect arms,
ammunition or explosives were
there'.
84
recommendation was for an increase in restrictions in the granting of which was, according to Diplock, given more freely and indiscriminately than
fourth
bail
was not generally refused on the grounds that the It was also felt that the likelihood of intimidation of witnesses between the initial hearing and the trial proper was
in
England. For example,
it
defendant might commit further offences.
70
British
government policy
in
Northern Ireland 1 969-89 85
Bail was therewas no risk of the defendant not turning up for trial, no risk of witness intimidation and no risk of him/her committing further offences. In addition, bail could only be granted by a High Court judge who could impose any further conditions as he saw fit. Two safeguards were provided for the defendant: bail would be granted if custody had exceeded ninety days or if its refusal would result in exceptional hardship for the defendant or their
increased by the relative lack of stringency in bail regulations. fore to be refused unless there
dependants.
The above provisions were designed to remove impediments to the securing of The other main area needing amendment to complete the successful prosecution of offenders was that of confessions, witness evidence and convictions.
powers were considerable
arrest. Arrest
Special Powers Act which was
still
in the case of the
RUC,
including the
in force, except for clauses relating to
internment which had been replaced by the Detention of Terrorists (NI) Order.
The
RUC
was allowed
to
hold a person for up to forty-eight hours for the
No offence needed to be power granted largely for the purpose
preservation of peace or the maintenance of order.
suspected or prosecution intended,
it
was
a
of general questioning.
As shown above,
the position of the
army was
less clear cut.
The Northern
Ireland Act 1972 had retrospectively indemnified the actions of troops in search-
ing and arresting which were not authorised under the Special Powers Act but the legal position of the army had yet to be codified. This was important, as the
army's role since the resurgence of the
IRA had
included the gathering of
information in Catholic areas and the building up of profiles of the population; a task largely beyond the
RUC. The legality of such practices was questionable and
legal basis of army action. The report recommended army should have the power to search houses for explosives and wanted persons. The power of arrest should be limited to four hours and applied to include those suspected of involvement in terrorist activities and those suspected of having knowledge of the involvement of others. The four-hour provision was to allow for the identification of the suspect and questioning should not be
Diplock sought to define the that the
directed to any other end. Rearrest at the expiry of this period should be
suggested that the person was concerned in
undertaken by the police
if evidence
terrorist offences, as the
army would have no authority
for further detention. In
recognition of the army's unfamiliarity with legal procedures Diplock recom-
mended
that the four-hour detention period should not be ruled unlawful
grounds of failure
wrong
The
to
on
inform the arrestee of the reason for their arrest or giving the
reason.
above provisions did not allow for the general collection of data or
'intelligence
gathering' which
screening of the population.
86
was effected by mass house searching and
This was
a necessary tactic in the preparation for
and execution of internment and the decline
in these tactics roughly correlates with the gradual decline in the use of internment. 87 This indicates that the
The Conservative administration
1 970-74
11
move towards arrest by the police with the objective of prosecution more selective approach than the 'mass tactics' of the army in the
gradual
resulted in a
1971-4 although
period
it
may
also
be that the information concerning
population profiles at this time was sufficient to allow
subsequent years.
It is
implicit in the
alternatives to internment, that the
its
down
scaling
in
Diplock Report, which was to examine
army should play
a subsidiary role to the
police and, as far as possible, the questioning of suspects should be undertaken
by the
latter
The
with a view to preparing a case for
trial.
bulk of the Diplock Report's recommendations were incorporated into
the Northern Ireland
(Emergency Provisions)
Bill
which received
its
second
reading in April 1973. Provisions for detention were to be retained which would allow the 1972 Order to lapse. Whitelaw promised that the Special Powers Act would be repealed in its entirety if the Bill were passed, and that given the exceptional nature of the provisions, the Act would be subject to annual renewal. This was less of a safeguard than it might appear, since by this procedure renewal had to be supported or opposed and amendments could not be made. Labour was to abstain on all stages of the Bill as the front bench did not challenge the need for emergency powers. Elwyn-Jones stated that Labour would not oppose but hoped that the committee stage would allow for revisions to be made. Rees specified some of the improvements desired: renewal should be
six-monthly, the ninety-day period concerning the withholding of bail should be
shortened and the legislation as a whole should be considered within the context of a
Bill
of Rights.
88
Many members,
including
Fitt,
Devlin, Paisley and Labour backbenchers
focused on the lack of evidence for the arguments used for jury suspension.
Davidson (Labour) claimed that Diplock had suggested that perverse jury decisions were not significant, especially compared with the intimidation of witnesses so their suspension was not justifiable. Stallard and
were
to
would
McNamara, who
become persistent critics of emergency legislation, were concerned that it
set a
precedent for the erosion of civil
liberties in Britain,
and
Fitt attacked
the conviction-based premises of the report. In defending the proposals the
Attorney- General outlined four areas that had caused concern for
him and
the
Director of Public Prosecutions: intimidation of witnesses; intimidation of jurors; perverse acquittals; difficulties.
In view of the
passage of 155 to 18.
and cases being abandoned because of 'technical' Labour abstention, the second reading had an easy
89
As Elwyn-Jones had
indicated,
Labour did move
a
number of amendments
in
committee which highlighted its basic position. In principle, they accepted the need for emergency powers and the corresponding removal of common law and technical practices designed to protect the accused, but they
some of the
details. Silkin
wanted
accused the Attorney-General of failing to
to dilute
justify the
claims concerning the incidence of perverse acquittals and convictions and, that as
Diplock (para. 35) had spoken of potential rather than actual jury intimidation,
2
7
British
government policy
in
Northern Ireland 1 96 9-89
trial by jury should be retained for scheduled offences unless a High Court judge was convinced that violence, intimidation or bribery were likely to prejudice the
chances of a
fair trial.
was too extensive and
English (Labour) argued that the this
was exacerbated by the
list
of scheduled offences
fact that
minor offences could
not be descheduled. Therefore, rather than have a blanket provision, High
Court judges should be able
to have the discretion to treat a particular case as a
scheduled offence. However, the Attorney-General rejected this amendment as unrealistic. It was not feasible to expect that a judge could determine whether a
problem of violence or intimidation existed in each case or not, and the consideration would add to the workload of the judiciary and slow down the whole process which was already overburdened. The government defeated the new clause 93-76 so that descheduling would be the exception and non-jury courts the rule for 'terrorist' offences. Labour members were still dissatisfied with the evidence concerning jury intimidation, although the Attorney- General cited statements from area directors, the staff of the DPP office, that it was increasing, especially in loyalist areas, and there were increasingly fewer areas of 90 Belfast from which juries could be safetly drawn without fear of intimidation. An earlier vote in committee had gone in favour of a plurality of judges sitting in non-jury trials. In response Whitelaw moved an amendment to reverse the decision on the basis of the Diplock recommendations which argued that both manpower and the adversarial system made a single judge preferable. Whitelaw also stressed that there would be an absolute right of appeal, i.e. not dependent on the judge's consent, in the case of conviction for a scheduled offence in a single-judge court, and the normal intermediate stages to the hearing of an appeal would be removed. Opposing the amendment, Elwyn-Jones gave four reasons for favouring plurality: it would balance religious representation on the Bench; reduce the risk of judicial error; there was support for plurality among the Northern Ireland Bar; and British justice would not be seen to suffer by comparison with that of the Republic which had three judges in special courts. Fitt, explaining the thinking of the Committee, believed that three judges would be a worthwhile compromise between one judge and a jury trial and reduce the chances of procedural errors. The government carried the amendment 86-54 with the Attorney- General stating that, as well as the appeal safeguard, a convicted person had the benefit of having the verdict explained, which did not
happen with
The
jury courts.
suggested amendments by Diplock to the admissibility of evidence were
accepted by the torture or
Commons
inhuman
with the insertion of a prima facie clause regarding
or degrading treatment. If a prima facie case were to be raised
by the accused alleging ill-treatment his/her statement would not be admissible unless the prosecution satisfied the court that it had not been obtained in such a way.
Two attempts
to alter the
recommendations concerning admissibility were
defeated; the onus of proof in the possession of firearms or explosives was to rest
with the accused despite an opposition attempt to
make
it
rest with
the
The Conservative administration 1970-74 prosecution. Secondly, Diplock had
73
recommended making
admissible evidence
given by a person who was not available to be cross-examined and Labour wanted the recipient of this information to be a magistrate rather than a police officer, since the use of the latter
would emphasise
that the reform
was prosecution
biased.
The
other principal provision to be included in the
EPA was
the retention of
McNamara summed up the Labour Party's views. 91 One group, including McNamara himself, thought that detention was wrong in principle and detention.
should be ended, and the other main grouping
felt it should be phased out on the was no necessity for both. He maintained the government wanted it both ways: those who were acquitted could subsequently be detained and those who were detained could be tried if sufficient evidence was gained. Silkin argued that as Diplock had been specifically established to look for alternatives to detention it was, as Diplock had been acted upon, unacceptable to retain detention powers. The flaw in the Labour position was that it could not demonstrate that sole reliance on the courts could reduce or stabilise the level of violence, and consequently the government was unlikely to drop the power. Van Straubenzee, Minister of State at the Northern Ireland Office, responded by citing Diplock's opinion that it was hoped that the 'strengthened' courts alone 92 would be able to deal with violence but that that time had not yet come. The EPA became law in July 1973 with Labour abstaining on the third reading. It repealed the Special Powers Act 1922, the Detention of Terrorists (NI) Order 1972 and the Criminal Justice (Temporary Provisions) Act (NI) 93 1970. The changes in bail, jury and admissibility of evidence have been considered and a few subsidiary observations may be made about powers of arrest and miscellaneous provisions. The police powers of arrest were contained in Section 10 which allowed arrest on suspicion with no 'reasonable' clause and detention before the preferring of charge(s) was extended to seventy-two hours from forty-eight hours permitted by a 1964 Act. Any premises could be entered and searched for the purpose of effecting an arrest by any rank, while the photographing and fingerprinting of suspects was limited to the rank of inspector or above. Section 12 allowed arrest without warrant by the armed forces and the holding of suspects for up to four hours with powers of search the same as for the police. The grounds for arrest by the army had to be given if effected under the powers of the EPA. Section 13 allowed both army and police to 'stop any person in any public place and with a view to exercising said powers search him for the purpose of ascertaining whether he has any munitions with him'. Section 16 allowed both sections of the security forces to stop and question to ascertain a person's identity and movements, or knowledge concerning explosions, shooting
passing of the
EPA
as there
incidents etc.
The powers
of arrest of both the
RUC
and armed forces were limited
to
suspicion of involvement in terrorism. Powers of questioning were extended to
include those
who might have knowledge of such
activities,
but arrest for such
74
British
government policy in Northern Ireland 1 969-89
strict reading of the EPA, although Diplock had power of arrest for the purpose of information relating to offences not committed by the arrestee. Secondly, the power to stop was specifically limited to the establishment of identity and information concerning terrorist incidents. None of Sections 12, 13 or 16 would allow for general information gathering divorced from knowledge of, or involvement in, terrorist activity, though it does not appear there needed to be suspicion of a specific offence. Therefore, mass house searching and screening carried out by the army 94 were not given legal endorsement by the EPA though principally before 1974 this had little practical effect in checking them. The powers of arrest were framed in the context of the continued provision for detention which was used up until mid 1975 despite the change in emphasis towards bringing cases in court. The power of the army to hold a person for up to four hours to gain information was normally a prelude to the use of detention which did not require the detailed evidence that a court proceeding would necessitate. The RUC, although empowered to arrest on suspicion without
questioning was not legal on a
recommended
the
relation to a specific incident, generally operated with a view to bringing charges in court in connection with a specific offence.
the fact that the
RUC found
it
more
This operational division reflected
difficult to gain
evidence to bring charges in
Republican than Loyalist areas, with the army being predominant former.
in the
95
The remaining
sections of the
EPA
dealt with the proscription of the
IRA,
Sinn Fein, other smaller Republican groups, including the youth and women's sections of Sinn Fein and the Ulster Volunteer Force. As well as membership it was an offence to solicit support for, or contribute to, proscribed organisations. The power to deproscribe organisations, or add to the list of those proscribed, was reserved to the Northern Ireland Secretary of State. Section 20 made it an
offence to collect, record or publish information likely to be of use to terrorists.
Terrorism was defined
in Section
28
as: 'the
use of violence for political ends and
includes any use of violence for the purpose of putting the public or any section of the public in fear'.
The EPA provided the basis of security legislation over the subsequent years. The major change was the shift away from executive detention towards the Both of the main British parties agreed that this had to be related 96 and the fall in 1973 compared with 1972 facilitated a move away from detention. Having amended the legal framework in Northern
judicial process.
to the level of violence
Ireland, further progress in defeating terrorism
depended upon the Republic's
co-operation in cross-border security and extradition.
ment Commission reported in
May
The Joint Law
Enforce-
established at Sunningdale to consider these questions
1974 and
its
deliberations will be considered in the next chapter.
The Conservative administration
1
970-74
75
Economic policy It
was argued
in the previous chapter that
economic policy in Northern Ireland
in
the period prior to the more direct involvement of Westminster in 1969 had been
based on the efforts to
attract external
manufacturing investment
to the province
by the development of infrastructure which included the designation of many of the larger towns as 'growth' or 'key' centres and a high level of government
inducements
While Northern Ireland remained
to private capital.
disadvantaged compared with the living standards, the
regional policy in the
mobile capital
UK
gap had closed. This was due
UK as a whole
relatively
average in terms of unemployment and
emphasis on amount of internationally
to the general
since 1964, the
Northern Ireland) and government support administered by the devolved
in circulation (including British capital in
the relatively higher rates of
government compared with those available to depressed regions in However, factors emerged to make further success based on difficult to maintain. It is difficult to give relative
Britain. this strategy
weight to these factors in the
continued problems of the Northern Ireland economy but some can detailed. Firstly, the prevailing
be
at least
orthodoxy of regional policy was not designed
purely to promote growth or the restructuring of industry but also to reduce the intra-regional differences in
average levels were low.
The
unemployment which had
persisted even
when
reports advocating the development of growth or
key centres had been based on an acceptance of labour mobility within the province. This was considered necessary as
unemployment had, owing
some of the
areas with high rates of
to their small populations, relatively small pools
of
unemployed were unskilled these reports considered peripheral areas unlikely to attract incoming investment. Bradley et al. (1986) argue that the hypotheses on which the advocates of growth-centre strategies based their policies were not empirically proven and, for whatever reasons, the labour force had proved relatively immobile. However it was not until 1975 that the received wisdom of industrial concentration was really reserve labour and especially
challenged.
if
the
97
Secondly the attraction of international capital to Northern Ireland irrespective of
its
location within the province,
was becoming more
at
all,
difficult to
achieve and the rate of factory closures was increasing. In the six years, 1964-9,
opened and 19 were 52 projects opened and 39 98 closures. Two main factors contributed to this pattern: the violence and civil disorder which harmed the 'image' of Northern Ireland, and the international recession of the early 1970s which, other things being equal, would be expected
there were 68 government-assisted manufacturing projects closures. In the five years, 1970-74, there
to
reduce the amount of manufacturing capital locating in Northern Ireland.
Cairncross Report
had
all
99
noted that by
but dried up. In 1968
late
45%
The
1971 inward investment to the province of jobs promoted
(i.e.
estimates of the
projected workforce in discussions between government and sponsored
company
6
7
British
government policy in North ern Ireland 1 96 9—89
came from investment new to Northern Ireland; had dropped to 16% and by 1972 to 5% although there was a 100 Whether the increase in violence and the image it recovery to 15% by 1974. gave of Northern Ireland or the general recession were of more significance as disincentives for inward investment, it was going to be increasingly difficult to rely on it to reduce unemployment or prevent its increase. It does appear that the impact of violence and civil disorder was slight on firms already operating in the rather than actual jobs created)
by 1971
this figure
province compared with
its
effect in discouraging
new mobile
investment.
101
Having sketched the main policy themes and the problems facing the governthe following section will address itself to the legislative and institutional elements of economic policy and the question of whether there was any change of emphasis in the period 1970-74 as three different agencies were successively responsible for economic policy: Stormont, the British government and the
ment
executive of early 1974.
The
principal measures taken can be broadly divided into three categories.
Support
for
commercial and industrial enterprises, measures designed
to retrain
schemes and measures direcdy related to the effects of violence. Despite the problems in attracting new capital, measures aimed at this remained an important element in the industrial strategy. The Industries Development (NI) Act of 1966, which paralleled British legislation, was amended in 1971. Under this legislation, selective capital grants, loans, and miscellaneous provisions such as employment grants, removal grants and interest relief grants were provided to private -sector projects; the bulk of the expenditure being capital grants. Selective capital grants were usually related either to the creation of employment in new industry or the maintenance of employment in an existing industry considered vital to an area's economic viability. From June 1970, for the first time, selective capital grants had a zonal element with the rate of support varying between 45% and 60% related to the level of unemployment in the particular area. This replaced the flat rate of 50% which had been available since October 1969. The Industrial Investment (General Assistance) Act (NI) 1966 covered the provision of standard capital grants (i.e. those automatically available to the manufacturing sector as opposed to selective capital grants which were normally part of a package negotiated between the Ministry of Commerce and the investor). This legislation was amended in 1970 and 1971 to permit grants of 20% towards the cost of buildings and 35% towards machinery and equipment. That these increases in incentives might have been of marginal significance to new potential investors is supported by Davies and McGurnaghan (1975) who state: the labour force or employ
it
in direct labour
investment incentives were improved on several occasions between 1970 and 1973. At present
(i.e.
1975) grants for plant, machinery and buildings are between
50%
and 100%
better than in the development areas. This probably encourages expansion of existing enterprise, though for
inducement could
not
new
enterprise (especially from outside the province) such
possibly
compensate
for
the
widespread
terrorism
then
The Conservative administration prevalent.
The
1
970-74
11
102
decline of inward investment and the reduction of jobs created
was one
reason for the establishment of the Local Enterprise Development Unit
(LEDU)
by the Ministry of Commerce in 1971. It was charged with responsibility for financial and other support for the small-business sector, defined as those employing fewer than fifty people. This sector had previously been directly under the control of the Ministry of
Commerce. The
creation of
LEDU
was not a
specific reaction to the troubles or to Catholic claims that industrial location
policy
had disadvantaged them
and the
spatial
103
but a reaction both to growing unemployment
imbalance in industrial development and the related uneven
spread in unemployment. This was reflected in the exclusion of the Belfast region from the scope of
LEDU projects. The LEDU was formed as a company
with a part-time chairman and a board of directors; four of the directors chaired
had between and ten members. The area panels liaised between LEDU and local businesses to promote the incentives offered. To further encourage a policy of dispersal, grants were in part related to distance from Belfast with higher grants
the four area panels established to cover the province, each of which six
being available in peripheral areas.
A
LEDU
was the degree of emphasis put on non-financial 30% and 40% for premises, plant and machinery, the government stressed the availability of back-up facilities which it considered small businesses likely to require whereas large-scale enterprises would have their own network established. Examples include advice and practical help with design, marketing, research and development, exporting and related services. It was hoped that this form of cost subsidisation would allow small-scale craft and artisan operations to be commercially viable, for it was these lowcapitalised sectors producing high-value goods at which LEDU was principally aimed. This craft orientation was based on the supposed occupational profile of the rural areas and the lack of industrial experience but proved unrealistic and by 1975 only 4.5% of LEDU-assisted projects were in the craft industry sector with 104 engineering and wood/furniture projects more typical of LEDU schemes. Later the focus of LEDU was again revised with a much greater emphasis on services which had been excluded from its original remit (see chapter 5). The other major institutional development of the period aimed at financial support for industry was the creation of the Northern Ireland Finance Corporation (MFC) by the Finance Corporation (NI) Order 1972. Its origins preceded direct rule and it was to have been established by Stormont legislation had not suspension taken place. The Cairncross Report of December 1971 had been set up by Stormont to review the prospects for social and economic development since the development programme 1970-75 of the previous year (see chapter 2). Because of the special problems of civil unrest one of the recommendations of the report was for a new institution with power: feature of the
support.
As
well as grants of between
78
British
to offer financial assistance
government policy
in
Northern Ireland 1 969-89
by way of loans and, where necessary, guarantees
to
under-
takings in Northern Ireland threatened with contraction or closure but which, in the
judgment of the Corporation, have reasonably good prospects of solvency in the longer 105 term and have a useful contribution to make in the economic life of Northern Ireland.
The scope of the NIFC was to be limited in that it could not give grants which were to remain the responsibility of the Ministry of Commerce since the latter was more directly responsible to parliament in its scrutiny of the use of public funds in industrial support projects. Caincross did not advocate the direct state running of enterprises so the NIFC was not to act as a developer of nationalised industries although it could purchase shares in companies to aid liquidity problems.
was
The NIFC was constituted by chairman, chief executive and a board which
a corporatist
sentatives.
As
mix of
civil
servants,
commercial and trade unions' repre-
the direct effects of the violence
on companies within the province
106
the NIFC was to function more and less than probably anticipated as a development bank and also in support of new investment than as a salvager of firms threatened with closure because of civil disturbance. A second major plank in economic policy was the retraining of the labour force which was later to become much expanded as general policy and the use of publicly funded labour-intensive schemes to address the problem of the unskilled and often long-term unemployed. The development programme 1970-75 had proposed an expansion of industrial training both through increased apprenticeships and government-sponsored schemes, which at this time included the community projects administered by the Community Relations Commission and the Ministry of Community Relations. Retraining was premised partly on the hope of attracting new investment; the rapid shedding of 107 labour from the 'traditional' industries and agriculture; and the high proportion of young people in the labour market meant that reskilling was an
was
slight
UK
important part of an industrial strategy. As well as providing a subsidy to capital
by the
socialisation of training costs there
were possible spin-off benefits
including introducing school leavers to the discipline of work and, although a
would be hard to establish, the possibility that reduced unemployment might have a beneficial effect on the incidence of disorder. 108 direct relationship
In response to these considerations, government-sponsored training centres were expanded, and by 1975 thirteen centres provided 3,300 places, which was 109 proportionally ten times the number available in Great Britain. The Integrated Work Force Unit, established in 1972, trained groups of up to twelve workers in complementary skills with a view to their employment in either the private sector or establishing themselves as co-operatives, though there was little success in this field. Two schemes were designed to ameliorate the problem of unemployment among the unskilled who had most often worked in industries prone to recession and job insecurity; construction being a major example in this sector. The Urban and Rural Improvement Campaign (URIC) employed 4,500
The Conservative administration
1
970-74
79
in labour-intensive schemes which could utilise unskilled labour mainly on physical environment improvement projects such as reclamation and landscaping work. The second scheme was the still-existent Enterprise Ulster (EU). It was set up in 1973, initially for a five-year period, and available only to those who had been unemployed for two years or longer. It was also labour-intensive
by 1975
and in any scheme at least 75% of the cost had to consist of the labour component. The original rationale of the scheme was to provide a bridge between the dole and private-sector employment and help to 'rehabilitate' those who had
unemployment. The expectation that something employment could be achieved seemed to underpin Enterprise Ulster when it was established but later the criterion for a place was reduced to one year's unemployment and the 'rehabilitation' concept declined as it became more of a holding operation. The third category of government support for industry and commercial enterprises were short-term measures specifically to counter the direct effects of violence on commercial viability. In 1971 the Counter Redundancy Scheme was introduced which provided a direct subsidy to labour costs. If a company felt that a downturn in business was likely to be short-term the government, via the Ministry of Health and Social Security (later to be subdivided into H&SS and Manpower Services under the 1974 executive), would pay a subsidy to forestall the laying off of employees. By late 1974 it was estimated that 9,500 had been retained by the operation of the subsidy. In 1972 a temporary Rent Rebate scheme was introduced whereby commercial premises in Belfast, Derry and Newry, the areas among the worst affected by violence, were entitled to receive experienced
approaching
long-term
full
grants equivalent to
75%
of one year's rates
if
it
could be demonstrated that
revenue and profitability were seriously affected by the security situation.
A third
measure, the Security Staff Grant Scheme, was introduced in September 1972.
The government paid 75% of the
cost of employing full-time security staff if the
company employed more than ten people. It is difficult to assess whether these measures made much difference to employment maintenance in Northern Ireland although they as a result of physical
may have
damage.
contributed to the low closure rate of companies
It
was obviously an indication
that the
government
did not expect normal commercial insurance to bear the full brunt of
from the troubles. Between June 1970 and February 1974 responsibility
damage
resulting
was Stormont Cabinet, an Under Secretary of State in the Northern Ireland Office during direct rule and briefly the Minister for Commerce in the 1974 executive. Despite the changes in administration and the change from devolution to direct rule it appears that there were no significant difference of emphasis in industrial policy over this period. None of the three administrations challenged the need for a pragmatic approach which included incentives to incoming capital, support for the small-business sector, subsidisation of uneconomic concerns and government sponsorship of successively held by the Minister of
Commerce
for industrial policy
in the
British government policy in Northern Ireland 1 969-89
80
schemes and those aimed at the longer-term unemployed. The development of LEDU in 1971 can be seen as a pragmatic response to the decline in inward investment but it did not replace, but rather was an addition to, attempts to attract investment from outside the province. Hogwood concludes retraining
that: 'the abolition
remarkably
little
of the Northern Ireland Parliament seems to have
made
difference to the industrial policy processes in Northern
would not have been a different framework in the first place 110 When direct rule was introduced both the legislation covering financial provision to industry and the LEDU which were inherited from Stormont were left unchanged and the establishment of the NIFC by the Conservatives had its genesis under Stormont. Although the Conservative government had been elected with an ideological hostility towards state intervention and regional policy this did not have an impact in Northern Ireland. By the time of direct rule the period of 'U turns' was already in operation and the civil disorder and economic disadvantages of Northern Ireland, particularly the former, were strong pressures towards a pragmatic approach. This enabled Northern Ireland to provide higher rates of grants to industrial investors than assisted areas in Great Britain and retain Regional Employment Premiums after they had been phased out elsewhere in the UK. David Howell, the first minister with responsibility for industrial policy under direct rule, stated that he was not bound by market forces and considered himself a pragmatist. He was prepared to consider the establishment of what amounted to 'state' industry by providing grants of up to 100% of capital costs in unem111 ployment blackspots such as areas of west Belfast. Despite Bradley et al.'s 112 contention that it was not until the Regional Physical Development Strategy 1975-95 that the 'key' or 'growth' centre policy of industrial concentration was really challenged, Howell was starting to use more geographically specific discretionary grants and localised training via the Integrated Work Force Units to 'target' areas of high unemployment such as Whiterock in Belfast, Dungannon and Newry. The executive of 1974 did not function for long enough to test the hypothesis that the reintroduction of devolution would benefit the Northern Ireland economy because it would tend to be less bureav ratic than direct rule, and could formulate policies more suited to Northern Ireland's economy rather than being 113 subject to the prevailing ideas of Westminster. A separate argument also employed in devolution's favour is that political co-operation between the Northern Ireland parties would possibly have a knock-on effect in restoring Ireland, though there in the
absence of Stormont'.
confidence
among potential
investors.
There was, however, little to indicate that the executive's economic policy would differ measurably from what had gone before. Most of the putative executive's efforts
had been focused upon constitutional and security issues
rather than social or economic ones. McAllister states that: 'the Executive's
published socio-economic policy was vague, ill-defined and
little
more than
the
1
The Conservative administration lowest
1 970-74
common denominator between
8
the three parties.
114
The SDLP was
responsible for most of what was formulated, and supported a continued
emphasis viability'
115
on private -sector investment incentives based on 'commercial although a 1974 SDLP paper 'A New North, A New Ireland',
advocated more public-sponsored industrial investment than the Conservative
government would be
To
conclude,
it
likely to
consider acceptable.
should be indicated that in terms of unemployment levels
(employment creation or maintenance being
a principal
aim of governmental
economy especially in specific regional policy measures) the economic policy of 1970-74 was reasonably successful. The emphasis was largely on male employment and this stood at 9% in 1971,8.7% in 1972,6.7% in 116 Paradoxically, it has been argued that in the short 1973 and 6.4% in 1974. term at least the troubles helped to reduce unemployment rather than to increase intervention in the
117 it.
Factors include the higher rates of migration, the increase in government
support schemes and the expansion of security employment. Public-sector
employment or jobs created by public expenditure were of increasing between 1972 and 1974 Northern Ireland Civil Service employ18 ment increased by 8,000, partly as a result of the centralising of many of the functions previously the responsibility of local authorities. Public-sector house building was another important area, with the boost provided for the construction industry following the government's acceptance of the 1970 development programme recommendation of 73,500 new houses between 1970 and 1975. Public-sector house completions peaked in 1971 but still provided a major source of employment compared with the pre- 1969 levels. A principal source of concern, as indicated above, was the decline in new investment from outside Northern Ireland. However, the industrial support agencies managed to offset this in part by the expansion of employment in companies already in operation. For example, in 1972, the year of the worst violence, jobs promoted by the Department of Commerce in companies new to 119 Northern Ireland fell sharply compared with the figures for 1970 and 1971 but this was more than offset by job promotions in expanding companies so that total job promotions were higher for 1972 than the previous two years. The problem with this trend was whether sufficient indigenous expansion could be maintained, and as international capital became scarcer it was likely to become more expensive to attract it given the competition from other countries, especially the Republic. The growing reliance on public expenditure was problematic since it depended on the health of the UK economy as a whole and the ability of the Secretary of State to sell Northern Ireland's case to the Cabinet and the Treasignificance;
]
sury.
Social policy
The
period 1970-74 was in
many ways one of consolidation
following the flurry
82
British
government policy
in
Northern Ireland 1 969-89
of reforms outlined in the communiques of 1969 (see chapter
2).
Some
of these
reforms were of a one-off nature such as the establishment of the Commissioner for
Complaints and the Parliamentary Commissioner, while others, such as the and important local government functions took longer
centralisation of housing to effect
and were not completed
until after the accession
of the Conservative
government. This was not of significance as the Conservatives had supported the
reform package agreed between Stormont and the Labour government in 1969 and neither their election in 1970 nor direct rule in 1972 threatened this policy of centralisation.
The transfer of all public-housing responsibilities to the Northern Ireland Housing Executive (NIHE) was carried out under the Housing Executive (NI) Act of October 1971 and the process was completed by mid 1972. As well as local authority properties all those administered by the Housing Trust (a body funded by central government to supplement local housing provision) and the three Development Commissions came under the control of the NIHE. The NIHE was funded by and responsible to the Ministry of Development, which appointed the chairman and five of the other eight members of the committee. The remaining three members were nominated by the Housing Council, an advisory body formed to allow an input from local councillors from whom housing responsibilities had been removed. The executive was functionally divided into four directorates with responsibility for management, development, finance and administration and geographically divided into three regions which further subdivided into ten areas and forty districts. It was hoped that this structure would allow direct access of tenants to district managers and avoid problems of bureaucratic remoteness.
The two main
reasons
for
centralisation
were
to
counter
claims
of
discriminatory allocation and to tackle the poor quality and small quantity of
public-housing stock.
On
both counts the
previous system of locai 'dministration.
was
in
120
politics' as
constraints of the increased
communal
following the disorders of 1969.
there was
was an improvement on the it proved difficult to take
In theory, the had been Callaghan's intention. favour of integrated housing patterns but had to work within the
'housing out of
NIHE
NIHE
However
121
segregation of working-class areas
This had two implications
for
housing policy:
chance of using housing policy as a tool to integrate the two communities; and it meant in effect that two parallel housing waiting lists emerged. Therefore despite the adoption of an objective 'points' system of little
allocation segregation could have the effect of distorting to
be
to Catholic disadvantage as there
were
it.
relatively
This was more
fewer
likely
'safe' areas for
122
The importance attached to territoriality by both communities and the implications of housing developments which might challenge it meant that it was not possible to take housing out of politics. 123 Catholic setdement.
In the
progress
summer of 1971 Stormont had produced a Green Paper outlining the made in reforms since the communiques of 1969 (see chapter 2). It had
The Conservative administration
little
1 970-74
83
effect in placating representatives of the minority
community who were
boycotting Stormont, and the introduction of internment had further worsened relations.
Despite the main focus on constitutional
the introduction of direct rule, two
initiatives in the
period after
new reforms were considered which related to
safeguards against possible discrimination: the establishment of a working party to consider legislation to prevent discrimination in the private sector,
and the
establishment of a body to advise on the protection of human rights.
The working party to consider ways to prevent discrimination in private-sector August 1972 under the chairmanship of Channon, the in November. The Green Paper detailing the progress of the reform programme recorded that the Stormont administration was considering such an inquiry but that it depended on further consultation with the representatives of trades unions and employers.
employment was
set
Minister of State,
up
in
who was succeeded by van Straubenzee
Therefore, Whitelaw's decision did not mark a break with the pre direct rule policy.
The decision seems to have stemmed from discussions with local notables The minority community's political repre-
rather than from political pressure.
124
were not prime movers behind the setting up of the working party and political parties did not provide nominees to it. Members of the working party were drawn from the CBI, the Northern Ireland Chamber of Commerce and the sentatives
Northern Ireland Committee of the basis that they
Irish Congress of Trades Unions, on the would have experience of the problems of discrimination in the
work place.
The working party limited
did not consider the nature or extent of discrimination but
proposals to ways to deal with
its
four reasons; there was
little
it.
The use of quotas was rejected for among those consulted, quotas
support for them
conflicted with the principle of equal opportunity
favoured, and there were two practical problems. the quota system
based on
would operate,
district council areas,
e.g.
which the working party
One was to decide on what unit
whether done by the whole population or The second
towns or factory catchment areas.
problem was that it was felt that quotas would perpetuate rather than lessen community divisions and this was the most serious objection to their use. 125 Having rejected quotas, the concept of 'affirmative action' was advocated. This meant that any agency set up to combat discrimination should have a wider role than the investigation of individual complaints and should formulate deliberate
programmes under which equality of opportunity could be achieved. Examples of this would be encouraging firms to ensure that recruitment practices were objective and not only likely to reach one denominational group and offering advice on how to ensure that practices which were not deliberately discriminatory, but which may have had the effect of favouring one community, could be avoided.
The report also hoped to utilise the good intentions of those committed to such principles.
Those organisations endorsing the
the signing of a 'Declaration of Principle
and
practice of equal opportunity by Intent'
would be registered and
84
British
government policy in Northern Ireland 1 969-89
allowed to advertise themselves thus. This seems to have been of limited use
and no 126 be undertaken by them. The prospective agency was to have three broad functions; the investigation of individual complaints of discrimination; advice and exhortation to organisations since there was no proper monitoring of signatories of the declaration
changes
in
employment
practices
to ensure that recruitment or
had
to
promotion structures were not inadvertendy
127
and research into work patterns, educational achievement and other areas relevant to the creation of full equality of opportunity. While hoping that there would be voluntary support for such action and that conciliation and persuasion would settle disputes, the report of the working party argued that legal sanctions might be necessary and advocated making discrimination a civil discriminatory;
offence.
128
Legislation was to be phased in with firms employing fewer than
two years and those with fewer than ten report was aware that attempts at reform
twenty-five people exempt for the
first
employees exempt
for three years.
The
were not
from wider influences and
isolated
that
an increase
in
employment
opportunities would be the 'biggest single influence' towards eradicating discrimination.
Fair
The bulk of the working party proposals were
Employment
incorporated into the
(NI) Act which will be considered in the next chapter.
A pledge to increase the safeguards against discrimination and to monitor the implications of legislation for the rights of the citizen was
Paper of
May
1973
(Cmnd 5259) which
assembly. Although the Protection of
Human
made
in the
White
outlined the proposals for the
new
UK was a signatory to the European Convention for the
Rights and Fundamental Freedoms and the Universal
Declaration of Human Rights, the government argued that the reintroduction of devolution and a subordinate legislature meant that further safeguards were necessary. Sections 17-19 of the Northern Ireland Constitution Act which
followed the White Paper declared that any law or subordinate instrument passed by the assembly would be declared void if it discriminated against a person or class of persons
on
political or religious
grounds. If the Secretary of State
considered that proposed legislation was discriminatory he could refer Judicial
Committee of the Privy Council
unlawful for Northern Ireland Ministers, subject to the scrutiny of the
for consideration.
members of the
It
was
it
to the
also to
be
executive or any body
PCA or the Commissioner for Complaints under the do These measures were not without pre-
relevant legislation of 1969 to discriminate or 'aid, incite or induce' another to
so in the discharge of their functions.
cedent; the
Government of Ireland Act 1920 had prohibited
administration from passing discriminatory laws so legal safeguards
An
it
were of limited effectiveness.
innovation was the establishment of a Standing Advisory
Human
Rights
the devolved
could be argued that formal
(SACHR).
Its
functions were two-fold.
Commission on
One was
to advise the
Secretary of State: 'on the adequacy and effectiveness of the law for the time
being in force in preventing discrimination on the grounds of religious belief or political opinion and in providing redress for persons aggrieved on either
The Conservative administration
1
970-74
85
129
The o'Ker related function was to co-ordinate the activity of the other make recommendations to the Secretary of State concerning improvements in human rights protection. To facilitate the co-ordination of the activities of the various agencies the PCA, the Commisground'.
agencies involved in this area and
sioner for Complaints (usually one person held both offices) and the chairman of
Community
the
SACHR.
Relations
Commission were
Other members were
to
including representatives of the business
made
Criticisms were the
SACHR
liberties
was
at the
likely to
130
be
community and
the
the trades unions.
have as no mention was
The SACHR's own
field
made of the effect on civil and there was no mention of
dissatisfaction with
its
the annual reports presented to the Secretary of State.
1976/77 stated that public expectations appointed and
members of
ex officio
time of the White Paper of the limited impact that
of emergency legislation in the security
a Bill of Rights.
to
be appointed by the Secretary of State
role
is
revealed in
The Third Report
in its effectiveness
had been
dis-
that:
it is
probable that the essential difficulty here results from the fact that the Commission
are,
by their title, ostensibly concerned with 'Human Rights' and yet their statutory powers
are very as
much narrower.
It is
not surprising that people doubt the value of the Commission
an independent body when
our statutory remit) but consideration by you.
is
much
of the work
we do
is
not as of right
pursued on an extra-statutory basis or
is
(in
pursuance of
referred for our
131
The Commission's advocacy
of a
Bill
of Rights was consistently ignored by
successive governments despite the support of the Northern Ireland parties, as
were many of
themes
its
recommendations concerning security
be returned to administration of 1970-74. will
in later chapters as they are
legislation.
These
not specific to the
Conclusion
The
Conservative administration of 1970-74 has two distinct phases. In the
first
Labour predecessor in working through Stormont. However, the continuation of violence and resurgent nationalism demonstrated the limitations of such a policy, and a worsening of relations developed between the two main British parties as Labour became critical of what it perceived to be the passivity of Maudling and the relative influence of the Stormont administration. The introduction of direct rule, the second phase, was important for three principal reasons. Firstly, the Irish question re-entered the mainstream of British 132 politics with consequent demands on the parliamentary timetable. Secondly, it marked the beginning of a long period of specific constitutional initiatives; an explicit recognition that the reforms of 1969-72 were not considered adequate to the resolution of the 'problem'. The government also recognised a need to 'move
phase there was a continuity with that of
its
.
86
British
.
government policy in Northern Ireland 1 969-89
and social reforms were all necessary 133 Therefore, the period 1972-4 can be programme. categorised as one of activism and the policies of power sharing, the introduction of the EPA and the attempts to deal with discrimination in employment set parameters within which successive administrations were to work. It can thus be argued that the major elements of British policy had been established by the end of this administration. Thirdly, the activism of the government helped to reinforce bipartisanship which had been weakened in the period prior to direct rule.
on
all fronts':
that constitutional, security
parts of an integrated
Notes 1
Callaghan, 1973 p. 64.
2
ibid. p. 143.
3
Although
had changed by the time of the convention
his position
advocated an accommodation with the
4
See McAllister 1977a on the
in
1975 when he
SDLP.
SDLP
and McAllister and Wilson 1978 on the
Alliance Party. 5
Bew and Patterson
6
See Bishop and Mallie 1987
7
Bew and
8
Wilson
HC Vol. 8
9
For the
strains
10 11
Patterson op. 1
cit.
IRA since
for a history of the
pp.
the late 1960s.
24 and 3 1
5 col. 27 1 6/4/7 1
caused by internment see pp. 58-60.
Cmd 558 Belfast 1971. 'The Future Development of the Parliament and Government of Northern 'A Record of Constructive Change'
Ireland:
12
1985 pp. 24-5.
A Consultative Document' Cmd 560 Belfast
HC Vol. 811
1971.
Col. 132015/2/71.
Scarman 1972 Section 3:2. Lord Windlesham and Channon served as Ministers of State until June 1973 and November 1972 respectively. Van Straubenzee replaced Channon and remained until the end of the administration. Howell was appointed Under Secretary at the beginning of direct rule and became Minister of State in November 1972, serving until January 1974. Peter Mills replaced Howell as Under Secretary in November 1972 and served until January 1974. Lord Belstead was appointed as a second Under Secretary in June 1973. 13
14
Pym replaced Whitelaw as
Secretary of State in early
HC Vol. 834 Col. 251
15
Callaghan
16
There were 103 deaths between
26/6/72. Flackes 1983
p.
December
the introduction of direct rule and the ceasefire of
320.
of Bew and Patterson op.
17
See note 51
18
Interview (unattributed).
19
Flackes 1983
20
Bew and Patterson op. cit. pp. 47-52. The positions of the main parties are recorded
21
in ch. 2
p.
1973.
28/3/72.
cit.
252.
in the discussion paper.
22 Under the 1 949 Act the status of Northern Ireland depended on the consent of the Northern Ireland Parliament which was now suspended. 23 'Northern Ireland Constitutional Proposals' Cmnd 5259 1973 para. 1 10. 24 The dissenters were Molyneaux, Powell, Orr, Wellbeloved and Winterton. 25 HC Vol. 853 Col. 1564 29/3/73.
.
The Conservative administration 26 27 28 29 Paper
Kilfedder
Callaghan
1
970-74
87
HC Vol. 853 Col. 1428 29/3/73. HC Vol. 857 Col. 1750 14/6/73.
'The Northern Ireland General Elections of 1973' Cmnd 585 1 London 1975. Unionist Party had split in April 1973 over Faulkner's support for the White
The
proposals.
30 Unpledged Unionists were those who had refused an undertaking to support the White Paper proposals. Pym had replaced Whitelaw as Northern Ireland Secretary of State in early 31 December 1973 but Heath and Whitelaw were the principal British government negotiators.
32
For
a consideration of the implications of
and possible forms of a Council of
Ireland produced before Sunningdale see articles in Administration 20 (4) 1972.
33 34
Cited in Hansard
HC Vol. 866 Col. 37
ibid, for positions
of the two governments.
35
See Power 1977
36
'Report of the
p.
48
10/12/73.
for this point.
Law Enforcement Commission' Cmnd 5627
HMSO
London
1974.
37 38 39 40
Power
41
Fortnight
op.
Bew and
cit. p.
52.
Patterson op.
McAllister 1977b
Quoted
in
cit.
Buckland 1981
No. 84
p. 60.
p. 32.
May
p. 169.
1974.
42 e.g. Criminal Justice (Temporary Provisions) Act (NI) 1970 and the Public Order (Amendment) Act (NI) 1970. 43 HC Vol. 8 1 5 Cols 267-7 1 6/4/7 1 44 Bew, Gibbon and Patterson 1979 p. 183. 45 Faulkner 'Memoirs of a Statesman' London 1978. 46 ibid. p. 1 17 emphasis added. 47 Sunday Times \911 p. 260. 48 ibid. p. 267. 49 Faulkner op. cit. p. 128. 50 See the section on constitutional policy for Wilson's idea concerning a commission.
53
HC Vol. 823 Col. 141 22/9/71. Heath HC Vol. 823 Col. 322 23/9/71. HC Vol. 827 Col. 70 29/11/71 emphasis ended.
54
HCVol. 827
55
'Report of the Inquiry into allegations against the Security Forces of Physical
51
52
Brutality in
Report)
Col. 158 29/11/71.
Northern Ireland, arising out of events on 9th August 1971' (Compton
Cmnd 4823 London
1971.
56
ibid. pp.
57
ibid. p.
58
'Report of the Committee of Privy Counsellors appointed to consider authorised
69-70.
71 (both quotations).
procedures for the interrogation of persons suspected of terrorism' (Parker Report)
4901 London 1972.
59 60
HCVol. 826 HCVol. 826
Col.
496 17/1 1/71.
Col. 1009 25/11/71.
Cmnd
88
British
61
government policy in Northern Ireland 1 969-89
HC Vol. 832 Col. 744 2/3/72.
62
Parker Report para. 34.
63 64
ibid. p. 13
(Minority Report).
EHRR 25)1978 Republic ofIreland. UK upheld the case of inhuman and degrading treatment but dismissed the argument that the techniques The European Court (2
constituted torture.
65
66 67 68
HC Vol. 831 Cols 1285-97 23/2/72. e.g.,
the toleration of no-go areas.
HC Vol. 831 Col.
1421 23/2/72.
Between 1970 and the summer of 1972 the number of troops had increased from
approximately 7,000 to 21,000. Flackes 1983 pp. 309-10.
HC Vol. 834 Col. 240 28/3/72. 70 From the end of March up to 7 November no new internment orders were made and by the latter date there were 167 internees compared with a peak of over 900 just prior 69
to direct rule.
71
'Report of the Commission to consider legal procedures to deal with terrorist
activities in
72 73 rights,
Northern Ireland' (Diplock Report)
Cmnd 5185 London
1972.
This was accepted by the Report of the European Court. 'Report of a Committee to consider, in the context of
measures
to deal
civil liberties
and human
with terrorism in Northern Ireland' (Gardiner Report)
Cmnd
5847 London 1975. 74 See Boyle, Hadden and Hillyard 1975 p. 73. 75 HC Vol. 848 Cols 55-8 1 1/12/72. 76 Boyle etal. opcit. Table on p. 65. 77 HC Vol. 848 Col. 89 11/12/72. Fitt, Devlin and some Labour backbenchers opposed it. 78 i.e. that dealt with appeals against detention. 79 The Baker Report of 1984 recommended that the discretion to deschedule be extended to the Director of Public Prosecutions.
80
See
81
R.v. Flynn and Leonard May 1972 cited in Taylor 1980 p. 33.
e.g.
Boyle et
82
Diplock op.
83
ibid. para. 84.
84
ibid. para. 70.
85
ibid. para. 54.
cit.
al.
op.
cit.
para. 59.
86 Boyle, Hadden and Hillyard 1980 p. 27. 87 ibid. Table on p. 28. 88 HC Vol. 855 Cols 378 and 293-300 17/4/73. 89 Fifteen Labour members, Fitt (SDLP), Tope and C. Smith (Liberal) opposed the second reading. 90 HC Vol. 859 Cols 766-70 5/7/73. 92
HC Vol. 859 Col. 823 5/7/73. HC Vol. 859 Col. 841 5/7/73.
93
The
91
Criminal Justice Act had been passed to provide mandatory sentences on
those involved in
94 out.
civil
disorder.
After this the policy of mass searches declined as detention was gradually phased
The Conservative administration
1
970-74
89
95
Boyle etal. 1975.
96
The number of shooting incidents and
deaths in 1973 was approximately half that
of 1972.
See Bradley, Hewitt and Jefferson 1 986 Section 2. Harvey and Rea 1982 p. 98. 'Review of Economic and Social Development in Northern Ireland: Report of the Board' (Cairncross Report) Cmd 564 Belfast 1971. Review Joint Belfast 1975. 100 'Social and Economic Trends No. 1' Dept. of Finance 97
98 99
HMSO
example McClements 1981
101
See
102
Davies and
103
Interview with
104
Busteed 1976 pp. 178-9.
105
Cairncross op.
1 06
Between 1968 and 1975 only sixteen firms with a total of 1 ,000 employees closed a result of physical damage. Harrison (R. T.) 1982 pp. 279-80.
down
as
for
McGurnaghan 1975
p. 103.
p. 61.
LEDU Official Belfast 3 1/7/86. Section 3:6.
cit.
109
Rowthornl981. See later for an elaboration of this point. Davies, McGurnaghan and Sams 1977 p. 303.
110
Hogwoodl982p.57.
111
Interview in Fortnight No. 71 2/11/73.
112
See note 97 above. See Harvey and Rea op.
107 1 08
1
13
cit.
p. 1 10.
114
McAllister 1977a
115
ibid. p. 153.
116
Seasonally adjusted and excluding school-leavers.
p. 145.
NI Annual
Abstract of
Dept of Finance HMSO Belfast 1986. See Simpson in Fortnight No. 72 2/1 1/72.
Statistics 1
17
118
Davies etal. 1977
p.
119
Harrison op.
This
cit.
304. is
not to argue that
all this
decline
is
attributable to
violence.
120
Simpson 1973
121
An
p. 95.
Simpson was then the Director General of the NIHE. moved within or from Belfast between 1969 and
estimated 60,000 people
1976.0'Dowdetal.p. 133. 122
This point
123
e.g. the
124
Osborne 1981/2 p. 335. See McCrudden 1981 who argues
125
relates particularly to Belfast.
Poleglass development in
West
Belfast
and see Dawson 1984.
that the concept of quotas
was not adequately
defined.
FEA Official Belfast 3 1/7/86.
126
Interview with
127
The Dept of Manpower Services was
128
See the discussion of the FEA in Chapter 4 for the question of legal redress. Northern Ireland Constitution Act 1973 Section 20(1).
129 131
See Fortnight No. 62 21/5/73. HC Paper 199 1977/78 Para. 65.
132
This was
130
to
some
tendency to consider Irish 133
upon
extent mitigated by the use of Orders in Council and the
affairs at
Interview (unattributed).
in the
to publish guidelines in 1978.
concluding chapter.
somewhat unsociable hours.
The
question of policy interrelation will be expanded
The Labour administrations 1974-79
Introduction
The Labour Party under Wilson won the February 1974 election though without gaining an overall majority, winning 301 seats to the Conservatives' 297. In the election of October
Labour gained an overall majority of three with 319
Owing
the Conservatives winning 277.
seats
and
to the short-term nature of the first
administration, this chapter will deal with both administrations together.
Rees was appointed Secretary of
State, with
Orme and Moyle (from June Don Concannon (from June April 1976. Mason succeeded
1974) as Ministers of State. Lord Donaldson and 1974)
filled
the
Under
Secretary positions until
Rees in September 1976; Concannon was promoted to Minister of State in April 1976 and Lord Melchett became the other Minister of State. Carter and Dunn became Under Secretaries from April 1976, with Dunn being replaced by Pendry in November 1978 owing to ill-health.
Constitutional policy
The fall of the 1974
The Labour
executive
Party was faced with the problem of being committed to support of
the power-sharing executive and the assembly which was being the electoral success of the
UUUC
January 1974 the executive had made
(see
Chapter
little
3).
progress.
A
Since
undermined by
its
formation in
statement of aims had
been published, but by April no Bills had been produced and the Select Committees were proving ineffective. As well as the external difficulties of growing hostility and the threat of industrial action by loyalist workers, there was internal discord. The SDLP was pressing for the ratification of the Sunningdale agreement and the establishment of the Council of Ireland before concentrating on policy formulation for Northern Ireland and its failure to give unconditional 1
support to the security forces 2 strained relations with the other two parties which
composed
the executive.
1
The Labour administrations 1 974-79
On
May
14
the assembly voted
arrangements and thus Ireland.
grouping
of
44-28 against renegotiating
constitutional
proceed with the establishment of the Council of
to
This precipitated
umbrella
9
a strike
by the Ulster Workers' Council (UWC), an trades
loyalist
unionists
and
The
paramilitaries.
UWC
was of great significance as it marked the rise of development of the direct action by elements of the loyalist working class with the role of politicians
3
being marginalised and although intimidation was used in the early
period of the strike, there was considerable support for
community.
4
The
ultimate
commentators predicting
success
of
the
and
direction
amongst the Unionist resulted
considering
negotiations
in
some
Northern Ireland
a recasting of political forces in
with the possibility of politicised loyalist working-class socialist
it
UWC
movements going with
the
in a
Republican
and the possibility of a negotiated independence for Northern However, such developments were largely still-born and
paramilitaries
UWC
Ireland. activists
did not generally
On
May
the 22
make
the transition to conventional politics.
on Faulkner's
the executive,
Council of Ireland be limited
at first to
initiative,
5
proposed that the
the Council of Ministers with the
second element, the Consultative Assembly, being postponed until after the
The SDLP down of the Irish
next elections to the Northern Ireland assembly due in 1977.
members of
the assembly had at
first
dimension by eleven votes to 8 but
rejected a watering
later reversed their decision
the proposal by 13 votes to 6 following the intervention of this
concession was insufficient for the
growing support for
it
and the
strategic
UWC
and the
and supported
Orme. However, strike
continued;
importance of the power workers
UWC
hold out for the abandonment of the whole structure of power sharing. Following the assembly compromise over the implementation of the Council of Ireland, Rees, having consulted with Wilson, announced through the Northern Ireland Office that there would be no departure from helped the
UWC
and no negotiations with the as was an unelected body. The SDLP supported Rees' stand, but Faulkner advocated negotiation and the Unionists resigned from the executive on 28 May as Rees maintained his position. Without Unionist membership the executive could not operate as representative of both communities and it
the present constitutional arrangements it
collapsed.
The
failure
of the British government to support more resolutely the 6
and recrimination. Three main factors may be deduced as to why it was unprepared to mobilise all resources against 7 the strike. Firstly, the army and Mason, the Minister of Defence, advised Wilson and Rees that the army did not have the expertise to run the vital sectors affected by the strike, and were unable or perhaps unwilling to confront the loyalist paramilitaries as this might prove a more intractable problem than the IRA, which had itself proved resilient. The prospect of a war on two fronts was not a prospect about which to be sanguine. Healey had executive
is
still
a matter of debate
92
British
government policy in Northern Ireland 1 969-89
warned Wilson in 1969 about the problem of appearing to represent the Catholics and trying to rule with a disaffected majority, and the lesson was
now applied. 8 Secondly,
it
had become apparent that power sharing had insufficient popular at least in the form of May 1974 when neither the SDLP
support to be sustained,
nor the Republic appeared prepared
to accept the jettisoning of the Irish
dimension
Army had
in
its
entirety. If the British
taken a stronger line against
paramilitary activity and had engaged in the provision of essential services, which 9
Rees felt anyway was impossible, it would still have proved difficult to resurrect power sharing at the end of the strike given the UUUC success at the general election. If Westminster would not reimpose a form of government that lacked the support of much of the minority community it was hardly likely to use coercion to bolster one that did not have the support of much of the Unionist community. Thirdly, as Fisk argues, it was not only the vulnerability of the Executive
itself but the British fear
of 'contagion' that influenced Wilson:
was the Prime Minister's own fear of the executive's imminent disintegration - and his would contaminate the stability of his own Government if he 10 continued to support it - that made the coalition's abandonment inevitable. it
belief that this collapse
It
has been argued that the executive would have failed even without the
intervention.
11
It
only
managed
to function as
it
UWC
did because most of the impor-
tant areas of policy were reserved matters. The role of Dublin was crucial and this was outside the control of the executive. Dublin's ratification of Sunningdale was the basis of SDLP participation in the executive and its quick and effective response to the questions of security and extradition was necessary for Faulkner's Unionists to have any success in convincing the Protestant community that there was anything to be gained from Dublin involvement in the north's future. Dublin's failure to deliver on what either the SDLP or the Unionists wanted before the crisis of May (it seems most unlikely that it could have satisfied both) further weakened the executive and revealed the factionalism within it. Rees argued that Westminster would have been prepared to amend the Council of Ireland proposals earlier and blames the executive and, in particular, the SDLP 12 for sticking to them in face of the Whether this would have opposition.
UWC
allowed the salvaging of the internal power-sharing element later Protestant opposition to
In the
Commons debate 13
it
would indicate
that
it
was
is
debatable, but
unlikely.
following the executive's collapse the British parties
presented a united front in defeat. Rees announced that as no basis for the assembly existed under the terms of the Constitution Act 1973 it was to be
prorogued under Section 27(6) by Order
and he defended his would have given legitimacy to a non-elected body. In considering possible ways forward, both Pym and Rees rejected integration on the grounds that it would overburden Westminster and Rees felt it would run counter to what he perceived to be the development of a decision not to negotiate with the
UWC
as
in Council,
it
The Labour administrations 1974-79
93
nascent Ulster nationalism manifested by the
ment was
UWC strike. The Labour govern-
also considering the devolution of
powers
to
Scotland and Wales,
pending the Kilbrandon Report on the Constitution, so integration for Northern
would have been an anomaly
Ireland
in light of these
developments. Both Heath
and Wilson remained somewhat unrealistically optimistic about the possibilities of power sharing. While Rees had tended to emphasise the Irish dimension as the stumbling block to progress Wilson defended
agreement and did not accept that
SDLP
it
its
inclusion in the Sunningdale
should have been postponed given that the
had accepted the postponement of the consultative body, and
that the
Council of Ministers would not have had any additional functions granted to until after the next
Northern Ireland Assembly
it
elections.
Both Conservatives and Labour concurred on what was to be a dominant theme in the Constitutional Convention which Rees established in 1975; agreement in Northern Ireland was more likely to be forthcoming if the role of Westminster and Dublin was downplayed and there was more flexibility in potential institutional frameworks. Wilson stated that: 'the future of Northern Ireland will have to be worked out increasingly by the people of Northern Ireland 14 themselves'. Orme concluded that the: 'central theme which seems to have emerged from this debate is that we must look for a much broader-based 15 powersharing'. One commentator argues that the Convention strategy meant that: 'implicitly, there would be no more Darlington-type meetings, unless the 16 strenuous loyalists participated, and there would be no more Sunningdales'.
The convention The
strategy
establishment of a convention in which the role of Britain and the Republic
was negligible and which was
to
have no
legislative or executive
power was
paralleled by the shift in security policy (see p. 109) towards an 'internalising' of
the problem,
i.e.
reducing the influence of the external actors, the
UK and the
Republic. This was, in part, a pragmatic response to the problems the Irish
dimension had caused in the Sunningdale strategy and had the advantage for the
government that if agreement were not reached, the focus, in Britain and would be on the intransigence of the Northern Ireland parties rather than on the inadequacy of British policy. Rees stated that: British
internationally,
whatever the difficulties the Convention was the only way to proceed. If the Northern Ireland politicians failed to find a
message
to the
South of Ireland,
way through, it would at least show the world, and 17 blame did not all lie with the British.
give a
that the
A White
Paper, 'The Northern Ireland Constitution'
1974
make
18
was published on 4 July It was to be purely 19 consultative with no administrative or legislative powers with a remit to consider 'what provision for the government of Northern Ireland is likely to command the most widespread acceptance throughout the community there. 20 to
provision for a Constitutional Convention.
94
British
The
government policy
in
Northern Ireland 1 969-89
paper included the term 'power-sharing' although, given the overtones of
Sunningdale, 'partnership' or 'sharing' were to become more popular in
What was
vocabulary.
clear
was
that a return to rule
official
by a solely Unionist
administration would not be acceptable to Westminster. Para. 45 stated that: 'events have
shown
that a consensus
can be obtained on serving the interests of
the whole community'. Although the convention was to function as a forum in
which the Northern Ireland parries could thrash out proposals without direct Westminster intervention, para. 45 also stated that any form of devolved government proposed had to be acceptable to the UK as a whole and that an Irish dimension did exist. However, institutional links were not emphasised; only vague references to common interests and areas of possible mutual interest such as co-operation in social and economic policy were included. Para. 40, which dealt with the financial relationship between Britain and Northern Ireland, states, that:
the willingness of the Westminster parliament responsible to the to transfer additional
Northern Ireland
The veiled
money
to
will inevitably
Northern Ireland and
UK electorate as a whole
continue to invest resources in
be affected by the progress of events there.
economic penalties for the failure to agree had already been emphasised by Orme, the 21 economic policy, and some saw this as a hint
threat of direct or indirect
on a power-sharing
initiative
Minister with responsibility for that withdrawal
was being considered
resurrect devolution.
The
to
as a possible option in the event of failure to
22
convention was to be elected on the same basis as the assembly with 78
on the 12 Westminster constituencies and candidates elected by to sit for six months or until it submitted recommendations, whichever was earlier. If agreement had not been reached within this period it could be extended for three months, subject to parliamentary approval, or recalled within six months of dissolution. If the report fulfilled the requirements of 'most widespread acceptance' the Secretary of State had a seats based
STV. The convention was
statutory obligation to place the proposals before parliament for consideration.
The government might then choose to devolve both legislative and administrative powers if it considered the widespread support criterion had been met. The Secretary of State was to be empowered to introduce polls or referenda in Northern Ireland on matters concerned with the convention's recommendations
although these could not override the result of the Border Poll of 1973. In the debate of 9 July on the White Paper, Rees defended the proposals and those of 1973 on the grounds that the concept of 'partnership' was firmly
The executive had failed because of the form of implementation rather than because it was intrinsically unworkable. The removal of direct Westminster and Dublin input would provide the space in which a new
established in the province.
form could be established. In reply to criticism of the vagueness of the Irish dimension in the White Paper (i.e. stating that it existed without drawing any
The Labour administrations
1
974-79
95
Rees countered that this could be left to Belfast and Dublin 23 Englishmen played little or no part in Sunningdale.' Critics such as Fitt felt that the commitment to power sharing was largely a sham since the British government had shown itself unwilling to support it in 1974 and if the convention rejected it, as appeared likely, the government would take no measures to enforce it. The retreat from Sunningdale was an implicit recognition of the Unionist veto on political development and a reduction of the neutral role 24 Criticism also came from the Tory right who felt that the governof Britain. ment should spell out more exactly what it desired for Northern Ireland; the strength of flexibility could as well be interpreted as the weakness of an abdication from providing responsible direction. A more positive commitment to the Union and less vague talk of Irish dimensions which inflamed the Unionist 25 community would reduce the political uncertainty on which terrorism thrived. Orme defended the vagueness of the Irish Dimension on the grounds that it was principally Sunningdale and the Council of Ireland which the UUUC opposition and the election results of February 1974 had condemned; power sharing in some form might be resuscitated. This equation was to reappear later 26 SDLP co-operation might be forthcoming in talks on in British thinking; devolution even if there was no real likelihood of the Irish dimension developing, whereas if it did develop, Unionist co-operation would not be forthcoming. Therefore a Council of Ireland on a Sunningdale model should be relegated to part of a longer-term strategy and one to be devised bilaterally by Belfast and implications from to sort out:
'I
it)
was
told
Dublin.
The White Paper was closely made provision for
1974, which
followed by the Northern Ireland Act of July elections to,
and operation
of,
the convention
and rationalised the administrative details necessitated by the collapse of the executive.
The
Westminster
responsibilities
after the
devolved to the assembly would return to
former had been dissolved by Order
in Council.
The
departmental responsibilities of the executive would revert to the Secretary of
and
27
Direct Rule was reintroduced but for one year only and was annually renewable should the convention not produce a framework for State
his deputies.
devolution acceptable to the government.
duced
to bridge the
The 1974 Act was
principally intro-
gap between the assembly and the convention and to specify
procedural and financial arrangements for the
latter;
an adjunct to the 1973
Constitution Act.
The
debate on the
Bill raised similar points to that
of the White Paper.
The
Conservatives supported the proposals; the Unionists were generally sceptical,
and
Fitt,
the only non-unionist Northern Ireland
introduction of the to those forces in
White Paper and the
Bill
Northern Ireland which
member, believed
that the:
today represent an abject and total surrender
about using every endeavour to bring to an end the system of government that we had under the Sunningdale agreement. 28 set
Orme dismissed the objections over the difference of wording between the White
96
British
Paper and the
we do
29
in
Northern Ireland 1 969-89
saying:
not want to get involved in an argument about semantics.
acceptability
solution
He
Bill
government policy
and being representative of the community
must be acceptable
to
also rejected increased
devolution
would have
both communities.
compensatory
talk
we mean
about
that any
30
Northern Ireland representation
a
When we
as a whole,
effect
for
at
Westminster
as
under-
proportionate
representation at Westminster.
Having established the framework for the convention the government left time for discussions within and between the Northern Ireland parties to develop. In preparation for the convention election, the Northern Ireland Office produced a discussion paper in November 1974. It reiterated the terms of the convention and offered guidelines on procedure, including the possibility of establishing committees to consider various aspects of policy which would act as a trial run in the event of convention members later becoming members of an executive. Another suggestion was for the formation of a steering committee to work closely with the chairman to facilitate inter-party discussions. The discussion paper also made provision for lack of unanimity in the convention: If it proves impossible to reach full
agreement within the Convention,
it
would be open
to
the Convention to report on the various arrangements for government that had been likely to command the necessary widespread acceptance throughout the community, and on the degree of support within the Convention for each of these
considered as
arrangements.
It
would then be
Convention into account
for Parliament to take the balance
in considering the
Convention's Report.
Another discussion paper was published details of
in
of opinion within the
31
February 1975 which included
forms of minority representation used in other countries as models
which the convention could possibly employ. The convention elections were held on 1 May 1975. 32 The UUUC, which had won 10 of the 12 Westminster seats in the election of October 1974 and 57.4% of votes cast, had maintained its unity after bargaining over seat distribution and adapted to the
on
STV system to ensure the fullest possible representation.
It
stood
on the Westminster model with one party forming the executive, increased Westminster representation for Northern Ireland, the restoration of upper-tier powers to district councils and an explicit rejection of a platform of a parliament
any institutionalised
Irish
dimension.
The
UUUC
also attacked the extent of
reserved powers under the 1973 Act and advocated that security and judicial administration should be transferred to any future assembly. In other words,
was
virtually a return to the status
it
quo ante with the exception of the creation of
advisory committees for each government department
benchers, half of whom would be
composed of backmembers of the opposition (and therefore likely
be disproportionate to their representation). The SDLP advocated power sharing and a British and Irish dimension as offering the best way forward for
to
political
and economic advance. The
specific details of representation
were not
The Labour administrations 1974-79
SDLP
97
would not
settle for less
than direct repre-
sentation in the executive and the committee structure of the
UUUC proposal's
detailed though clearly the
would not be acceptable.
Of the smaller parties, the Republican Clubs decided to
power sharing as an irrelevance as it instituand disguised the real problem, that of the British presence. The Unionist Party of Northern Ireland (UPNI), formed by Faulkner, and the Alliance both endorsed power sharing but saw the refusal of the Republic to remove its claim of sovereignty over the north from its constitution as a barrier to progress in north-south co-operation and opposed an Irish dimension. The UUUC reaped the benefits of its organisational ability and won 47 seats and 54.8% of the votes cast on a relatively low turn-out of 65.8%. The coalition was composed of 19 official Unionists, 14 of Craig's Vanguard Unionist Progressive Party, 12 of Paisley's DUP and 2 independents. The parties favouring power sharing won 3 1 seats: 17 for the SDLP, 8 Alliance, 5 UPNI and one NILP with 42.6% of the vote. On 7 November the convention voted 42-31 with three contest the elections but dismissed
tionalised the sectarian divide
abstentions to approve a draft report and submit
it
to the Secretary
report argued against guaranteed ministerial positions for the majority party in the assembly the
UUUC
rejects
and para. 144
of State.
The
members of any but
stated:
any imposed institutionalised association or other constitutional
However, it acknowledges that there is an Irish Dimension in that there are security and economic problems common to Northern Ireland
relationship with the Republic of Ireland.
and the
Irish Republic.
The powers endorsed
were largely those of 1920, including and criminal law. The other parties in the convention included their recommendations as appendices to the report following the defeat of the SDLP proposal to submit a minority report. Common ground between the UUUC and the SDLP included the desire for a devolved unicameral legislature, powers of security, judicial and electoral control to be transferred, and condemnation of the British government for talking with paramilitaries and unelected groups. Para. 33 stated that: in the report
responsibility for security, prisons
the
Convention resolved without dissent
to deplore the fact that the failure of
Her
Government in dealing with the introlerable security situation had accentuated unhappy divisions in the community and thereby had greatly impeded the work of the
Majesty's the
Convention.
The preceding
months had seen little movement from the positions adopted exception was Craig who advocated a temporary agreed coalition with two or three SDLP members in the executive and a strong committee system. The rest of the UUUC was not prepared to move beyond scrutinising backbench committees with equal government and opposition membership and shared chairmanships. On 8 September Craig was defeated 37-1 in a UUUC vote on the voluntary coalition proposal and in October was expelled from the UUUC. The convention was dissolved on 10 November under six
for the election.
One
98
British
government policy in Northern Ireland 1 969-89
the terms of the Northern Ireland Act 1974 although there was provision for
its
was evident that its remit of recommending an arrangement recall. However, to secure the 'most widespread acceptance throughout the community' had not it
been achieved. The Convention Report was debated in the Following talks with the Northern Ireland
Commons on
12 January 1976.
Rees announced that in the view of the Government, not, command 'does report although the throughout the community to provide acceptance stable widespread sufficiently 33 convention would reconvened the be on 3 February government' and effective parties,
to consider three questions: the possibility of
whether progress could be
made on an
committee structure. The committees with
50%
last
more widespread acceptance,
evolutionary basis and the nature of the
point referred to the
UUUC
proposal that
opposition representation would have scrutinising powers
and be involved in the legislative process with delaying powers of up to two years. However the committee system was principally one that embodied the notion of the SDLP and Alliance as opposition and thus did not meet the criterion of the 1974 Act and the non-UUUC parties saw it as a cosmetic exercise. Rees again refused to be drawn into a definition of power-sharing but detailed those areas where accommodation was vital. The SDLP should openly support the RUC and accept the government position that it did not consider it necessary or appropriate to create an institutional framework such as the Council of Ireland for relations with the Republic and the UUUC should accept minority representation in decision making. Heath attacked government policy for not looking beyond the incrementalism of the convention and for its failure to define what it had meant by participation which had led to a report that was clearly unacceptable. In response, Orme stated that it was impossible for the government to impose a solution and this entailed allowing the convention as free a hand as possible to find agreement among its members. A published letter from Rees to the Convention Chairman in January 1976
(Cmnd 6387) informed him fulfil
of the government's decision that the report did not
the remit of the convention and that
February.
The
letter
it
would be reconvened from 3
revealed that even areas that had cross-community support
were unacceptable to the government which was not prepared power of judicial appointments. Policing powers would only be transferred if the level of violence diminished and if agreement were reached among the Northern Ireland parties; therefore the Police Authority would remain the limit of Northern Ireland input into monitoring of security. The prospects for progress were bleak. In January forty members of the UUUC pledged not to deviate from their position in the report and had informed Rees. Talks between the UUUC and SDLP on 12 February collapsed after an hour and the last meeting of the convention took place on the 3 March. 34 Two days later Rees announced its dissolution. There was no provision for the convention to remain in session as an advisory body although Neave, the
in the convention
to transfer the
The Labour administrations
1
974-79
99
Conservative spokesman, supported such a body to scrutinise Northern Ireland fill the political vacuum between the relatively powerless and the twelve Westminster MPs. With the failure of the convention, there were two practical options open to
legislation
and
to
district councils
government: indefinite direct rule or withdrawal given that was still not favoured by either front bench. Rees records that at this time there was much discussion over withdrawal although he did not seriously 35 There were however reasons why it seemed the government contemplate it. was considering it as an option. Moyle had hinted in April 1975 that it was under consideration if the convention failed although both Rees and Wilson had 6 remained non-committal on this point. There were also warnings to trades unions and industrialists that indigenous companies would have to form the foundation of any economic revival rather than a dependence on British 37 subventions. These warnings seemed to be aimed at the members of the convention and could be seen as an implicit threat that if political progress were not forthcoming financial support would be reconsidered and the Ministers stressed the (supposed) relationship between political stability and some form of accommodation and the prospects for economic recovery, especially if it were to be based on attracting foreign investment. The third reason for such speculation was that the IRA, who had negotiated indirectly with the government via meetings with church leaders in December 1974, claimed that the government had promised the withdrawal of the army if the convention failed. Rees denied that army withdrawal or political disengagement had been promised to the IRA in attempts to arrange a cease fire. The hostility which negotiations with the IRA, the low security profile and release of detainees caused in the period of the ceasefire among the Unionist community in 1975 raised suspicions that Rees was hoping to facilitate withdrawal by provoking the Unionists into breaking the 38 link. This is given credence by Rees' own view that a new phenomenon, Ulster nationalism, had developed in the wake of the strike. Although the threat of withdrawal may have been used to encourage political co-operation in the convention or the promise of it used to fashion a ceasefire, possibly in the hope of splitting the IRA into 'military' and 'political' factions, the balance of strategies was in favour of continued direct rule. The convention had allowed the British government to demonstrate that it had attempted a political initiative and the failure lay with the intransigence of the Northern Ireland 39 politicians. Beyond that it had little positive value, and there were now few options open. In the debate on the annual renewal of the 1974 Act in July 1976, Rees argued that there was neither scope nor need for a further political initiative. Talks were continuing between the SDLP and the OUP but no progress had been made on power sharing. In recognition of this, marginal changes were made to the operation of direct rule including the removal of the limitation on the numbers of meetings per session of the Northern Ireland Committee, which had been established in 1975, and the presentation of the
British
integration
UWC
1
00
British
government policy
in
Northern Ireland 1 969-89
prospective Orders in Council to the Northern Ireland parties for their consideration.
Mason's five-point plan and the development of Conservative integrationism
Mason
September 1976 was was now to be 40 Mason relegated and the focus put upon economic policy and security. defended direct rule as firm and purposeful and denied claims about a political 41 The government was still committed to devolution as an ideal but vacuum. with the OUP withdrawal from talks with the SDLP on 7 September and the SDLP criticising the government for not detailing its intentions, devolution was a Rees's replacement by
as Secretary of State in
widely seen as a recognition that
movement on
the political front
long-term aspiration.
Mason conducted a series of bilateral talks with the parties, meeting the SDLP in late
January 1977 and the Alliance,
February. In a
wished to
Commons
see: 'the establishment
commands widespread
sentatives of both communities'.
was
meetings in
of a system of devolved government that
for participation
also
subject to inter-party agreement. In
virtually indistinguishable
from the terms of flexible
concept
to legislative status at a later date
March Mason refused
tion as requested by the Unionists since there it
and partnership by repre-
emphasised that devolution was a
which could be administrative only or proceed
1974 Act and because
DUP in separate
42
This was an established formula It
and
acceptance throughout both parts of the community in
Northern Ireland and provides
the convention.
OUP
statement on 10 February he states the government
was the wrong form of political
convenunder the
to recall the
was no provision
for
it
initiative prior to
more
backed a new forum arguing that the lack of an arena for debate encouraged the entrenchment of attitudes, but Mason refused ostensibly on the grounds that any new initiative would interfere with the preparation by parties for the local elections of May inter-party agreement. Neave, the Conservative spokesman,
1977.
The succession of talks took place against the background of the splintering of UUUC alliance. The Official Unionists refused to back the United Unionist Action Council (UUAC) strike of 3-13 May which had the support of Paisley and Baird, who had become the leader of the successor movement to Vanguard after
the
Craig's support for a coalition with the elections the
latter effectively folded.
Mason
to
SDLP
in the convention. In the local
OUP refused to have its candidates run on an UUUC ticket and the The
splintering of the unionists
make any progress with
talks in late
May aimed
the gap between local government and Westminster.
made
it
harder for
at finding a
The
DUP
way
to
fill
refused to go
beyond the democratisation of the area boards, the OUP rejected an upper tier of local government and the SDLP opposed attempts to restore local government
The Labour administrations functions which
it
practices. In July, political
forum
saw
1 974-79
101
as integrationist
Mason
and increasing the
risk
of discriminatory
rejected Conservative calls for an advisory council or
would
as they
deflect
from the government's aim of
full
devolution.
On 24 November
1977 Mason announced
to the
Commons the proposals for a
between the Northern Ireland Office and the OUP, DUP, SDLP and the Alliance. The proposals had been delayed owing to the election in the Republic, the Queen's visit to Northern Ireland and a summit between the new Taoiseach, Lynch, and Callaghan. The statement stressed the need for flexibility as a detailed blueprint would fragment 'five-point plan' following continued bilateral talks
the Northern Ireland parties.
My intention is There
tive.
will
to devolve
back
Northern Ireland
to
real
powers, not necessarily legisla-
be an Assembly based on proportional representation.
consultative role regarding legislation, but the devolved powers,
environment, planning or whatever, will go to committees. partnership basis to them.
A letter had
I
It
will
have a
whether on transport,
hope
that there will be a
43
been sent to each of the four main parties on 22 November stating was not possible so an interim measure was to be introduced
that full devolution
based on a unicameral assembly elected by proportional representation, the
first
which would have a consultative role in legislation and real responsibility over a wide range of functions, the second point. Thirdly, although a temporary measure, it was envisaged that it could form the basis of further (i.e. legislative) devolution and therefore, the fourth point, the interim arrangements, had to be durable incorporating the safeguarding of minority interests and a desire for the parties to co-operate in making the arrangements work. Fifthly, as an adjunct to the fourth point, the arrangements had to be administratively sound. The portents for the proposals were not good. Any encouragement Mason
point,
might have gained
when
SDLP
the
annual conference voted against British
OUP and DUP withdrew from talks with Northern Ireland Office in January 1978, and by March the relations between Unionists had worsened when the OUP refused to attend a meeting on Unionist
withdrawal was undermined
when
the
the
unity organised
by Paisley and Baird. In
Mason was eager to It is
right to
Ireland as
stress the
to this system, or,
laid
and
in
which the
down in the 1973
Act.
indeed to any other system.
system of government in which basis
of the unionist boycott of talks
inform the House that the term power-sharing tends to be taken in Northern
meaning the system
committed
light
open-ended nature of his proposals:
all
sections of the
The Government are
in
no way
We are committed to a devolved
community can
rights of all citizens are fully safeguarded.
participate
on
a fairer
44
The only restraint was the necessity of any proposals to be consistent with the five November 1977. The stalemate had increased the Conservative scepticism about pursuing a
points outlined in
devolutionary path and
Neave declared
that the party
no longer supported
1
02
British
government policy in Northern Ireland 1 969-89 45
Fitt accused him of supporting the and DUP to strengthen his desire for a Unionist boycott of ascendancy. Neave expanded on his ideas in the Extension Order debate to the 1974 Act at the end of June. As an impasse had been reached in the overambitious assembly proposals reform should be centred upon restoring the
attempts to resurrect power-sharing. talks
OUP
by the
discharge of regional services to locally elected representatives.
One
option was
to establish directly elected regional councils as a tier above the existing district 46 There were four potential advantages of this policy: it lessened the councils.
on Westminster;
would Northern Ireland parties; it endorsed the principle of treating Northern Ireland as an unexceptional part of the UK and the impasse of power sharing would be avoided. This is significant, since even though the impracticalities of power sharing had long been recognised, this was the first time the bipartisan commitment to it had been openly breached. Concannon rejected such an idea as Mason's plan was still before the parties and he wanted to stick to the letter of the Macrory recommendations. Rather than three or four regional councils as Neave proposed, only one regional council was necessary to administer local government
burden of
direct rule
encourage
political
responsibility
it
among
services answerable to a regional assembly.
SDLP,
filled
the 'Macrory gap' and
the
Such
a proposal
would
also alienate
as Fitt
showed, as a move away from devolution would encourage the
unionists to resist
accommodation with the minority and be evidence of creeping
the
integration.
Another important development was Callaghan's acceptance of a report by the (Cmnd 7110) which recommended an increase in 47 Northern Ireland's Westminster representation to between 16 and 18 seats. Previously both major British parties had opposed this on the grounds that devolution compensated for this under-representation. This was interpreted by backbench critics as a retreat from devolution and implicitly integrationist. Although talks were held in November between Mason and the main parties there was little sign of progress and in a debate that month on increased representation the government was criticised by Fitt for trying to buy Unionist 48 support in the House as it lacked an overall majority. There was also backbench Speaker's Conference
hostility.
McNamara said:
there has been an irreversible twist in the Government's policy in favour of Unionism and
my Right Honourable Friend the SecreNorthern Ireland may pay to the concept of devolution, he cannot deny 49 that there has been a complete and utter change of policy.
the Unionist ascendancy. Whatever lip-service tary of State for
Other backbenchers echoed these sentiments seeing increased representation as a diversion from the lack of political initiatives. Mason and Concannon denied a pact with the unionists and argued that it did not mean an abandonment of the search for a devolutionary solution.
On
11 January
1979 Mason sent a
letter to the leaders
of the four main
The Labour administrations 1974-79
103
Northern Ireland parties reiterating the proposals of November 1977 and emphasising the dual criteria of acceptability and durability and the need for long-term political aspirations to be shelved. By early March all but the SDLP had replied but there was insufficient common ground to form the basis of a White Paper. On 28 March the government lost a vote of no confidence 3 1 1-310. Eight Unionists voted with the Conservatives and crucially
Fitt,
who
normally
supported Labour, abstained along with the Independent Frank Maguire.
Fitt's
what he saw as the drift towards integration and the findings of the Bennett Report on ill-treatment of suspects (see p. 118) was thus demondissatisfaction with
strated to great effect.
Security policy
The Labour
administration was to preside over changes in security strategy
which had been prefigured
Two
in the later years
of the Conservative government.
of the principal areas to be addressed were the problem of extradition and
government to emphasise the use of criminal justice procedures against terrorism and the use of locally recruited security forces: 'criminalisation' and 'Ulsterisation', as these policies were commonly known. In a major debate early in the new administration, Rees was explicit about the emphasis to be placed on normal legal procedures and the role of the police as the
the desire of the
principal agency in the fight against terrorism I
believe the cornerstone of security policy should be a progressive increase in the role of
Northern Ireland. Sufficient members of the Northern Ireland to assist in maintaining law and order. But the Government believed that in the long term it must be the community itself and normal 50 police activities, not military operations alone, which would finally defeat the terrorist. the civilian law enforcement agencies in
Army would remain
in
The main stumbling-block
to
such a policy was to win 'community' acceptance
for the police, so as to allow the reduction
of troop
levels.
The
failure
of the
was likely to make it harder for the SDLP unreservedly to endorse the RUC and the administration of justice, especially while detention remained. Rees expressed a hope that more Catholics would join the RUC and RUC
executive
members of the assembly was mooted as a reform to increase the communal acceptability of the RUC. A second problem in the policy of increasing the profile of the police in countering terrorism was that of efficiency. In April 1974 Rees announced a decentralisation of the RUC which involved the granting of operational commands to Assistant Chief Constables in Belfast, Deny and the border areas. This was aimed at increasing the flexibility of deployment based on knowledge of
Reserve; the reconstitution of the Police Authority with participating
local conditions.
The policy was not without its contradictions. The higher profile for the police, and their responsibility for securing convictions through the courts with the
1
04
British
government policy in Northern Ireland 1 969-89
gradual phasing out of internment, was likely to raise anew the question of their relationship with the community. Also, the reduction of the role of the
army was
by the increase of that of the UDR. As this force was almost entirely Protestant in composition the spectre of a Protestant security force which had so 51 tarnished the B Specials was once again raised. to
be
offset
The
policy did have two obvious advantages for the government. Firstly, the
use of locally recruited security forces allowed the problem to be presented to international observers as an internal one between conflicting Irish groups, and therefore downplayed the role of Britain and the British
Army
as part of the
equation. This was reinforced by the use of the legal process rather than
detention which emphasised the 'criminal' nature of the violence rather than the political element.
52
Secondly,
it
was
felt that in
reducing the army's role would outweigh the legislation
the long term the benefits of
risks.
The amendments
to security
and how they were informed by considerations of criminalisation
will
be dealt with below.
The international element: Discussions on security
at
the question of extradition
Sunningdale had resulted in the establishment of a
Law Enforcement Commission, composed of members of the judiciary of the Republic and the UK, to consider the problem of suspected terrorists claiming immunity from extradition to the north by invoking political status. Extradition 53 agreements existed between the Republic and the UK but the legislation exempted political offences. The Commission considered four possible solutions in its report of May 1974. These were the extension of extradition powers, an all-Ireland court with jurisdiction throughout the thirty-two counties, the conferral on the courts of the Republic and Northern Ireland of jurisdiction covering the territory of the other and, a variation of the third, both jurisdictions having a court with extra-territorial jurisdiction containing three judges,
one of
whom
would be
a
member
of the
judiciary of the other state.
All-Ireland jurisdiction was rejected on the grounds that to
implement
no guarantee
as
it
would take too long and there was
necessitated a revision to the Irish Constitution
it
referendum would endorse it. Extra-territorial and fourth options, had the advantage that it would not or constitutional difficulties as it did not require any changes to the
that the necessary
jurisdiction, the third raise
any legal
judicial systems of the
Republic or of Northern Ireland.
The principal
disadvan-
tage was that of the availability of witnesses since the commission did not envisage that
would be possible
to compel witnesses to give evidence across the border, might be possible to permit a High Court judge to take evidence where the offence was committed and transmit it to the other court. The use of it
although
it
three judges was this
felt to
was balanced by the
have the advantage of increasing public confidence but political
controversy likely to be aroused by a judge from
The Labour administrations
1 974-79
105
the Republic sitting in a northern court which
sovereignty of the
UK in Northern
would run counter
to the legal
Ireland and the problem of different legal
procedures in the two countries. Para. 40 stated: 'We conclude
that, for the
purposes of extra-territorial jurisdiction, mixed courts confer no legal or procedural advantage over purely domestic courts, and for that reason
recommend
we do
not
them'. 54
The Irish members of the That left the extradition option remaining. commission (Walsh, Quigley, Doyle and Henchey) rejected it on the grounds that it would be contrary to both international and domestic law. The Republic was a signatory to the European Convention on Extradition 1957 which recognised political offences as non-extradictable and Article 29(3) of the Republic's Constitution recognised these international commitments from which derogations could only be tories.
The
the Republic's submission. it
made with
the consent of the majority of the signa-
British representatives (Scarman,
The
Lowry, Hutton and Jones) rejected
British case regarding international law
was
that
recognised the right but did not impose the duty to refuse the extradition of
politically-motivated offenders and, therefore, a sovereign state could choose to
do otherwise. Further, the enormity of a crime could override both the principle and practice of international law, an argument which had been recognised by the Resolution on International Terrorism of the Council of Europe in January 1974. With respect to the domestic law, it was argued that it had primacy over international law and the former could not be deemed unconstitutional by the latter.
Therefore, the generally recognised principles of international law did not
make
the proposed legislation repugnant to Article 29(3) of the Republic's
Constitution.
On
strictly legal
grounds,
it
seems that the
UK
had the better
case. Inter-
national law could not prohibit the extradition of political offenders should
sovereign states choose to arrange bilateral treaties or legislation. However, extradition was,
was
little
and
is,
a political as well as a constitutional issue
and while there
opposition in the Republic to using non-jury courts and legislation
IRA, returning its members to the British was more controversial. The failure to reach agreement on extradition meant a compromise was sought
against the
which resulted in the Criminal Jurisdiction Act 1975 and complementary legislation in the Republic, the
had three
Criminal
essential provisions;
Law
(Jurisdiction)
Act 1976.
The
British Act
an offence committed in the Republic could be
Northern Ireland; the Republic would be requested to provide evidence and evidence would be sought in Northern Ireland relating to 55 prosecutions in the Republic. Rees outlined in the second reading of the Bill the conditions that the Commission had recommended be incorporated. The accused must be a fugitive and suspected of a scheduled offence, prosecution decisions would be taken by the Attorney-General, witnesses would not be compelled to cross the border and therefore evidence could be taken on commission in the Republic. Additionally, offences would be tried in non-jury courts and tried in
for the trial;
1
06
British
with the Diplock restrictions on
government policy in Northern Ireland 1 969-89
bail.
The
legislation
of the Republic would be
limited to offences committed in Northern Ireland; extension to the whole of the
UK
would have been difficult as the reciprocal nature of the measure was premised on the existence of non-jury courts. Despite the fact that the British Government and the Unionists saw it as a compromise the legislation had a difficult
to the
passage in the Republic with a narrow majority in the Dail and a referral
Supreme Court to decide whether it was
in
breach of the Constitution.
Amendments to the emergency legislation on extradition, the government also reformed the legislation 1974 (see p. 103) Rees had 56 announced the setting up of the Gardiner Committee to examine the operation of the Northern Ireland (Emergency Provisions) Act (EPA). In the renewal debate of July 1974 Rees argued that the Diplock Report had been too narrow and restricted in that it focused only on the legal and procedural changes necessary to combat terrorism and had not considered the wider framework of civil liberties and human rights. New legislation would await the publication of the Gardiner proposals and in the interim Rees advocated renewal without amendment with the proviso that renewal would be for six months (as opposed to one year in the 1973 Act) and bridge the gap until the Gardiner Report. This was done in part to placate backbench critics who felt that as legislation existed amending the judicial process in light of terrorism, detention should not be maintained. Rees, however, was not prepared to abandon its use until violence had declined. Critics argued that the continued use of detention was a contributory factor in the persistence of violence, and that the gradual phasing out of
As well
as the efforts
relating to the north. In the debate of April
detention lacked urgency.
The Gardiner Report was
published in January 1975.
It
recognised that
progress in security had to be matched with 'parallel progress in other fields of
and economic activity, especially of community relations as a and that the continued existence of security powers should be limited in duration and scope. A long-term solution needed social reforms, especially in the 58 fields of housing and community relations and possibly a Bill of Rights. The report did not feel that the emergency legislation was inimical to improved community relations since the main provisions of the Diplock Report were social, political 57
whole'
endorsed. Suspension of juries was considered necessary given the evidence the 59
Committee had heard of the incidence of witness intimidation which it felt would apply equally to jurors. Plurality of judges was rejected as ill-suited to the oral adversarial procedure system and as impractical owing to the lack of qualified personnel. The use of lay assessors to assist judges was rejected because they were considered too inexperienced and subject to the same intimidatory pressures as a jury.
The
restrictions
on
bail
were
to
be
left as in
Section 3 of the
EPA
and the
The Labour administrations 1 974-79 granting of Justices.
it
in
107
scheduled offences restricted to High Court judges and Lord
It was recommended
obtained from a person not
to cross-examination but the
which allowed the use of evidence be dropped. This had restricted the right
that Section 5,
at the trial,
DPP had instructed the Chief Constable not to use
not clear if Gardiner recommended its repeal on was unjust or that it was unnecessary. No major changes were recommended in the section relating to the admissibility of confessions except that a clause should be included affirming the judge's discretion to rule on admissibility viz: it
without his permission.
the grounds that
It is its
It is
it
hereby declared that nothing
discretion,
in this section shall
from excluding or disregarding if in
Therefore,
was up
it
prevent the court, in the exercise of
statement to which this section relates, or
the view of the court the interests of justice so require.
any part thereof,
treatment clause.
a
The
to the judge to interpret the
60
inhuman or degrading
Section 7 provision which put the onus of proof on the
defendant in the case of possession of firearms or munitions was to be maintained.
It
was recommended
that the practice of witnesses giving evidence
the defendant or his/her counsel were absent
disallowed as
it
when
and the disguising of witnesses be
limited or precluded effective cross examination.
Other recommendations were concerned with the tightening up of the 1973 Act. For example, recruiting for paramilitaries, publishing material on their behalf and the wearing of disguises were not offences, which Gardiner felt they should be. It was intended that proscription should be extended to include supporters of proscribed organisations and those against whom there was a prima facie case of membership, since membership was hard to prove. It is doubtful that proscription was of much practical value but the government felt that it demon61 strated public distaste for such groups. Powers of arrest were left unaltered save for the closing of loopholes and powers of searching extended to include transmitting equipment.
The
Report's tenor was similar to that of the government concerning
which had developed from the Diplock recommendations and Rees' speech of April 1974. Special category status was condemned since the compound form of imprisonment facilitated paramilitary organisation and emphasised the political motivation of the offence. Its phasing out would be effected when sufficient cellular accommodation was available in early 1976. Another part of this strategy was the ending of detention, the use of which undermined the concept of the due process of the law. Of the Commis-
criminalisation
were made
explicit in
sioners' hearings para. 145 stated
delays, the admission of hearsay evidence, the inability to cross
lowered standard of proof have provided that this
is
not 'British Justice'.
much
examine witnesses and the
material for propaganda on the grounds
1
British government policy in Northern Ireland 1 969-89
08
The committee concluded policy as
it
that detention could not
be retained as a long-term
helped to prevent reconciliation, was inimical to community
and
life
created a sense of injustice.
The committee
felt
unable to
recommend
a specific date 'for the
ending of
detention because this was considered to be a political decision and the govern-
ment would have to consider it in the light of political reforms. Proposals were made for the improvement of the detention system. All responsibility for detention orders
delegate.
was
The
to
be placed with the Secretary of State without the authority to be changed from freedom would seriously endanger the general
criterion for the holding of a detainee should
'protection of the public* to security of the public'.
'if his
To replace the commissioner system, which had the
dual
and the delays involved, a detention advisory board, independent of the executive, should be created to investigate the disadvantages of
its
quasi-judicial nature
cases of individuals considered for detention.
To avoid the delays associated with
the commissioner system, the detainee would have to be informed of the allegations against
him/her within seven days and within a further twenty-one days the
advisory board would have to submit a written report to the Secretary of State.
would then have
He
whether to sign a detention order or direct the release of the detainee. Hence, no longer than five weeks should elapse between the ICO being served and the issue of a detention order. Under the detention provisions of the 1973 Act there was no time limit between referral to the commissioners and their recommendations. A further body, the release advisory committee, was recommended to advise the Secretary of State on whether and on what conditions a detainee should be released. The Gardiner Report formed the basis of the Northern Ireland Emergency to decide within seven days
(Amendment) Act 1975. In the renewal debate of the 1973 Act in June Rees admitted that Labour had been wrong in opposing non-jury trials and that 62 the government accepted Gardiner's evidence concerning intimidation. He announced that detention was to be retained although since February no ICOs had been signed and 276 detainees had been released since the end of 1 974 when a ceasefire had been negotiated with the IRA and which continued intermittendy until mid 1975. Provisions
The recommendations unable to attend the
trial,
concerning the inadmissibility of evidence by those the extension of the effects of proscription and the
extension of search powers were
all
adopted
in the legislation.
The
only
recommendation rejected was the creation of a general offence of terrorism which the government felt would be of no advantage in securing convictions given that any activity likely to be included was already an offence. The detention procedure was amended with the abolition of the commissioner system and the appeal hearings as provided for in the 1973 Act, and the issuing of detention orders restricted to the Secretary of State. These changes made detention more like the pre- 1973 form of internment but as it was not to form part of the government security strategy this was not of great significance. significant
The Labour administrations
Under
the
new
1 974-79
1
09
provisions the Secretary of State's custody order had to be
referred to an adviser within 14 days, as
compared with 28 days previously, or else
The adviser, one per case rather than three as Gardiner recommended, then made a recommendation on the criteria of whether the detainee was involved it
lapsed.
and whether detention was necessary for the protection of the public. would take evidence from the security forces and interview the suspect informally without the court setting of a commissioner's hearing. If an adviser made a recommendation of detention, an order had to be made within seven weeks of the original custody order or else the suspect was released, although extensions of a week at a time up to a total often weeks could be made if in terrorism
The
adviser
necessary for the collection of information. After a year's detention, the detainee
could request referral of his/her case to the adviser and subsequently every six
months
after
an unsuccessful appeal. This did not affect the power of the
Secretary of State to order a detainee's release at any time without reference to the adviser. Silkin, the Attorney- General,
endorsed the use of a single adviser as
would detract from the essentially executive nature of detention and could be interpreted as a check on the Secretary of State's discretion. The 1975 Amendment Act remained in force until 1978 when a new Emergency Provisions Act was passed. The 1978 Act consolidated that of 1973 and incorporated the amendments of 1975 legislation concerning young offenders. There was no inquiry into the Act before its updating and the committee, report and third reading were passed without debate. The procedural arrangements were the same as for the 1973 legislation; it was subject to six- monthly renewal and sections of the Act could be allowed to lapse by order.
plurality
The continuation of Ulsterisation and reform of the police complaints procedure Both the changing nature of the violence and the strategy to deal with it were amendement to the EPA 1973 in November 1975 which
highlighted by an
reproscribed the Ulster Volunteer Force (UVF). April
1974
in
an attempt
politics following the
to
It
had been deproscribed
in
encourage the paramilitiaries to engage in 'normal'
UWC strike. However, of the 247 deaths related to violence
1975 217 had been
civilian and 144 of these related to sectarian or interwhich both the UVF and Republican groups had been 63 prominent. Despite the continued high level of deaths detention was still being phased out and the police were increasingly taking over from the army as the 64 principal arm of the security forces. The White Paper of July 1974 expressed
in
factional killings in
community co-operation with the police as the best undermine the paramilitaries which would 'enable the Army to make a planned, orderly and progressive reduction in its present commitment and subsequendy there would be no need for the Army to become involved in a the government's desire for
way
to
policing role'.
65
110
British
The
government policy in Northern Ireland 1 96 9-89
Conservative opposition did not challenge the policy of Ulsterisation or
the primacy of the police which entailed the gradual phasing out of detention.
However, there were doubts raised about the effectiveness of such a policy, especially in the border areas such as south Armagh where the RUC found it difficult to operate a policy of arrests and prosecutions. The official position was that the army played a supporting role in Republican areas where the RUC lacked support and elsewhere in the province supplied a security framework (e.g.
bomb
disposal, patrols, vehicle checks) while the
RUC carried out the policing
and collection of evidence. However, the introduction of the SAS into south Armagh in 1976 following a series of sectarian killings and the recurrence of ill-treatment during interrogation in 1977/8 indicate the limitations of police primacy in this period, especially if not supported by the illegal obtaining of confessions. Indeed there was some scepticism that this 66 division of labour between the security forces existed at an operational level and Neave, the Conservative spokesman, advocated an integrated UDR/RUC/army force for the border areas, reinforced by the introduction of identity cards, movement passes and joint British and Irish patrols of the border area. This was 67 rejected because the security forces themselves did not favour integration and the Republic was unlikely to accept army or RUC operations in its territory. Injury 1976 Rees announced the conclusions of the Ministerial Committee on Law and Order which had been established the previous month. For security reasons not all details were released but the report broadly endorsed the concept of police primacy and reforms were aimed at improving efficiency. Three regional crime squads of the RUC (north, south and Belfast) were to be established to facilitate co-ordination with the army. RUC numbers were to be increased, flexibility was to be improved by the formation of mobile divisions able to operate outside their own areas and procedures for collecting and collating criminal intelligence were to be improved by updating computing and forensic operations. The RUC Reserve was to replace the army and RUC in operations which required less specialised training and the UDR was to have an increased full-time complement and take more responsibility for routine security tasks. By the end of 1976 operational reforms had paralleled the legislative and ideological move towards Ulsterisation. Since 1972, the year of the worst violence, army personnel had been reduced by 6,000, RUC strength had increased by approximately 1,000 and the RUC Reserve had more than doubled from 1,900 to 4,670. The increased role for, and professionalism of, the RUC was symbolised in the succession of Newman, who had overseen much of this reorganisation, to the position of Chief Constable. One drawback to this policy was that it was premised on community acceptance of the police and without it the old problems of distrust of the security forces dominated by members of the unionist population would continue. Gardiner had been aware of the problems of acceptability and had advocated the establishment of an independent body to investigate complaints against the RUC. The existing role of arrests, searches
The Labour administrations
1 974-79
111
provisions in the Police Act (NI) 1970 and the
RUC (Discipline and Disciplinary
Appeals) Regulations (NI) 1973 did allow the Police Authority the power to establish an
independent element but no such agency had emerged. The Police its activity to the monitoring of the Chief Constable's handling
Authority limited
of complaints and this was circumscribed by the refusal of the Police Authority access to satisfy itself
ship
68
which undermined
files
its
RUC to allow the
statutory requirement to
about the functioning of the complaints system. Both the member-
and seeming
timidity of the Police Authority fuelled the suspicion of
some
69
which had been was largely cosmetic. The Working Party established after Sunningdale in January 1974 and reported in December 1975, thought that these suspicions were unfounded but that the existing procedure nationalists that
was at by an
it
fault in that
,
it
allowed them to
complaint alleged criminal action
arise. If a
been investigated by an
officer the case, having
inspector or above, would be referred to the
whom
lay the decision
DPP
officer of the rank of
or Attorney- General with
of whether or not to prosecute. Moreover, the Chief
Constable could, and had to
if
requested by the Secretary of State or the Police
Authority, refer to a tribunal any complaint appearing to affect the 'public interest'. In practice the
Tribunal (composed of members of the
Authority assessors and a solicitor) was never used.
The more
RUC, the Police
70
important basis for suspicion about the effectiveness of the com-
plaints system
was that if the case of alleged misconduct did not involve
a criminal
offence there was no independent element in the investigation. Black cited 2,348
complaints against the
RUC
1972-4; of these 942 alleged criminal offences and
were therefore referred to the DPP. verdicts of guilty;
The
Of these 22
resulted in prosecutions with 9
1406 complaints were not subject
RUC
incidence of fraudulent complaints and
to
independent appraisal.
cover ups
is
impossible to
gauge but given the recorded abuses of the post-internment period the low
number of prosecutions gave cause that full-time investigators
Branch
at
for concern.
were established
It
was not until November 1974 Complaints and Discipline
in the
RUC headquarters despite the volume of complaints.
The working upheld that
party endorsed the views of
its
counterparts in Britain which
hands of the police; the Chief Constable's disciplinary role should not be undermined and no appeal initial
investigations should
remain
should be available against the
DPP
This seemed unlikely to restore
faith in the
in the
decision on whether or not to prosecute.
procedure and the 'double jeopardy' whereby an officer cleared of a criminal charge could not be disciplined for the same offence, also made the prospects of a claim being upheld slimmer. The rule,
Police Authority
recommended
against the findings of the
and wanted
Committee
The
clarification
to
a statutory review body to consider appeals Chief Constable as there was no existing mechanism of whether the 1970 Act permitted the Complaints
examine the police investigation
files.
report was to reject recommendations which breached the principle that
the initial handling of complaints should
remain with the police and to preserve
British government policy in Northern Ireland 1 969-89
112
and to maintain congruence with proposed reform for the rest of the UK, proposed the establishment of a Police Complaints Board. It would have no power to review decisions made by the DPP. Its main role would be to monitor the investigation of complaints and if action were not taken, the Deputy Chief this,
Constable would be required to pattern of reform in the rest of
board from the
justify the decision. In the last resort the
could order disciplinary action to be taken.
One proposed
variation
UK was that complaints could be lodged with the
police or the Police Complaints
Board owing to the reluctance of many people
to
approach the police with complaints. There were criticisms from the NCCL and others that such reforms would not reassure the Nationalist population and gain acceptance for the RUC. The
Report made no recommendation concerning the clarification of the rights of the files and the residual role of the board in the last
putative board to access of police
resort of instigating investigations
reluctance to invoke
Appendix
its
power
was not reassuring given the Police Authority's
to establish tribunals. Para.
14 of the
NCCL
stated:
there appears to be no reference in the Report of the Authority published in 1973 to the
general standards of policing and the extent to which the public were confident and satisfied with the operation
of the police force.
Nor
has there been any effort to examine
patterns of complaints, especially the deep concern expressed by
of interrogation by members of the Special Branch
many about the methods
at police stations.
The NCCL also attacked the tenor of the report and felt that it had placed too much emphasis on the views of the Police Authority and Police Federation, whose members constituted the committee and did not encourage other bodies and individuals to make representations. The report concluded that complaints were thoroughly and conscientiously investigated and that the RUC had much to gain and nothing to fear from the introduction of an independent element into the complaints procedure.
The
Board was established by the Police (NI) Order at the was empowered with the last resort clause to direct disciplinary charges to be made, or to be heard by a Tribunal at which the Police Complaints Board would be represented. The Police Act 1976 had established similar provisions for the rest of the UK and it was questionable whether it would prove sufficient given the history of uneasy police-community relations in Northern Police Complaints
end of 1976.
It
Ireland.
The Prevention of Terrorism Act The
other major change in security legislation, in addition to the
EPA amend-
ment, was the introduction of the Prevention of Terrorism (Temporary Provisions) Act 1974 (PTA). The immediate reason for its introduction was the death of nineteen people on 22 November in two
bomb
attacks
on Birmingham
The Labour administrations
1 974-79
113
pubs, although the proposals had been drafted earlier in the event of the
The Bill was introduced by Jenkins, the 1974 and four main provisions were outlined. Proscription of the IRA was to be extended to the rest of the UK (Northern Ireland was covered by the EPA), the Home Secretary was to be empowered to exclude people from Britain to Northern Ireland, police powers of arrest and detention would be extended, and more rigorous checks would be made on those travelling between Ireland and Britain. The powers of arrest were to be subject to a 'reasonable' suspicion clause but did not have to be related to suspicion of a specific offence. Detention was to be permitted for up to forty-eight hours for the purpose of obtaining information and could be extended for up to five days subject to the approval of the Home Secretary. Any person suspected of membership of a proscribed organisation, escalation of
IRA
attacks in Britain.
Home Secretary, on 28 November
involvement in the 'commission, preparation or instigation of acts of terrorism' or of being the subject of an exclusion order was subject to these detention powers, later to
The
become Section 7 of the
PTA
1974.
provisions for exclusion were wholly executive in nature.
The
decision to
Home A safeguard for those threatened with exclusion was the right to have referred to one of the advisers to the Home Secretary established PTA if so requested within forty-eight hours of the exclusion order
exclude was not subject to judicial review but was the prerogative of the Secretary. their case
under the
71
being served. This was of limited use since
it appeared the advisers were not privy on which the decision to exclude was based, given the constraints of security. The adviser system was not intended to allow the subject
to the information
of an exclusion order to prepare a 'defence' since
one directed
at
people against
whom
Exclusion orders could only be served
Northern Ireland situation and Britain to
Northern Ireland
if
it
was not
a judicial process
a criminal case could not
if the
but
be prepared.
suspected offence were related to the
a citizen of the
UK could not be excluded from
she/he had been ordinarily resident in Britain for
had been born in Britain and normally resident comply with an exclusion order or aiding or concealing a person who was subject to one was to be an offence liable to up to five years imprisonment and/or a fine. To emphasise the exceptional nature of the powers, which Jenkins described as 'draconian', the Act was to be subject to six-monthly renewal by Order, and its provisions restricted to terrorism related to Ireland and not domestic or international incidents. The impact of the Birmingham bombings meant that the second reading passed unopposed although some Labour backbenchers, including Litterick, Thome, Hooley and Abse were critical of the provisions. Discontent focused on the Bill being an emotive and ill-considered reaction, the failure of the government to demonstrate that existing legislation was inadequate to deal with mainland terrorism and that the executive power of exclusion would be open to criticisms of arbitrariness. Given the climate of the period those who the previous twenty years or there. Failure to
British government policy in Northern Ireland 1 969-89
114
72
were concerned with the civil liberties implications became marginalised. Various amendments were moved to mitigate the more severe elements of the Bill. Lyon, a Labour member, introduced but later withdrew an amendment to reduce the residential qualification for exemption from exclusion from twenty to five years. Hooley, supported by forty-nine Labour members and Fitt, favoured a three -man tribunal which would have the power to confirm or revoke an exclusion order thus bringing an independent element into the process which would be binding on the Home Secretary. This was defeated with Jenkins arguing that the advisers would have to be trusted with sensitive information which could not be divulged to an independent tribunal and the use of the latter would give the impression of introducing a quasi-judicial element and there was no question of permitting open proceedings or the public presentation of evidence. Also, the Home Secretary already had the executive authority to exclude aliens from the so there was a certain consistency in having the same provisions in the PTA. A third amendment which sought to restrict the duration of the Act to three months before renewal was also defeated. The Act was passed unopposed with the principal sections relating to arrest and exclusion as above. Proscription was limited to the IRA although it could be
UK
amended by order
to include other groups. (This section did not apply to
Northern Ireland
it
as
was covered by the
EPA
1973).
As well
as extending police
powers, immigration and customs and excise officers were given authority to
board ships and planes
to search for
evidence relating to suspected offences or
Schedule 3 of the Act allowed for a on the ports that ships or aircraft could use in journeys between Britain and Northern Ireland, and made provision for the mandatory filling of embarking and landing cards by passengers. The reservations about the Act did not disappear despite the front bench reassurances. Its operation did not quell fears that exclusion was arbitrary and many Labour members pressed for an independent tribunal to consider the cases of those subject to exclusion orders. Jenkins's response was that those who
relating to those served with exclusion orders. restriction
favoured
this:
are barking judicial
as
we
up the wrong
element into
this
reasonably can. But to
quasi-judicial element
There were
is
when they say that the thing to do is to get some sort of The thing to do is to get rid of this legislation as soon pretend that we can keep this legislation and introduce a
tree
procedure.
misleading.
73
also doubts raised about
whether the Act had any practical
effect; to
mainland bombing might 4 be more related to IRA strategy than proof that the PTA was effective.' Indeed the government itself had doubts on this score and employed the tenuous argument that such legislation was necessary to prevent the deterioration of establish cause
relations Britain.
75
and
effect
was
difficult
and
a decline in
between the "indigenous" population and the
Irish
community
in
The Labour administrations 1 974-79
115
In an attempt to placate backbench criticism Jenkins undertook not to ask for
renewal in November 1975 unless the government had decided that substantial parts of the Act could be dropped. Instead,
new
legislation
would be prepared
thus allowing a thorough review and the possibility of amendments which could
not be introduced by the use of Orders for renewal. In the event, Jenkins did not
any major changes in the Act could be made; a judgment based on the
feel that
who oversaw the exclusion system. At the end of November 1975 the second reading of the new Act was held concurrently with a renewal order to bridge the gap until new legislation could take effect. Similar criticisms were raised by backbenchers and disquiet was felt concerning the large number of arrests relative to charges brought which fuelled suspicion that the Act was being used to harass Republican sympathisers and left-wing evidence of the police and the advisers
groups.
The
76
adviser system
was
to
remain unchanged although the precise role of the
adviser remained unclear. Jenkins stated that the adviser
had
all
the information
relevant to a possible exclusion order but the suspicion remained that either the
had no knowledge of the case against the suspect or that they were
advisers
implicidy discouraged from giving any information to him/her. Summerskill,
Under Secretary
at the
Home
and that no procedure was
Office, pointed out that the system
laid
down
for the
was informal
conducting of the adviser/suspect
meeting. This tended to obscure the function and value of the adviser to those
threatened with exclusion.
An independent
or quasi- judicial element in the review system was again
However Section 7 of what was to be the 1976 Act did improve the rights of those threatened with exclusion. Under the 1974 Act forty-eight hours were allowed in which written representation against exclusion could be made to rejected.
the
Home
Secretary and this period was to be extended to ninety-six hours.
Secondly, the right to a personal interview with the adviser was unless the detainee had been
removed from the
than being conditional on the request not being 'frivolous'
phrasing of the previous Act. the interview
and
absolute,
-
the rather strange
to provide legal representation at
details of the case for exclusion
exemption clauses were
Two
An amendment
made
UK with his/her consent, rather was defeated and the residential
unchanged. the 1974 Act tended left
to reinforce rather than reduce its 1976 Act was to be subject to annual renewal. This was justified on the grounds that the Bill gave the opportunity for a more considered approach than was possible when the Act was rushed through in November 1974 and that sections could be dropped by amending order. Secondly, two new
alterations to
stringency. Firstly, the
Sections (10 and
of terrorism. property
etc.
were introduced to strengthen provisions relating to support it an offence to invite or solicit another to give money, knowing or suspecting that it would be used in the commission or 1
1)
One made
preparation of terrorist acts. This was aimed at 'front' organisations which did not openly fund or support the IRA.
The
other section
made
it
an offence
to
116
British
government policy in Northern Ireland 1 969-89
withhold without reasonable excuse information which might be of material assistance in preventing acts of terrorism or in securing the apprehension of those
involved in terrorist acts.
A hard core of members, composed mainly of Labour backbenchers and Fitt, felt that
the
new Bill offered too few concessions to its concern for civil liberties; a
feeling reinforced by the exclusion of opponents to the Bill stage.
from the committee
Eleven Labour members voted against the third reading and their con-
tinued and persistent concerns helped in the establishment of a review in 1978
and the gradual movement of the Parliamentary Labour Party towards a more 77 critical position on the PTA. As well as disquiet at the specific provisions of the Act, opponents felt that what the government had introduced as ostensibly temporary legislation was becoming permanent and unexceptional. This meant that rather than the government demonstrating its necessity the onus was on opponents to demonstrate that it could be repealed without adversely affecting the fight against terrorism. Given the sensitive nature of the subject information was hard to come by, although the relatively few prosecutions relative to arrests implied that the Act was being abused. In the renewal debate of 1977 Rees, the Home Secretary, said that he could not state categorically that charges brought under the Act could not have been brought under other legislation but the value of the PTA in allowing longer periods of holding of suspects was in gaining information in time to prevent terrorist acts. Whitelaw, for the Conservatives, argued that as mainland terrorism had declined since the introduction of the PTA this was sufficient reason for its renewal even
if a
causal relationship could not be proven.
The
Conservatives did
not favour a formal inquiry and thought a better course was to consider individual
and
specific complaints about the operation of the Act.
This was
disingenuous approach given that the whole structure of the Act difficult for those
a
somewhat
made
it
very
detained to find out the reasons for their detention and thus
oppose it. Rees ruled out a wide-ranging review of emergency legislation along the lines of the Gardiner Report and instead established a committee under Lord Shackleton to review the PTA within the remit of 'accepting the continued need for legislation against terrorism'.
Opponents of the
review was to be circumscribed in such a way. for legislation
was proven,
at least in its
should be considering such a point.
They
PTA were
angered that the
did not accept that the need
current form, and thought that any review
The
feeling that the
government had been - six more
too timid was reflected in twenty-one votes against renewal in 1978
than in the previous year.
The
Shackleton Report
78
was published
bulk of the existing provisions. arrest
No
and detention, either on grounds
Those who base
their
argument on the
in
August 1978 and endorsed the in powers of
changes were recommended for arrest or
fact that so
its
duration. Para.
1 1
6 stated:
few of those detained under the Act
in
The Labour administrations
1 974-79
117
Great Britain have been charged ignore the point that its purpose is the prevention of They overlook in any case the very serious nature of many of the charges
terrorism.
brought following detention under the Act. They neglect the point that the police arrest and charge under other powers when there is prima facie evidence justifying this. They discount the deterrent effects, for example, of the controls at ports.
Shackleton recognised the essentially subjective tone of
conceded
that
it
was possible
this
preventing terrorism; looking for conclusive proof was largely
Minor ameliorations were recommended sion.
The
paragraph and
to exaggerate the contribution the
Act made
in
fruitless.
in relation to detention
and exclu-
physical comfort of those held should be improved and the 'fullest
same Judges' Rules and Administrative Directions concerning interrogation and admissibility of statements applied to the PTA as to other legislation and therefore Shackleton
possible' record of interviews should be kept. In theory, the
felt
that sufficient safeguards existed to permit the provision of detention for
a total of seven days.
common
than under
up to
in practice denial of access to solicitors was more 79 'normal' legislation presumably because this facilitated
However
the co-operation of the detainee. the police case that
it
made
With regard
to exclusion
Shackleton accepted
a significant contribution to the prevention of
terrorism and he rejected any procedural change. Introduction of a judicial
element would be cosmetic and would make no difference to the objections on principle to the use of exclusion. Consideration should be given to a general
review of exclusion orders to establish
if any
individual orders could be revoked.
The government was recommended to reconsider its decision not to provide financial assistance for visits by friends and relatives of those excluded, especially as no change to the duration of exclusion was to be made. Proscription was to be retained although it was conceded that its practical significance was limited; it was more a reflection of public feeling that terrorist groups should be outlawed. Shackleton did not recommend any additions to those proscribed although the Irish National Liberation Army (INLA) was 80 proscribed in July 1979. It was recommended that Section 11, which had been introduced in 1976 and made it an offence to withhold information about acts of terrorism, should lapse. It was felt to be of little practical use and had a potentially adverse effect on civil liberties by allowing undue pressure to be put on those detained and by encouraging persons to inform on others on grounds of often (Shackleton was not
empowered
to consider individual cases).
ill-founded suspicion. In conclusion, while endorsing the
I
stated:
do not believe that legislation of this kind should have any degree of permanence without
a continuing I
PTA, Shackleton
hope
and careful scrutiny of its operation and its implication for civil liberties temporary concept of this legislation will not diminish. It would be highly .
.
.
that the
were to gain ground that these powers should permanent legislation. I do not think that they should. 81
regrettable if the view part of our
in
some way slide
into
British government policy in Northern Ireland 1 969-89
118
March 1979 at the same time as the PTA renewal. was to be retained, contrary to Shackleton, on the grounds that the police defended its utility. Section 10(1) was amended to limit detention at ports to forty-eight hours (with extension conditional on application to the Home Secretary) so as to rationalise port and inland powers. The provision for the renewal of seven-day detention was dropped for the same reason. Financial aid for families and friends of those excluded was rejected because it was considered to be of marginal significance in alleviating hardship and would increase the risk of encouraging terrorist couriers. Measures to improve the conditions in which detainees were held, greater uniformity in notifying them of their rights and the recording of interviews were to be be implemented in line with Shackleton's recommendations. Despite Shackleton's warning of the dangers of the legislation sliding into permanence, the chances for repeal in the near future were slim. The government tended to employ a 'Catch 22' nature of justification. If terrorism in Great Britain continued the Act would be deemed necessary; if terrorism declined or stopped the Act would be deemed effective and thus the government
The
report was debated in
Section
1 1
could not risk repeal.
The Bennett Report
To return to the
overall strategy of security policy, the succession of Roy
Mason
Northern Ireland Secretary in September 1976 saw a continuation of the policy of police primacy and the securing of convictions through the courts. From March 1976 special category status was no longer granted and no detention orders were placed although the power to detain remained on the statute book. The security forces themselves accepted the strategy of police primacy: in 1976 Newman, the Chief Constable and House, the GOC, issued a joint directive which reaffirmed the constitutional position of troops as supporters of the civil power and that all army searches, arrests and patrols would be carried out with RUC agreement. At an operational level tensions existed with the army being sceptical about the RUC's ability to operate in the high-risk border areas. Creasey, who became GOC in late 1977, believed that only the army should patrol the border areas. However, Creasey's successor in 1979, Lawson, was 82 appointed specifically because he endorsed the concept of police primacy feeling that a high profile for the army was not guaranteed to be of deterrent value and might be counter-productive in antagonising the nationalist population. Between 1976 and 1979 police primacy became well established although not without the problems of professional rivalries between the different branches of to
the security forces, manifested in the tendency of not freely exchanging information. It
was not until July 1977
established.
83
The
helped to bolster such especially south
that the first joint
army/RUC operations room was
reduction in deaths and their concentration in specific areas a strategy
Armagh, put
but the continued killings in the border areas, strains
on the
policy.
Neave was
generally
9
The Labour administrations
1 974-79
1 1
84
complimentary of the Labour administration under Mason and unsuccessfully called for selective detention, pursuit of
but periodically
terrorists into the
Army and a 'supremo' to co-ordi85 army and RUC operations. For a strategy of police primacy to be effective it really needed community acceptance of the RUC. This had been explicit in the Hunt Report of 1970 and the Black Report which had hoped that the establishment of the Police Complaints Board would help to instill confidence in the public. However, the attitude of the SDLP to the RUC had remained ambivalent and the question of what attitude to take had caused intra-party tensions. The re-occurrence of allegations Republic, direct communication with the Irish nate
of ill-treatment during interrogation in 1977 further reduced the likelihood of
acceptance of the
The
RUC by the Nationalist community.
strategy of ending detention
convictions in court paramount.
had made the need
The
to obtain
evidence for
difficulty in obtaining witnesses to give
evidence, either because of intimidation or lack of support for the regime, that confessions by the accused victions.
86
meant
were an important means of securing con-
This may have been an incentive for the use of over-zealous interroga-
tion practices.
There were
other,
though more marginal, factors which may have
contributed to the resurgence of abuses including the exhortative nature of
Mason and
his desire to get results
87
and the
fact that the safeguards in the
EPA
amount of physical assault was not precluded. In a case of May 1 977 Lord Justice McGonigal argued that slaps or blows did not constitute treatment proscribed under the EPA; the 1973 were potentially open
conclusion being that: Section 6
.
.
.
'if a
was used
to
to the interpretation that a limited
degree of ill-treatment falling short of that required by
induce a statement, the judge did not automatically
have to use his discretion to exclude
88 it'.
It
must be
said that this case
seemed
exceptional in that physical assault of any kind on a prisoner usually resulted in a
confession being ruled inadmissible.
Concern about these abuses, which
existed
among elements in the RUC and IRA propaganda,
the Police Authority and could not therefore be dismissed as
resulted in the government setting up an inquiry into interrogation procedures in June 1978. This was done with some reluctance and following an Amnesty International report which had found that abuses had occurred. The government
played
down
the findings of the report arguing that
much
of
its
evidence was
unsubstantiated which was not surprising as the government had refused to
co-operate with the investigation. Both a public inquiry and
EPA
to tighten
up the Section concerning the
amendments to the inhuman
definition of brutal or
treatment were refused.
The Bennett Report was published in March 1979 and concluded that abuses had taken place although Mason was to point out that this composed only a small which covered interrogation procedures and that Para. 19 Committee had seen 'abundant evidence of a co-ordinated and campaign to discredit the police'. The report highlighted factors, as
part of the review stated that the
extensive
1
20
British
government policy
in
Northern Ireland 1 969-89
indicated above, that might have increased the risk of suspect ill-treatment. In the
months of 1978, 568 scheduled offence cases had been brought. In 72% 75-80% depended wholly 89 The number of cases and the or partly on the confession of the accused. consequent pressure on manpower meant that much of the interrogating was 90 After a consideracarried out by inexperienced and poorly supervised officers. tion of the law relating to arrest and interrogation and some of the judges' rulings first six
of these a plea of guilty had been entered and of these
relating to inadmissibility the report concluded that: there
is
the difficulty that, because the principles
on which discretion will be exercised are
so broadly stated and the facts of individual cases so infinitely various,
it is hard to predict what the judge's ruling will be. The courts have on occasion expressly refused invitations by counsel to define the circumstances in which the judicial discretion to exclude
otherwise admissible evidence might be exercised, on the ground that each case depends
on
its
particular facts.
If the lack
91
of the codification of rules
made abuses
a distinct possibility elements
of Bennett reinforced fears that they would remain unpunished.
No
criminal or
disciplinary proceedings appeared to have taken place following the post-
internment allegations of 1971. Between 1972 and 1978 nineteen officers had been prosecuted and three found guilty - a low figure given that the government recognised assaults had occurred. Also, no disciplinary action was known to have taken place in the twenty-six cases of officers being found at fault in civil 92 proceedings over the same period. A formal code of conduct for interrogation did not exist so Bennett recommended a separate section of the general code be introduced. It should specifically prohibit
threats
of physical or sexual abuse, the adoption of
unnatural/humiliating postures, the use of insults or obscenities and the carrying
out of unnecessarily physically demanding actions.
The
duration of interviews
should also be regulated and they should normally only take place between
8am
and 12pm with regular breaks. Only two officers should be engaged in interviewing at any one time and only three groups of two should be engaged on any one case. Bennett rejected the use of independent supervision
at interrogation
pro-
was argued that the public would have doubts about their practical independence and an invigilatory role for medical officers would be professionally unacceptable as it would involve a conflict of interests. Of independent supervision in general, it was felt that it was an uneasy compromise in that it would confer on people outside the police force responsibility for what the police did, but not give them clear powers to decide what the police ought to do. Another problem was that it was unlikely to be acceptable to the RUC. Therefore, supervisory bodies were to be a last resort, with responsibility for reform laying with those in immediate authority, i.e. senior police officers. This made it explicit that Bennett considered abuses were ceedings. If civilian supervisors were present
it
The Labour administrations
1 974-79
121
aberrations and not a policy sanctioned by higher authorities. In effect, this a
more
meant
consistent and regular process of supervision by senior officers of those
engaged
in interrogation,
and closed -circuit
TV in
all
interview
rooms
to facil-
itate this.
The other principal area of reform was the provision of suspects with a written record of their rights to be retained and improvements in solicitor access.
Arrangements varied between different detention centres and RUC evidence on 93 It was argued both that the Judges' Rules did not this matter was inconsistent. apply to emergency legislation and as a result access to solicitors was not granted until after a charge was preferred; and that they did apply to emergency legislation but refusal of access likely to
was
in
keeping with the proviso that
hinder the investigation.
The
denial of access
importance of confessions in gaining convictions.
was
The
it
could be denied
if
directly related to the
discretion lay with the
RUC
and no court had ever ruled evidence inadmissible on the grounds that access to a solicitor had been denied. Bennett felt that the RUC tended to 94 and recommended that an absolute over-exercise its discretion to deny access right of access should be granted after forty-eight hours if there had been no previous access and no charge preferred and also after each subsequent fortyeight-hour period.
While it did not consider that the Complaints and Discipline Branch of the was involved in whitewashes the report noted that since 1974 no disciplinary proceedings had been taken against anyone involved in interrogation and: 'we have to consider the unwelcome possibility that the questioning by the officer 95 investigating complaints may not be as searching or persistent as it might be'. The failure to identify those involved was the major problem. This issue was raised by the Amnesty Report which questioned the use of the term 'unsubstantiated' by the police where ill-treatment had been found to occur but insufficient evidence was available for prosecution. The government also tended to equate the lack of a direction to prosecute by the DDP with the absence of
RUC
abuses. Bennett
recommended
that the
DPP
should, in cases of public interest,
explain his decision not to prosecute to the Police Authority and the Police to avoid the equation of no prosecution with no assault. However, the problem of identifying those responsible would remain, given the lack of co-operation within the RUC, the lack of an independent element in the 96 complaints procedure, and the RUC unwillingness to consider disciplinary proceedings in a case where the DPP had decided not to initiate criminal proceedings; a course of inaction that Bennett felt was not always justified. The relationship between the RUC and the Police Authority was considered unsatisfactory. The RUC tended to argue that the latter's role should be limited to a monitoring of the general complaints procedure and not be concerned with the progress of individual complaints. To this end the RUC consistently invoked subjudice arguments or that details of a case were with the DPP to prevent the Police Authority from having any real power. This was supported by the findings
Complaints Board,
1
22
British
of the Black Report and role of the authority. its
Home
Some
government policy
in
Northern Ireland 1 969-89
Office circulars which endorsed the minimalist
of its members
felt that this effectively
undermined and
statutory obligation to keep itself abreast of the complaints procedure,
two members had resigned over what they saw as continued inaction over representations made to them by medical officers concerning ill-treatment: It is
clearly unsatisfactory
may discern
the Chief Constable to the case.
The
from the point of view of the Police Authority
that,
while they
matters about which they are concerned, they are not in a position to require
amend
the procedures and practices of his force. Yet this
is
clearly
97
RUC
regard to
should provide the authority with more information and pay more
its
representations, and the authority should be prepared to
use of one of
its
few powers: the establishment of a tribunal
make more
to consider
complaints that had not been satisfactorily resolved. If necessary the tribunal
should be empowered to compel the attendance of witnesses and the production
The effectiveness of such changes would depend in part on the composition of the authority and the willingness of members to assert of relevant documents. themselves.
The
thoroughness of the report, allowing for
its
limited terms of reference,
and the undoubted value of many of its recommendations was exploited by Mason who emphasised these positive elements and played down the fact that it concluded that abuses had occurred and nothing had been done by the government to reveal any determination to punish the perpetrators of past offences. Mason's desire to focus on the 'positive' aspects of the report was reflected in the fact that the Commons statement on the 16 March was the day of publication, thus preventing careful consideration by MPs. Fitt's call for an emergency debate, supported by Paisley, was rejected and the government's attitude failed to allay fears not exclusively found among the nationalist community. However, Mason did accept the Bennett proposals for the installation of TVs for monitoring interviews, improved access to solicitors and the limitation on the numbers of officers involved in each case. The incidence of complaints did decline in the period following the report, probably as a result of a combination
of better supervision, procedural reforms of interrogation and government sensitivity to the adverse publicity that accusations
produced.
On
and the Amnesty Report had
the debit side, the position of the Police Authority and the
Complaints Board remained weak, and scepticism remained about the lihood of abuses being prevented. to
The impact of strengthening these
be balanced against government concern
operational autonomy of the
RUC.
to
like-
bodies had
defend the morale and the
The Labour administrations
1 974-79
1
23
Economic policy
The Labour Administration inherited the tripartite institutional arrangement for industrial support
composed of
the Northern Ireland Finance Corporation
(NIFC), the Department of Commerce and the Local Enterprise Development Unit (LEDU). This structure remained until April 1976 when Orme, the Minister responsible for commerce, introduced the Industries Development
Order - the main purpose of which was to replace the NIFC with a new body It had originally been the intention in late 1975 to adapt the NIFC to give it the same remit as the forthcoming Scottish and Welsh Development Agencies. Instead a new body was introduced to harmonise the agencies of regional policy. The NIDA may be seen (NI)
to
be called the Northern Ireland Development Agency (NIDA).
as part
of an overall industrial regeneration strategy for the
with the National Enterprise agencies.
UK as a whole, along
Board (NEB) and the Scottish and Welsh
99
The NIDA was to have a more positive and interventionist role than the NIFC. The latter had been set up to provide loans and act as a guarantor for privatesector companies with liquidity problems. The NIDA was to have a dual role of setting up state industry on its own or jointly with private capital and supporting existing firms by providing loans and other services such as advice on how to improve marketing, management and research and development. As with the NIFC, the NIDA was to have no power to provide grants; application for them had to be directed to the Department of Commerce so as to maintain the established division of responsibility
and because the Department was,
in theory,
directly accountable to parliament.
The NIDA was
to operate
on the normal commercial
not assist projects which were unviable. in
its
for
criteria
and thus would
However a degree of latitude was allowed
operations:
example,
may have to wait longer for a return on investment,
it
or locate in areas which
might not be the most attractive commercially, as the price for bringing investment and employment to areas of high unemployment.
In the support of projects
which were considered
much needed
100
viable the
NIDA was to
have
decision-making autonomy but would have to gain approval from the Depart-
ment of Commerce
for "rescue" operations where, for reasons of employment maintenance in depressed areas, commercial criteria would not be the only
considerations.
Despite the general congruence with the policy of regional industrial developin the rest of the UK, the NIDA's role was not identical to that of the development agencies of Scodand and Wales. The NIDA would have a limited
ment
role in small-business latter
had
Moreover,
it
support as this was the responsibility of the
LEDU and the
NIDA became involved in this area. was envisaged that the NIDA would play a greater role in providing
to
be consulted before the
1
24
British
government policy in Northern Ireland 1 969-89
its British counterparts, reflecting the specific problems of Northern Ireland. To avoid the problem of overlapping of responsibilities, the NIDA was to have responsibility for companies which the NEB would assist in Britain if they were predominantly Northern Ireland based. If they were not, discussions would be necessary with the NEB, which was to operate in Northern
risk capital than
Ireland, to establish a division of responsibility.
Neave, the Conservative spokesman, was suspicious of the motives for estabNIDA. He argued that it extended the degree of direct state involve-
lishing the
101
on whose recommendation the NIFC had been created, did not endorse. Although Labour policy for the UK as a whole was more interventionist than the Conservatives would like, the difference of emphasis between the parties' policy towards Northern Ireland should not be
ment
in the
economy which
the report,
exaggerated. The corporatist composition of the nine-person board of the NIDA, including representatives of Trades Unions and the employers' organisa-
was similar to that of the NIFC established by a Conservative government. emphasised the commercial nature of the board and the desire to avoid bureaucratic constraints by the exclusion of civil servants from membership. The first Annual Report of the NIDA 102 reveals that the direct control of companies was not the dominant role of the agency and this pattern continued up to its abolition in 1982. Of twenty-one approved investments in 1976-7 nine tions
Orme
were
form of loans, seven were
in the
of
NIDA
joint ventures
and
five
were companies
NIDA. The engineering sector was an important beneficiary
wholly owned by the support,
with
textiles
and electrical/electronic industries also
prominent.
The
other provision in the Industries Development Order, besides the estab-
NIDA, was
1 of the Industries Developpower of the Department of Commerce to provide grants to industry. It had been amended in 1971 to allow grants to be specifically related to the maintenance and/or creation of employment, and the 1976 Order widened the purposes for which selective financial provision could be made to include assistance in the reconstruction or orderly running-down of
lishment of the
ment Act 1966. This Act
the revision of Section
dealt with the
an industry.
The
LEDU
support was left unaltered when 1974 its operations were expanded to include the Belfast region which had been excluded in 1971 when the LEDU was established. This was part of a wider change of policy which marked a shift from the growth-centre strategy and the attempts to limit industrial development in the Greater Belfast region which had been a feature of economic planning since the function of
in small-business
Labour took power. However
early 1960s.
103
in
Although the east of the province generally had lower rates of
unemployment than
the west, there existed pockets of high
parts of Belfast itself and this
was reflected
not be over-emphasised since the
50%
in peripheral areas
in the policy shift.
unemployment in However it should
LEDU was to provide capital
compared with up
to
40%
grants of up to
in the Belfast region in
The Labour administrations
1 974-79
recognition of generally higher
1
unemployment
The problems of the growth-centre
25
and west. on labour the Regional Physical Development
strategy
rates in the south
which depended
in part
its success were recognised in 975-95 104 which advocated a more deconcentrated policy of industrial development. The traditional immobility of labour in Northern Ireland had been exacerbated by the recurrence of the 'troubles' and the paper argued for the modification of existing policy and the 'spread' of development over more areas, such as making the main town of each district council the basis for regional development rather than concentration on fewer principal towns as earlier 105 reports had favoured. As illustrated above, the institutional basis for industrial support did not change radically in the years of the Labour government. It would also seem that the emphasis on particular sectors and their growth potential was not subject to fundamental revision. Basically, the policy was still premised on the need to maintain or create employment and to this end a pragmatic approach was adopted. Despite the difficulty in attracting international capital, owing to the recession and the poor image of Northern Ireland (in 1977 no jobs were created 106 in new projects as distinct from expansions in existing ones) and the higher
mobility for
Strategy
1
costs of job
promotions in
this sector relative to
indigenous openings or expan-
was maintained as the expansion of local companies or of state-controlled industry was incapable of reducing unemployment. These points were highlighted in the 'Economic and Industrial Strategy for Northern Ireland', a major report by a civil service team which was published in 107 September 1976. It identified three main problems confronting the Northern Ireland economy: the erosion of manufacturing jobs, the collapse of inward investment and the poor prospects for public-sector job creation when the government was trying to limit public expenditure. The report endorsed the need sions, this strategy
for
continued attempts to attract international investment despite the limitations
of such a policy. Department of
Commerce
evidence suggested that Northern compared with the Republic of Ireland not only because of the 'image' problem but also because of the latter's form of incentives which were based more on exemption from corporation tax than the northern system. The problem was that Northern Ireland was often in direct competition for projects with the Republic, but it was unlikely that the government, under Treasury pressure, would allow a different taxation system from that pertaining in the rest of the UK, although Quigley was sympathetic to the idea. The rate and flexibility of incentives needed revision, with perhaps up to 80% grants on fixed 108 assets, to deal with the unemployment blackspots. While endorsing the need to attract foreign investment, preferably operating as integrated units rather than as branch plants which were more likely to cease Ireland fared badly in this respect
manufacture in the province 109 the report stated itself assume the role
that the state
should
term as
was the only
this
likely
way
that:
'we regard
of entrepreneur'
to resolve the
110
it
as inevitable
at least in the short
problems of unemployment
1
British government policy in Northern Ireland 1 969-89
26
blackspots such as
West
Belfast,
Newry and
Strabane.
On
the question of the
public sector the conclusion was that: generally speaking
we do not consider an
satisfactory substitute for the
in the private sector. Equally,
employment in the public 111 programme.
increase in
employment
in the public services a
maintenance or creation of jobs in directly productive however,
services
is
we
feel that the retention
activity
of the existing level of
an important component of any job stabilisation
Consequently, the expansion of public employment in education and health and
was advocated. Other recommendations included the need to expand labour schemes such as Enterprise Ulster, which at that time employed 1,700. To rationalise industrial and manpower training policy the Departments of Commerce and Manpower Services should be merged to create a Department of Economic Development; however this was not to occur until 1982. Support for industrial costs should be extended by an across-the-board energy subsidisation and selective support for transport costs to be made available if such costs potentially jeopardised employment. Quigley recommended the reform of the Northern Ireland Economic Council, which had been established in 1964 as an advisory body, and had given evidence of dissatisfaction with its role. It was chaired by the Secretary of State which limited its independence and was not consulted sufficiently at the formative role of decision making. It should either be more closely integrated into government or be given a more independent role with its own chairman. The Northern Ireland Economic Council was reconstituted in August 1977, at the same time as the reforms mentioned below. It was to have an independent chairman and fifteen members appointed by the Secretary of State - a corporatist mixture of representatives of trades unions, employers and academic economists. The Quigley Report reinforced the belief that any industrial-support policy had to incorporate the three elements of public-sector activity, support for local industry and the attraction of foreign capital. However, despite Mason's own emphasis on economic policy when he became Secretary of State in September 1976 and the acceptance of Quigley, critics have argued that the main proposals of the report were ignored. Bew and Patterson (1985) conclude that: 'in practice the economic regime associated with Mason was little more than palliative in its 112 effects'. There was not the expansion of state-led industry which Quigley had advocated and the structure of financial support was left unchanged. The tentative proposals for tax 'holidays' were not implemented, probably as a result of Treasury pressure over cost-per-job limits laid down for industrial support, and 113 the potentially adverse effect on other UK regions. The fact that the implementation of parts of Quigley did not occur until August 1977 also raised doubts social services
about the government's urgency. 114
The changes for industry
of 1977 had two elements. One was the improvement of support and the other was a more aggressive approach to the marketing of
The Labour administrations
1 974-79
1
27
Northern Ireland. In the August 1977 package selective capital grants for machinery and equipment were raised from the level fixed in 1971 of 30-40%, to between 40% and 50%. However, these figures do not reflect the fact that, in practice, individually negotiated packages between companies and the Department of Commerce and NIDA could result in the government agencies providing the bulk of the capital necessary for a project.
115
Other forms of support and the writing off
for industry included the further subsidisation of energy costs
of the Northern Ireland Electricity Service (NIES) debt of £250 million.
The
attempt to improve the
'selling'
of Northern Ireland as a
site for
overseas
investment was important because of limits to the expansion of financial
had a marginal effect if potential were discouraged by the image of Northern Ireland. A cursory examination of the promotional literature of the development agencies will reveal an emphasis on the normality of, and the facilities available in, Northern
incentives and because these incentives investors
Ireland.
To
this
end,
relations exercises
Mason became
personally involved in high-profile public-
and Northern Ireland opened
its
own promotional
offices in
had proved singularly unsuccessful in attracting investment) and the USA. Following a review in 1978, Department of Commerce officials, in arrangement with the Department of Trade and Industry and the Foreign and Commonwealth Office, were seconded to consular posts in the USA specifically to counter the poor image of Northern Ireland. The USA was targeted because of its historic relationship with Ireland and because it had been the source of much investment in the 1950s and 1960s. From the late 1970s onwards the need to promote a positive image was emphasised as it was felt that investors' perceptions were coloured by the greater level of violence of the early 1970s and it was the image problem, rather than the level of financial support, which put Northern Ireland at a disadvantage with its closest competitor 116 for inward investment, the Republic. From ministerial and official level down to local councillors, who, lacking planning powers have little direct role in economic regeneration, a host of representatives have engaged in promotional
Japan
(a
country from which
it
activities.
Mason's dual policy of promotion and increased had some effect in reviving the interest of potential investors. In 1977 two USA companies visited Northern Ireland compared with twenty-nine in 117 1978 and Department of Commerce estimates of jobs promoted by companies new to Northern Ireland were 3,698 for 1978 and 1,865 for 1979, the first 118 time the annual figure had exceeded 1,000 since 1973. However such figures have to be treated with caution; the majority of the 1978 figure is accounted for by the DeLorean project negotiated in July of that year which anticipated 2,600 jobs after a five-year period. Although the DeLorean project was not typical, it demonstrated in sharp relief that promoted job figures were not always realised, At
least in the short term,
incentives
inward investment projects did not guarantee secure long-term and the cost per job often exceeded the Department of Commerce
that large-scale
jobs
128
British
government policy
in
Northern Ireland 1 969-89
government felt unable to abandon the search for incoming investment. Although LEDU-sponsored enterprises and local companies could often create jobs at a lower cost neither had the capacity to provide sufficient number to make inroads into male unemployment 119 which had reached 10% in 1976 and 12% by 1978. guidelines. Despite these potential pitfalls, the
The
policy of attempting to attract overseas investment brought into sharp
fund such projects on the basis of and yet also having regard for the social and political element in job creation. This contradiction was made worse as the amount of mobile investment available decreased and the terms of support were more easily dictated by the company involved. DeLorean brought home these problems but the experience in this case was not unique. A Public Accounts Committee 120 was later to censure the Department of Commerce for failing to Report relief the inbuilt contradiction of trying to
commercial
criteria
observe Treasury limits regarding costs per job in financial assistance to
Courtaulds in 1973, and for overestimating the number of jobs created, and similar criticisms were Industries.
made
in relation to support for
likely to
Simms
be
Steel
The DeLorean project was to
suffer similarly albeit on a larger scale. Committee a Department of Commerce the department had difficulty in controlling the cost of a
In evidence to the Public Accounts official
admitted that
project once
it
was
established.
Department of Commerce agreed to provide grants, loans and factory space worth a total of£35. 19 million to the DeLorean companies and this was supplemented by £17.757 million of share capital and £7.92 million of loans from the NIDA. By the time of the collapse of the project in 1982 it was estimated 121 that £77 million of public money had been spent. The Public Accounts Committee Report on the DeLorean affair was critical of the NIDA and the Department of Commerce for failing both to consider adequately the viability of the project and DeLorean's background, and to monitor the use of the capital granted or loaned once production had started. This was despite the fact that both the Republic of Ireland and Puerto Rico had refused to finance DeLorean and that a consultant's report commissioned by the Department of Commerce in July 1978 described the venture as 'extraordinarily risky' and considered remote the chances of it succeeding. These risks seem inherent in a strategy of public support for private capital, especially in such cases as this, where public funds form the bulk of the capital invested. 122 The sponsoring agencies have little In July 1978 the
control over whether job promotions
(i.e.
those projected) are realised and
predicted cost per job escalates and exceeds that which
is
laid
down
the
if
the
dilemma the hope
then occurs of whether to pull out of the venture or extend financing in of some future return. The problems with DeLorean, which were not unique, did result in a later revision of the policy of support for large
incoming
capital-
intensive ventures.
As
well as the general legislation and institutional arrangements for industrial
support, specific measures were introduced to aid the shipbuilding and aircraft
The Labour administrations 1974-79 industries.
129
Both industries were nationalised
in Britain in
1976 and the Northern
Ireland sectors, although publicly controlled, were excluded from this legislation.
The shipbuilders Harland and Wolff became wholly owned by the Department of Commerce under the Shipbuilding Industry (No. 2) (NI) Order 1975 and Shorts and Harland, the aircraft company, was jointly controlled by the Depart-
ment of Commerce which held Industry the remainder. indirectly responsible
Commerce and
91%
of the shares, and the Department of
The companies were in the anomalous position of being to
the
House of Commons
via
the
Department of
the Northern Ireland Secretary of State, although they were
limited companies with the normal
liability.
Rees maintained
that the reason that
was that would provide administrative simplicity in the event of devolution when responsibility for them would be with the relevant Minister in the Northern Ireland executive. This did not allay unionist suspicions that their exclusion was indicative of British economic disengagement. Orme had hinted in 1975 that the closure of Harland and Wolff was being considered, but Department of Commerce control was reaffirmed in the Aircraft and Shipbuilding Industries Order 1979 which replaced that of 1975. Separate legislation had been introduced because of the huge subventions necessary to modernise and to allow the orderly run-down of the shipyards. The slow decline and loss making of Harland and Wolff would have almost certainly resulted in closure had it not been for the social considerations of the jobs lost and the symbolic significance of the industry to the Unionist community. Once again the desire to base financial support on commercial criteria and the political and social implications of further deindustrialisation were in tension in the government's economic policy. The importance of government assistance to manufacturing industry through the operation of the Department of Commerce and the NIFC (the NIDA after the industries were not included in British nationalisation legislation
making them responsible
to the Minister
May 1976) is revealed in the statistic that approximately 45%
of jobs in this sector
were with companies in receipt of government assistance; this proportion 123 remaining stable over the period 1 975-9. This level of support managed roughly to stabilise manufacturing employment in the period of the Labour rate of job loss in the 1980s. Male manuemployment fell from 105,600 to 95,700 between 1975 and 1979 and female employment in the manufacturing sector for the same period fell from 124 5 5, 1 00 to 5 1,3 00. Unemployment figures for the six years 1974-9 respectively were 6.4%, 8.3%, 10.2%, 11.3%, 12% and 11.6%. The levelling offin the final
government compared with the rapid facturing
three years
may be
attributed to the revival in inward investment, the increase in 125
and the Youth Opportunities Programme Scheme (YOPS) in 1977 which removed young people from the unemployment register. This was part of a UK-wide scheme, although in Northern Ireland a much higher proportion of those involved were engaged in (largely government- funded) training or real
terms of public expenditure in Northern Ireland in the
introduction of the
late
1970s,
130
British
government policy in Northern Ireland 1 969-89
apprenticeships than in 'work experience' on employers' premises compared
UK. 126
Despite the emphasis in the work of the LEDU, and the Department of Commerce on support for manufacturing industry, by the end of the Labour administration it was becoming clear that the stabilisation of employment, which was the major rationale of government support, was increasingly dependent on direct public employment, youth training schemes and efforts to expand the service and high-tech sectors to compensate for the decline in manufacturing industry.
with the rest of the
NIDA
Social policy If social policy
is
defined in the context of government policy in Northern Ireland
as the adoption of practices or the introduction of agencies to counter the claims
of Catholic disadvantage or discrimination, the period 1974-9
may be seen
more passive one in comparison with the late 1960s or early 1970s. This is, because the reforms of the
earlier period (chapters 2
and
3)
as a
firstly,
reduced the scope for
more institutional and legislative changes of the type for which the Civil Rights movement had campaigned. Secondly, the dissolution of the Civil Rights movement had led many of its former activists into political groupings or parties which concentrated on constitutional arrangements whether of a Republican bent
(e.g.
which focused on an internal settlement such as power sharing (e.g. Currie, Fitt, Hume and Cooper). A third reason is the complacency of the British government which tended to believe that formal institutional changes were sufficient to demonstrate the even-handedness of its administration while the continued differentials in unemployment and in the occupational profiles of those in work between the two communities suggested that more positive action was needed. The changes in government and the priority given to the Sunningdale strategy and the subsequent executive explain why the proposals of the van Straubenzee Report of 1973 (see chapter 3) which addressed the question of discrimination and disadvantage in employment was not acted upon until 1976. 127 The bulk of its proposals were then included in the Fair Employment (NI) Act 1976. The Act, supported by the Conservatives but opposed by the OUP and DUP, established the Fair Employment Agency (FEA) which became operative in September 1976. It consisted of a chairman, a position held by Robert Cooper, Farrell, Devlin) or those
formerly deputy leader of the Alliance Party and Minister of Manpower Services
1974 executive, and eleven other members appointed by the Department Of these, three were nominees of the Northern Ireland Committee of the Irish Congress of Trades Unions, and three were nominees of the Northern Ireland Confederation of British Industry. 128 The FEA was origi-
in the
of Manpower Services.
nally to have a
mid 1980s
budget of £250,000
that the
p.a.
and
a staff of forty
budget approached
this
sum and
this projected figure.
129
but
it
was not until the were only half
staffing levels
The Labour administrations
The FEA's
1
974-79
131
functions were to be those
recommended by
the 1973
Working
Party with the additional responsibility of monitoring public-sector recruitment
The three principal functions were the promotion of equality of opporand the elimination of discrimination through such activity, the undertaking of research to establish the possible factors that hindered equality of opportunity, and the provision of redress in the case of individual complaints of discrimination. The last of these meant that the FEA relieved the Commissioner for Complaints and the Parliamentary Commissioner of their responsibility for
policy.
tunity
redress in cases of alleged discrimination. In principle at least, the remit of the
FEA
was
a significant advance in
action to enforce
employment
legislation.
recommendations was
provision for
a recognition that the prohibition
discrimination in the 1973 Constitution Act and the
Commissioner were not
To
The
improving equality of opportunity and the recourse to legal
initiatory action in
of
work of the Parliamentary
in themselves sufficient.
deal with the three provisions in turn.
The promotion
of equality of
opportunity was to be effected, whenever possible, by voluntary action of the
To this end, Section 5 of the Fair EmployDepartment of Manpower Services, after consultation Human Rights Commission and the representatives of the trades unions and employers, to publish a 'manpower policy and practices' 130 guide which would advise employers on how to improve recruitment (and
companies, agencies
ment Act required with the FEA, the
etc. involved.
the
promotion) policy so as to avoid potential, albeit unconscious, discrimination.
Examples included monitoring of the religious composition of the workforce, although the keeping of records was not mandatory, and efforts to ensure that vacancies reached the widest possible audience so as not to restrict recruitment to
one community.
Those
bodies, in the public or private sector, which accepted the
manpower
were invited to sign a 'Declaration of Principle and Intent' which would allow the signatories to advertise themselves as Equal Opportunity employers. A register of signatories would be kept by the FEA which would be empowered to remove those who lapsed from the required standard. The first Annual Report of the FEA 1976-7 131 records that 497 companies/organisations 132 had signed the declaration, over 50% of those within the scope of the Act. policy directives
However
the value of this provision
is
questionable since
it
is
largely self-
regulatory and does not necessarily involve any further action by the signatory.
133
it was not until 1982 that an employer seeking a government was required to sign the declaration. The role of educational and promotional activity was prominent in the early work of the FEA with the holding of seminars to advise employers on how to
Additionally contract
improve recruitment procedures and to encourage them to sign the declaration. This was augmented by the second function mentioned above: research, which
was often conducted by academics on behalf of the FEA. By 1979 three research papers had been published dealing with the occupational profile of the
132
British
government policy in Northern Ireland 1 969-89
population, a comparison of attitudes towards
work of the two communities, and
the educational achievements of the two communities and their relationship to 134
The latter two reports revealed that attitudes to employment opportunities. work and educational achievements could not adequately* explain the disproportionate unemployment and low-status jobs suffered by Catholics as revealed in the
first
paper.
This emphasis on research gave rise to the suspicion that the FEA was not devoting sufficient energy to the enforcement of equal opportunity and would have no effect on those Intent.
135
who
ignored the invitation to sign the Declaration of
Section 12 of the 1976 Act gave the
FEA legal sanctions against bodies
which failed to implement recommendations concerning the institution or improvement of equal opportunities. The normal procedure was to attempt conciliation first and use the law as a last resort. The FEA would carry out an investigation (on its own initiative or in response to a specific complaint) and if equality of opportunity were found to be lacking, the FEA would make the relevant recommendations and generally secure a written undertaking agreeing to them. If the undertaking was not given, or given and not complied with, the FEA could make an application to the County Court which could grant injunctions or award damages. In the case of an individual complaint, whichever side was found against had the right of appeal within twenty-one days of the 136 FEA's findings. The third major element of the FEA's work was the consideration of individual complaints of discrimination. It encountered the same difficulties as other agencies operating in this field, for example, the PCA and the Commissioner for Complaints. These include possible lack of faith in the efficacy of the FEA and the difficulty of proving discrimination which was often compounded by the fact that many companies did not keep proper records of interview procedures for applicants for jobs or promotion, or of the religious composition of the workforce.
The FEA itself felt that it would be better to concentrate on Section tions
(i.e.
the study of patterns of
opportunity in a company or a specific its
12 investiga-
employment and the question of equal sector of the economy) rather than channel
limited resources into individual complaints.
137
Findings of direct discrimination against individuals were few; probably
and when they did occur proof would would seem reasonable to assume that those who did practise discrimination could disguise such a policy and put an 'objective' gloss upon it. In the first four years of the FEA six findings of discrimination were made and four of these were overturned by the courts which tended to rehear the case rather than, as the FEA had anticipated, restrict themselves to a review of the FEA's findings and the reasons for them. The emphasis on investigations in specific sectors was later endorsed by Osborne who argued that:
because such cases were
relatively rare
often be hard to establish.
It
direct discrimination
is
probably quite limited although this must at least partially be a
7
The Labour administrations 1974-79 function of widespread segregation in
133 employment
areas or firms dominated by 'the other side'. clearly in
demarcated
in
here
of the
that, despite
limiting attempts to obtain
FEA
role of the
is,
work
in
therefore, quite
terms of continuing to develop a strategy of Section 12 investigations 138
both private and public sectors.
The problems
The
FEA
will
be dealt with further below.
It
should be noted
having the support of the main British parties, the government,
do enough to ensure the effectiveness of the FEA. It was compared with the government's own projections in Ireland Civil Service (NICS), which as a government and the Northern 1976, department could have set an example, paid no attention to the Manpower 139 and later resisted an FEA Service guide on Manpower Policy and Practice investigation into it. It was not until the early 1980s that the government became more supportive; the Labour administration tended to focus on economic and social policies at a macro level and underestimated the importance of the in practice, did not
continually underfunded
religious
element within them.
The FEA was the
only
140
new agency
established in the social policy field during
Labour administration. The other bodies established in the 'active' period of reform 1968-72 were left largely unchanged. The Department of Community Relations was merged with the Department of Education under Lord Donaldson in 1975 by the Community Relations (Amendment) (NI) Order 1975. This was a
the
rationalising
move
following the abolition of the
Community Relations Commis-
sion by Cooper, the Minister responsible in the power-sharing executive. relationship
The
between the department and the commission had been ill-defined
and a cause of much internal
friction since the early
1970s and the more
ambitious role desired by the commission had never been realised (see social policy section in chapter 2).
Cooper had argued
that the existence of
power
sharing meant that the commission was no longer necessary to improve relations
between the two communities as had been the case on
its
foundation in 1969.
The decision also reflected the suspicion of, if not hostility towards, an agency by elected representatives who felt that some of its members encouraged the self-assertiveness
and ambitions of community groups which were not subject to
an electoral mandate. Cooper had argued that the commission impeded the process of communication between people and government.
141
Before
its
commission had failed to achieve the more ambitious of its original intentions in developing cross-community projects. The other functions, such as funding recreational projects in deprived areas, were from 1975 to be administered by district councils overseen and financed by the Department of Education. The Standing Advisory Commission on Human Rights (SACHR) which had its origins in the period of the devolution plans in 1973, had expressed concern in 142 its Third Annual Report 1976— that its statutory powers were not extensive enough and that public expectations of its role were disappointed. In response to the SACHR concern, Mason informed it in August 1978 that he endorsed a role abolition the
British government policy in Northern Ireland 1 969-89
134 for
it
which gave
it
mendations of the 1
made on its own initiative, Although some of the recom-
a wider scope for considerations
rather than being limited to
SACHR
977-8 143 advocated
its
statutory role.
were acted upon
(e.g.
the fourth Annual Report
direct access to the Parliamentary Corrfmissioner for the
complainant rather than having a complaint channelled via an impression
is
that
official redefinition
its
impact on government policy was
or extension of the role of the
of Rights, for Northern Ireland only
of a
Bill
the
UK, and
the overall
There was no
SACHR and both its advocacy
if necessary
but preferably covering
concerns over the continuation of detention provisions on statute
and the length of remand
The
MP)
slight.
in
Diplock cases were ignored by the government.
significance of housing in
Northern Ireland
social policy,
accusations of discriminatory allocation and the poor quality and
owing
to the
amount of the
public housing stock, had led to the reorganisation completed in 1973 (see
chapter cation
144
3).
The problem
of discrimination declined with centralised allo-
but the problems of the low quality and quantity remained. For
example, in Belfast in 1974 36.3% of houses lacked one or more basic amenity
and despite the expansion of the housing budget this figure was still 28.6% in 1979 145 g e ifast was not exceptional in that there were similar proportions of dwellings lacking one or more basic amenity in many of the rural areas, with the better rates being in the Belfast Urban Areas, excluding the city itself. Between 1974 and 1979 the percentage of dwellings designated by the Northern Ireland Housing Executive (NIHE) as unfit declined from 19.6% to 14.1% although 146 both figures are considerably higher than for England and Wales. The Development Programme for 1970-75 stressed the need for a rapid expansion of public-sector housing and NIHE completions peaked in 1977 at 7,676 which indicates that housing starts peaked in 1975-6. By 1979 NIHE 147 completions had fallen to 3,436. This trend reflects the rapid expansion of the first half of the 1970s which meant that the worst of the problem of shortage, as opposed to the condition, of dwellings, had been overcome and also the disadvantages of wholesale redevelopment which had provoked resistance from community groups concerned about the destruction of established communities. This shift of emphasis was apparent in the Housing (NI) Order 1976 which was the result of a review dating back to the end of 1974. The Order contained four major proposals. Firstly, the Department of Environment was to encourage the expansion of the voluntary housing movement and help in financing and supervising its work. Secondly, areas of special need were to be designated Housing Action Areas in which the NIHE would acquire houses and also offer higher rates of grants for private-sector renovation in these areas. Thirdly, a
new
structure of grants for private-sector renovation
was introduced. Grants were to improvement which were discretionary, intermediate which
be of three types; could be normally obtained as of right for dwellings lacking standard amenities, and repair grants. These were based on a structure introduced in Britain but paid at a
higher rate in Northern Ireland of 75% and up to
90%
in
Housing Action
The Labour administrations
1 974-79
Areas as compared with
50-60%
135 in Britain,
and were
to apply
throughout
Northern Ireland whereas in Britain the grants were restricted to housing action and general improvement areas. Carter, the Minister presenting the Order, justified the differential benefit for Northern Ireland because of the worse condition of the housing stock and the problems of rural areas which were not amenable to treatment on an action area 148 The fourth provision sought to tackle the problem of unoccupied basis. properties and strengthened the
power of the
NIHE
to secure or
demolish
unoccupied premises and recover the costs incurred from the owner if these resulted from his/her neglect. The NIHE was also empowered to take posses-
meet housing needs while acquisition was pendon the condition that application for compulsory purchase was made to the Department of Environment within one month. This Order reveals a congruence of housing policy between Northern Ireland and Britain. The emphasis on renovation rather than demolition, concern about depopulation of the inner-city areas and the decline of traditional communities, and support for housing associations and voluntary housing groups were all elements found in British policy. However the extensive powers of the NIHE and the higher levels of grant reflected not only the generally worse state of Northern sion of unoccupied property to ing,
Ireland housing but the government's perception of the interrelation of this with
other areas of policy. I
can see that many of the problems, be they social, economic or political, are based on bad
housing. If
we could
get to grips with the problems of
contribution to solving Northern Ireland's
bad housing, we might make
a
many other problems. 149
Conclusion was argued in the conclusion to the previous chapter that the parameters for were largely developed in the period 1972-4. Many of the policies of the 1974-9 administration had a continuity with those of its predecessor; albeit with
It
activity
changes of emphasis. For example, the ostensible commitment to devolution with a power-sharing element remained despite policy continued to strengthen the
its
inherent difficulties; security
emphasis on the courts and police primacy and
the major social policy reform, the establishment of the
the
FEA, had
its
genesis in
Working Party of 1973.
Given the persistence of communal inequalities and the political stalemate, a judgment on the overall record of this administration would find it wanting. In its defence, however, the strike and its ramifications and the general (i.e. UK)
UWC
on public expenditure from the mid 1970s were factors largely beyond the control of the Secretaries of State and limited their scope in policy making. This, rather than the change of party in government, would help to explain the relatively passive nature of the administration. This passivity, and the constraints
1
British government policy in Northern Ireland 1 969-89
136
of progress, was reflected in two developments: one relatively and the other of greater duration. These were, respectively, the development of integrationism among the Conservative front bench and a more critical attitude towards Labour's Irish policy by elements within the party, relative lack
short-lived
particularly
The
among extra-parliamentary
differing character of the
groups.
150
two Northern Ireland Secretaries can be While Mason adopted a more
over-emphasised as a factor in policy shifts.
hawkish approach to questions of security the relative lack of emphasis on constitutional issues during his tenure can be ascribed as much to the perceived lack of room for manoeuvre by government as to a personal disinclination to focus
on
political
advance as part of the policy equation.
Notes 1
FortnightNo. 81 5/4/74.
2
The SDLP saw security in an
3
See Nelson 1984
problems of the dual
4
all-Ireland context.
for the political
development of the paramilitaries and the
role.
UWC strike see Fisk 1975.
5
For a detailed account of the Nelson op. cit. ch. 14.
6
e.g.
see the review of Rees 1985 by P. Devlin in Fortnight No. 233 10/2/86.
7
e.g.
the accusations by
to prevent intimidation
some members of the executive that the security forces failure to use them to provide essential services. 478 and Rees op. cit. p. 90.
8
Crossman 1977
9
Interview with Rees 10/12/87.
p.
10
Fisk op.
1
See McAllister 1977b pp. 41-2. Rees op. cit. p. 73.
12 13
14 15
cit. p.
198.
HC Vol. 874 Cols 878-1021 and 1038-83 3-4/6/74. HC Vol. 874 Col. 1049 4/6/74. Orme HC Vol. 874 Col. 1181 4/6/74.
Wilson
18
Power 1977 p. 59. Rees op. cit. p. 107. 'The Northern Ireland Constitution'
19
Gallagher 1984
20
Cmnd
16 17
21
22 23 24
p.
Cmnd 5675
HMSO 1974.
310.
5675 1974 op. cit. para. 50. See Fortnight No. 82 26/4/74. See below in this section for details.
Rees
HC Vol. 876 Col.
1
195 9/7/74.
A similar point is made by Power op.
cit.
25
This position has been most consistently expressed by Powell.
26 27
There was
See,
created to
28 29
failed
and the
e.g.,
the constitutional proposals of Atkins in 1979.
facilitate
a rationalisation of
departments
in this period.
New
ones had been
the representation of the power-sharing parties in the executive.
HC Vol. 877 Col. 66 15/7/74. Gilmour had compared the wording of clause 2 of the
Fitt
Bill
with para. 55 of the
The Labour administrations White Paper, and argued
1 974-79
137 was more vague
that the former
in that
it
talked of 'most
widespread acceptance' in the community whereas the White Paper talked of 'majority
and widespread support' within the Convention. 30 Orme HC Vol. 877 Col. 112 15/7/74. 'Constitutional Convention: Procedure' Northern Ireland Discussion Paper 2
31
HMSO 1974. For more details see McAllister 1975 and Rose 1976. Rees HC Vol. 903 Col. 54 12/1/76. 34 Rees had considered intervening in this period of talks but felt such action ran the risk of the government being accused of contributing to the convention failure. 35 Rees op. cit. p. 264 and interview with Orme. 32 33
36 37 38 39 40
FortnightNo. 103 23/4/75.
41
Fortnight
42
44
Mason HC Vol. 925 Mason HC Vol. 939 Mason HC Vol. 939
45
Fortnight
46
In June 1978, during a
Fortnight
No. 118 9/1/76.
Fortnight
No. 11126/9/75.
See Rees op. cit. e.g. Taylor 1980
43
p. 3 17.
58 and Hamill 1985 No. 134 8/10/76. p.
Col. 1645 10/2/77. Col. 1727 24/1 1/77.
Col. 1834 24/11/77.
No. 166 28/4/78. visit to Belfast,
introduce a regional council structure
47 cit.
p.
202.
p.
Thatcher said that the Conservatives would
if elected.
Increased representation was supported by
Mason but opposed by Rees. Rees op.
322.
Bew and
48
Patterson 1985 p. 93 argue that increased representation was not solely
related to gaining Unionist parliamentary support.
HC Vol. 959 Col. 306 28/1 1/78. Rees HC Vol. 871 Col. 1466 4/4/74. At its inception the UDR had 20% Catholic membership which had fallen to 2%
49 50 51
O'Dowd et al. p. 185. see O'Dowd etal. 1980 p. 191. The Republic's legislation was the
by 1979.
52
e.g.,
53
Extradition Act 1965 and the Backing of
Warrants (Republic of Ireland) Act 1965 was the
54 1982
See McGrath 1983
UK legislation.
for a consideration of the extradition
55
HC Vol. 893 Cols 1689-1742
56
'Report of a Committee to consider, in the context of
rights,
5847
measures
19/6/75.
to deal with terrorism in
civil liberties and human Northern Ireland' (Gardiner Report) Cmnd
HMSO London 1975.
57
ibid. para. 12.
58
ibid. para. 21.
59 60
482 cases between 1/1/72 and 3 1/1/74.
61
Groups were deproscribed
Gardiner op.
cit.
para. 50. as an incentive for
them to enter constitutional politics;
an example being the Ulster Volunteer Force in April 1974.
62
problem and Connelly
for the legal perspective in the Republic.
Rees
HC Vol. 894 Cols 814-42 26/6/75.
.
British government policy in Northern Ireland 1 969-89
138 63
.
Flackes 1983 p. 320.
64
'The Northern Ireland Constitution'
65
ibid. para. 42.
Cmnd
5675
HMSO 1974.
66 See McNair-Wilson HC Vol. 914 Col. 903 2/7/76. 67 Hamill op. cit. p. 243. 68 According to one of its members. Taylor op. cit. p. 5 1 69 'The handling of complaints against the police: Report of the Working Party Northern Ireland' (Black Report) Cmnd 6475 Belfast 1976. 70
National Council for Civil Liberties submission to Black.
71
Others Ministers could exclude
72
For
if
Home Secretary were not available. PTA see Scorer and Hewitt 1981, Sim and
the
critiques of the operation of the
Thomas 1983 and
for
sections in other works
on emergency
legislation e.g. Boyle et
al.
1980
and Walsh 1983.
HC Vol. 892 Col.
1155 19/5/75.
73 74
Jenkins
75 76 77 78
HC Vol. 892 Cols 153-4 19/5/75. HC Vol. 901 Col. 963 26/1 1/75.
A ceasefire was in operation for much of 1 975 1
See security sections
in
chaps 6 and
7.
'Review of the operation of the Prevention of Terrorism (Temporary Provisions)
Acts 1974
&
1976' (Shackleton Report)
79 See the Bennett Report below Northern Ireland.
80
The IRA was
81
Shackleton op.
82
Hamill op.
83
ibid. p. 217.
84
e.g. see
85
One was
Cmnd
7324 London 1978. on denial of access under the
for findings
the only organisation proscribed by the
cit.
cit.
PTA.
para. 159.
p. 262.
HC Vol. 940 Col. later
EPA in
1690 8/12/77.
appointed in July 1979 following the death of eighteen soldiers
at
Warrenpoint.
86 'Report of the Committee cf Inquiry into Police Interrogation Procedures Northern Ireland' (Bennett Report) Cmnd 7497 London 1979 para. 30.
in
HMSO
87
Taylor op.
88 89 90
ibid. p. 74.
91
ibid. para. 84.
92
ibid. para. 154.
93
ibid. para.
94
ibid. para.
256.
95
ibid. para.
344.
96 97 98 99
Bennett endorsed the earlier findings of the Black Report on Bennett para. 394.
cit. p.
70.
See note 86 above. Bennett Para. 108.
270.
this issue.
For Neave's concern see Taylor op. cit. p. 332. Orme HC Vol. 908 Col. 1723 1/4/76. 100 Orme HC Vol. 908 Col. 1724 1/4/76. 101 'Review of Economic and Social Development in Northern Ireland: Report of the Joint Review Board' (Cairncross Report) Cmd 564 HMSO Belfast 1971.
The Labour administrations
1
974-79
139
Annual Report 1976.
102 103
See Bradley
104
'Regional Physical Development Strategy 1975-95' Discussion Paper: Depart-
etal. 1986.
ment of Housing, Local Government and Planning HMSO Belfast 1975. 105 Examples include the Matthew and Wilson Reports. 106
Harrison (R.T.) 1982 Table 13,
107
'Economic and Industrial Strategy
Team' (Quigley Report) 108
ibid.
109
It is
281.
p.
for
Northern Ireland: Report by the Review
Belfast 1976.
Section 12:19. often argued that branch plants are
more
susceptible to closure than fully
integrated projects but see Keeble 1976 p. 216 for a contrary view.
110
Quigley op.
111
ibid.
cit.
Section 13:1.
Section 25:18.
112
Bew and
113
FortnightNo. 152 August 1977.
114
FortnightNo. 135 22/10/76.
115
In particular cases up to
Patterson op.
cit.
p.
91
90%
.
of costs could be provided by the development
agencies (Economist 16/12/78). 1 16 See e.g., the evidence of Buder, the Minister of State, on 9/6/82 to the Industry and Trade Select Committee HC 500 398(1) and (11) 1982 paras. 26 and 27. Also see
Quigley for the problem of competition with the Republic for investment.
117
Economist 16/12/78.
118
Harrison (R.T.) 1982 Table on
119
Excluding school leavers and seasonally adjusted. NI Annual Abstract of
p.
281.
Table 10:8 Department of Finance and Personnel HMSO Belfast 1986. Committee of Public Accounts Fourteenth Report: HC 612 1 980. Committee of Public Accounts 25th Report 'Financial Assistance to DeLorean Cars Ltd' HC 127 (1) and (2) 1984. See note 1 14 above. Harrison op. cit. Table 3 on p. 275. NI Annual Abstract of Statistics: Department of Finance and Personnel HMSO
Statistics 1 20
121
Motor 122 123 1
24
Belfast 1986.
125
1983
Public expenditure increased by
6.5% between 1977-8 and 1978-9. Connolly
p. 70.
NIEC
126
'Youth Employment and Training'
127
Interview with
1 28
The Working Party members had been representatives of industry and the trades
FEA Official,
Paper No. 27 Belfast 1982.
Belfast 3 1/7/86.
unions.
129 Interview with FEA Official, Belfast 3 1/7/86. (The annual budget of the FEA in 1985-6 was £268,000 with a staff of fifteen plus the chairman. SACHR Report: 'Religious
and
Discrimination and Equality of Opportunity in Northern Ireland: Report on Employment' Cm 237 London 1987 Section 12:15). 130 'Guide to Manpower Policy and Practices' Department of Manpower Services Political
Fair
1978.
Annual Report of FEA 1976-7:
HMSO 1977-8.
131
First
132
Organisations with fewer than twenty-five employees were to be exempt from the
Act's provisions for
two years and those with fewer than ten employees for three years.
1
British govern ment policy in Northern Ireland 1 96 9-89
40 133
134
Interview with FEA Official, Belfast 3 1/7/86. FEA Research Paper No. 1: 'An Industrial and Occupational Profile of the Two
Sections of the Population in Northern Ireland: an analysis of the 1971 Population
FEA Research Paper No. 2: 'Attitude to Work in Northern Ireland' Miller FEA Research Paper No. 3: 'Educational Qualifications and Religious Affiliations
Census' 1978 1978. in
Northern Ireland' Osborne and Murray 1978.
For a particularly critical piece see Graham 1984. For a detailed account of the procedure adopted for the investigation of individual complaints see Chapter 1 1 of the SACHR Report 1987 op. cit. 137 See First Annual Report op. cit. 135
136
138
Osborne 1982
p.
139
Interview with
FEA Official,
140
ibid.
141
See
142
HC Paper No. HC Paper No.
143
528. Belfast 3 1/7/86.
Griffiths 1974.
199 1977-8. 176 1978-9.
up until 1982 there had been no findings of discrimination against the NIHE. (Brett 1982 p. 76), although there were many complaints to the Commissioner for Complaints relating to transfers, allocations and delay in repairs. 145 'The Belfast Experience: Housing Renewal in Northern Ireland' NIHE Belfast 144
At
least
1984.
146
Harrison (R.L.) 1982
147
Government Expenditure Plans Cmnd 9702-ii 1986. Carter HC Vol. 918 Cols. 374-75 26/10/76. Carter HC Vol. 918 Cols. 417-18 26/10/76. Developments within the Parliamentary Labour Party
148 149 150
Chapters 5 and
6.
p. 82.
will
be considered
in
The
Conservative administration
1979-83
Introduction
The
Conservatives, under the leadership of Margaret Thatcher,
1979 election with 339 seats
to
won
the
May
Labour's 269 and gaining an overall majority of
Humphrey Atkins was appointed Secretary of State for Northern Ireland. The two Ministers of State were Michael Alison and Hugh Rossi and the three Under Secretary positions were filled by Lord Elton, Phillip Goodhart and Giles
43.
Shaw. Rossi was succeeded by Adam Butler in January 198 1 and
at the
same time
David Mitchell and John Patten took over from Goodhart and Shaw. In September 1981 James Prior succeeded Atkins as Secretary of State, Lord Gowrie replaced Alison as Minister of State and Nicholas Scott became the third
Under Secretary replacing Lord
Elton.
Constitutional policy
The
and Atkins 's devolutionary attempts Conservative manifesto of 1979 stated that 'in the absence of devolved government, we will seek to establish one or more elected regional councils with a wide range of power over local services'. This reflected the failure of devolution initiatives over the previous five years and the influence of the 'integrationist' lobby which included the Conservative spokesman Neave. However, by the end of 1979 another attempt at devolution had been launched. One reason for this departure from the opposition stance was the death of Neave. He was killed by the INLA in March. He had been an advocate of the establishment of regional councils and was likely to have been the new Northern Ireland Secretary. Broader reasons included the need to demonstrate to international opinion that Westminster was not complacent about the situation. In 1979 this seems to have been particularly aimed at the USA. Guelke argues that although evidence for the American connection is largely circumstantial: 'no other factor loomed as large in analysis of the initiative and it seems reasonable to conclude that US
The
retreat from integrationism
1
British government policy in Northern Ireland 1 969-89
42
pressure was the main reason for the
1
initiative'.
The
UK
was concerned
to
prevent Northern Ireland from becoming an issue in the American presidential
and wanted
election
The second was
to defuse criticism
which had resulted
in
an arms embargo
RUC following the revelations of the Bennett Report (see chapter 4).
on the
likely that
important international actor was the Republic of Ireland and
it
any restoration of local government powers in the north would
strain relations with the Irish government. This was because such a policy would be viewed with suspicion by the SDLP, which disliked the integrationist implications, and still favoured a devolved administration with a role in the executive and an institutionalised Irish dimension. An indication of the importance of the American connection is that the new
by the British Ambassador in Washington in September end of the following month Atkins announced that he was inviting the four main Northern Ireland parties - the OUP, DUP, SDLP and Alliance - to a conference at Stormont to discuss a possible settlement. This was to cause problems as by the end of 1979 there were four Northern Ireland MPs Fitt, Kilfedder, Dunlop and Maguire - who were not members of any of these 2 parties. Atkins defended the narrow basis of the invitation on the grounds that it would make the workload of the conference manageable but he was prepared to accept written submissions from groups or individuals not invited. On 20 November formal invitations were issued and a White Paper containing the 3 government's proposals was published. The scope of the conference was outinitiative
1979.
was
'leaked'
Towards
the
lined in para. 4.
The Conference and
will
will
.
.
.
not be concerned with the constitutional status of the Province
not be asked to discuss issues such as Irish unity, or confederation, or indepen-
dence. Nor, since there
is
no serious prospect of agreement on them,
will the
Conference
consider either a return to the arrangements which prevailed before 1972, or a revival of the system which obtained in the
first five
months of 1974.
This meant that safeguards for the minority were necessary but did not have take the form of guaranteed places in the executive.
The
proposals then outlined the
minimum requirements
government which were broadly those pertaining
in 1973.
to
of the British
There was
to
be no
transfer of control of the judicial or security system, overall financial control
would remain with Westminster and there would be no devolution without the maintenance or extension of the existing safeguards against religious and political discrimination. The term power sharing was not used but para. 5 stated that there would have to be 'reasonable and appropriate arrangements to take account of the interests of the minority'.
The degree of devolution was left open-ended, dependent on the wishes of the Northern Ireland parties and the degree of accommodation between them. The government favoured legislative and executive devolution with a transfer of the same powers as in 1974 (though without the Irish Dimension) as it made for
The Conservative administration administrative
simplicity.
4
1 979-83
1
However,
other
were
alternatives
43
acceptable
including executive devolution only or executive devolution limited to those areas
which were the responsibility of local government in Britain. Therefore housing, education and social services could be administered by two or more regional bodies. If 'upper-tier' p r ,^ers were returned this would not be compatible with the further transfer of powers to a new devolved government as it would have too 5 few functions to exercise and Northern Ireland would be 'overgoverned'. The provisions for minority representation and safeguard were similarly flexible. If the executive were to be formed on a 'Cabinet' system there were three possible
methods of representation. The Secretary of State could appoint
bers of the executive as in 1973, places could be
filled in
mem-
proportion to party
strengths in the assembly or by direct election in parallel elections with that for the assembly. Alternatively, the executive could be
formed by
a
committee
system, in which case a proportion of chairmanships and/or seats on committees
would be guaranteed to representatives of the minority. Another possible system of safeguard was use of the weighted vote. If the executive was composed of only one party and operated with the Cabinet system, it could be subject to periodic votes of confidence weighted so as to necessitate the support of some of the minority representatives. Similarly, a committee system could be subject to a weighted vote before legislative proposals could be put to the whole Assembly, and these proposals could also be subject to a weighted vote of the assembly as a whole.
The weighted
vote
would allow
'blocking' or delaying
and two possible additional safeguards were outlined.
whereby the Secretary of State could delay minority of assembly directly with
members
power
One was
to the
legislation if requested
or, alternatively,
Assembly
a right of appeal,
by a stated
an appeal could be lodged
Westminster or the Judicial Committee of the Privy Council. The Bill of Rights, which could not be amended by
second was the introduction of a the assembly,
and would rule
legislation ultra vires if
opposed by a certain
proportion of the assembly.
An appendix to
the
White Paper outlined the various options
available.
These
included a bicameral or unicameral institution with legislative and executive
powers or with executive powers only.
The
executive could take the form of a
Cabinet system with advisory committees or be composed of committees, or executive devolution could be partial with powers similar to those which local authorities have in Britain.
The
essential requirements for the
government were
those of broad-based support and efficiency; within these parameters any of the
was acceptable. Chances of success for any of the options looked slim. The OUP had decided to boycott the talks because it felt the proposals were unworkable and feared the resurrection of something similar to the Sunningdale scheme. The party was not united in being opposed to devolution and in favour of the restoration of local government powers but the integrationist wing had been strengthened by
possible structures
1
British government policy in Northern Ireland 1 969-89
44
Molyneaux's succession to the leadership in September 1979. A second reason rivalry between the Unionist parties and it was felt that a boycott would help the OUP to outflank Paisley as the upholder of uncompromising
was the
6
Unionism. The
SDLP had initially decided to boycott the talks in protest at the
exclusion of discussion of the Irish dimension but changed
December when Atkins agreed
its
that other topics than those laid
mind
down
in
mid
in the
White Paper could be discussed in a series of parallel talks. The White Paper was debated on 29 November with support from the Labour opposition for the broad framework since it closely reflected the party's own commitment to devolution based on partnership. Criticisms from Labour largely focused on the degree of open-endedness. John, a deputy spokesman, felt that Atkins should play more of a steering role rather than adopt a neutral position towards the various options in the appendix, and criticised the committee structure in the event of the assembly having legislative powers as it would not provide executive coherence.
The Conference
met on the 7 January 1980 with the SDLP, DUP and Between this date and 24 March there were 34 half-day
first
Alliance in attendance.
sessions of talks and a series of bilateral talks with individuals outside the four
main late
parties.
No progress was made;
February outlining why
it
the
DUP submitted a twelve-point plan in
could not accept power sharing to which the
SDLP responded with accusations of intransigence. The OUP had maintained boycott with Molyneaux describing the conference as a 'time wasting exercise 7 and window dressing'. The conference was adjourned indefinitely on 24 March. There was no time limit placed on the existence of the conference but as there appeared to be no room for manoeuvre there seemed little point in reconvening it. In May there was a meeting between Haughey, the Taoiseach, and Thatcher in London which marked the beginning of a renewed Anglo-Irish element in the Northern Ireland equation. The cordial tone of the meeting fuelled unionist suspicions that an institutionalised Irish dimension was to be 8 resurrected and further reduced the chances of the devolution proposals. 9 A second White Paper was published in July 1980 presenting the results of the conference and suggesting possible ways forward. The cautious and even pessimistic tone of the government was revealed in para. 6 where it stated that it had not expected the conference to reach agreement but the process had been aimed at 'establishing the highest level of agreement between the parties rather than identifying a single detailed scheme of government to which all would subscribe'. In the absence of party agreement on the question of minority representation, the government reiterated the possible alternatives. Minority interests could be safeguarded by having positions in the executive which would be provided for by direct elections or by elections held in the assembly. Alternatively, if the minority were not to have seats in the executive, a council of the assembly could be created to balance the power of the executive. This would be composed of the chairs and deputy chairs of the departmental committees,
its
The Conservative administration
1 979-83
1
45
which would have equal representation of supporters and opponents of the executive. Council decisions would have to have 50% +1 support thereby ensuring some minority representative support was necessary. The council would have one or more of blocking, delaying and referral powers and in the event of continued deadlock between the legislative proposals of the executive and the checking and balancing of the council it would be the responsibility of the Secretary of State to attempt a resolution.
two basic forms of minority representation was acceptable, would continue. No devolution would occur without 'meaningful' participation for the minority and 'the Government would then explore other ways of making the government of Northern Ireland more responsive to the 10 wishes of the people of Northern Ireland'. The proposals were again tentative. Atkins claimed that the government was only laying down minimum requirements and outlining areas where the parties agreed. John, for the Labour Party, argued that it preferred minority representation within the executive as the council would be largely negative and encourage polarisation rather than accommodation within the assembly. The 11 dual system would also tend towards administrative complexity. Rees supported the White Paper and argued that, although the phrase power sharing was studiously avoided, it was implicitly recognised. Labour's criticisms centred on 12 practical and administrative details rather than on the thrust of the proposals. The more trenchant criticism came from Conservative backbenchers who attacked the government for reneging on the manifesto commitment and advo13 cated the restoration of local government powers. There was suspicion that a principal reason for devolutionary attempts was to establish a body which could If neither of these
direct rule
provide
members
for
an all-Ireland institution with unification as a long-term
was denied by the government and Alison rejected local government reform on three grounds. Firstly there was general support in Northern Ireland for a devolved institution; secondly, changes in local government had to be premised on safeguards for the minority and thus the same problems would appear as with the White Paper proposals and thirdly there were administrative difficulties with Civil Service reorganisation if 'upper-tier' responsibilities were removed from the Area Boards. 14 By November 1980 Atkins was forced to aim. This
conclude there
is
that:
not sufficient agreement between the political parties to justify the Government
bringing proposals to the
The
House
for setting
up
a devolved administration at this stage.
year ended with a meeting between Thatcher,
Howe
15
(Chancellor),
Carrington (Foreign Minister) and Atkins and their Irish counterparts Haughey,
Lenihan (Foreign Affairs Minister) and O'Kennedy (Finance Minister). The communique spoke of the 'totality of relations' between the two countries which 16 reinforced Unionist fears of increased Dublin involvement in the north. To reflect this totality the two delegations agreed to the establishment of joint studies
1
46
British
government policy
institutional arrangements.
Northern Ireland I 969-89
economic co-operation and possible
to consider citizens' rights, security matters,
new
in
This was cemented
in the Anglo-Irish Inter-
The summit was mutually beneficial to the leaders but also reflected the stalemate in attempts at internal settlements and the move towards the Dublin axis in consideration of the north had been prefigured by Hume's move in that direction with his governmental Council which was established in November 1981.
overtures to
Haughey earlier in
the year.
17
Northern Ireland were limited
improvement of existing 64 of the last White Paper. The proportion of elected representatives on area boards was increased from 33% to 40% and the executive departments were rationalised. The existing eight departments were to be reduced to six by 1982. Finance and the Civil Service were to be merged into the Department of Finance and Personnel; Commerce and Manpower Service were to merge as the Department of Economic Development with more delegation to ministers of state and under
Changes
in
to the
administrative arrangements in early 1981, reflecting para.
secretaries.
A
further and abortive attempt to improve local input into
Affairs in the absence of devolution
was made by Atkins
Nothern Ireland
in July 1981.
He
proposed a Council composed of elected representatives of District Councils,
Westminster and the European Parliament of approximately
fifty
members
nominated by political parties in proportion to their electoral strength. This would avoid the need for new elections and the corresponding legislation which
would take too long given the need to fill the political vacuum. The council would be purely advisory and have three main functions: the consideration of proposed Northern Ireland legislation; scrutiny of the functioning of government departments; and the consideration of future political proposals for the province. Reception was lukewarm; such a council was seen variously as undemocratic, likely to come into conflict with Westminster or as a body to provide members for 18 the joint Anglo-Irish studies which were to be undertaken. Talks with the Northern Ireland parties proved fruitless and the idea was dropped. 'Rolling devolution
and the Northern Ireland Bill
September 1981 with the away than ever following the hunger
Prior succeeded Atkins as Secretary of State in likelihood of an internal settlement further strikes
of the summer.
19
The
refusal of the
South Tyrone by-elections, won by Sands
SDLP
anti-H block/political prisoner candidates, had, distinction
between the
to contest the
in April in
and Carron
Fermanaghin
August
as
Unionist eyes, blurred the
SDLP and Sinn Fein and the hunger strikes had further
polarised the two communities. Despite this unpromising background and his
own pessimism 20
Prior announced new proposals in April 1982 following three months of discussions with the Northern Ireland parties. The supposedly novel element in the proposals was popularly termed 'rolling devolution'. This was not Prior's own brainchild and had been suggested by
The Conservative administration
1 979-83
MP,
1
47
White Paper debate of July 1980 and 4). The idea was that an assembly would be established and if agreement could not be reached on devolution it would remain to play a scrutinising and deliberative role. Six statutory committees would be established; one for each of the Northern Ireland Departments and non-statutory committees could be set up at the assembly's discretion to consider other areas. In the event there were to be five of these 21 The power of the comincluding one for security and one for home affairs. mittees was to be somewhat limited in that they would not have the authority to
Mawhinney,
a Conservative
in the
elements of it existed in Mason's proposals (see Chapter
summon ministers responsible to parliament or their officials as
of right, or have
access to departmental papers. Prior explained the rolling devolution concept thus:
The Assembly
will
have the option of moving to
full
devolution from the outset, or
if it
seems easier to achieve agreement on devolving the responsibilities of some Northern Ireland Departments, to make proposals for partial devolution. The arrangements will be flexible in that partial devolution
could lead to further or
full
devolution, and
if
the
agreement on which devolution was based collapsed and could not be reestablished
would be possible
for the
Assembly
to revert to
its
erative functions, with the Secretary of State taking
Therefore devolution could proceed on a
scrutinising, consultative
back other
it
and delib-
responsibilities.
22
by department and be was established lapsed. If a department's functions were not devolved, the relevant committee would continue to fulfil its advisory and scrutinising role. As a department came under the assembly's authority the statutory requirement for a corresponding committee would cease. The same provision was made for reserved powers as in Atkins's proposals with the exception that security and law and order could be transferred at a later date dependent on the successful operation of the assembly. The logic of Prior's position was based on the belief that 'an end to the political deadlock of recent years offers the best hope of a sustained improvement in the economy and in 23 security'. The granting of a role to the assembly in the absence of an agreement on devolution would have the effect of both filling the political vacuum in the province and improving the administration of direct rule through the committee system which would scrutinise departmental policies. As with all initiatives since 1973 power sharing was a taboo phrase, and it was rolled
back again
if
the agreement by
'stages' basis
which
it
not considered necessary to have guaranteed places for minority representatives
he was willing to leave the workings of the However, there were specific rules governing the For this to occur there had to be evidence of cross-
in the executive. Prior stressed that
assembly to those elected to
move to devolution community support
itself.
it.
for the proposals reflected in
voting in favour. In this case the Secretary of State
proposals before parliament. Alternatively,
70% had
or
more of the assembly
a statutory duty to lay the
if that figure
were not attained the
1
British government policy in Northern Ireland 1 969-89
48
had 'cross-community' was only intended as a that the government stated that it would not guide. consider devolution on the basis of proposals which were not acceptable to a significant section of the minority community. Secretary would consider proposals
if
he
felt
that they
The 70% figure was The crucial point was
criticised for its rigidity but
support.
it
The reception to the proposal was largely one of indifference or hostility in Northern Ireland, with the exception of the DUP. The SDLP had in the last year loved towards an all-Ireland approach to the problem and was critical of a plan that did not include guaranteed power sharing. The White Paper had mentioned the aspirations of the Nationalist community and recognised its legitimacy but 24 had failed to go any further in providing an institutional expression of it. The ;
parties in the Republic, especially Fianna Fail,
and Haughey denounced Northern Ireland
were
similarly sceptical of the plan
as a failed political entity.
25
integrationist element in the OUP and its Conservative supporters saw same flaws as in the Atkins proposals. It was an attempt at 'backdoor' power sharing and an assembly was principally designed as a body to provide Northern Ireland with personnel for a parliamentary tier to the Anglo-Irish Governmental Council established following the Thatcher-FitzGerald summit of November
The
the
1981. Powell argued that not only did
it
resurrect the unworkable aspects of
would provide the
focal point of alienation power between the province and Westminster. The scrutinising and deliberative powers of the committees would undermine ministerial responsibility and, 26 having no real power, would not rectify any disillusionment with direct rule. The DUP took a much more positive view of the role of the committee system and was much more supportive of devolution. This is in part at least related to the success of the DUP in the district council elections of 1981 when it won more of the popular vote than the OUP and Paisley saw the assembly as a vehicle to boost his attempt to become the dominant voice of Unionism. Given the opposition of two of the main Northern Ireland parties, the Republic and a small but tenacious group of Conservative backbenchers, it remains to be answered why Prior persisted with the proposals. One reason was alluded to above: the claim that political agreement would have a beneficial effect on the economy and the security situation. Secondly, as with Atkins, there was a benefit 27 to be gained internationally from being seen to be doing something. This point was echoed by Nick Scott, who stated that:
sharing, but the assembly
doing nothing suggests that there
is a stable and satisfactory situation in Northern Ireland. assumes that the political climate, the economic prospects and the security situation will 28 not get any worse. But this is not an analysis which the government can accept.
It
A third possible reason is that the proposals had the support of the
Labour
Party,
or at least the front bench. At the party conference of September 1981 the resolution that
it
was desirable and possible
to unite Ireland with the
consent of
The Conservative administration
1 979-83
149
the people north and south had been passed. This was envisaged to be a
long-term aim and in the short term the process of developing consent was based
on power sharing
in a devolved
assembly and closer institutional links with the 29
Concannon, who had served in Northern supported the White Paper but argued that the and Mason, under Rees Ireland government's approach was too permissive: Republic in areas of mutual interest.
The Government have devolution
is
Northern Ireland
a duty to state openly that in the case of
permissible only
when
executive functions. In short, only a
community is taken into partnership 30 sharing of power should be acceptable. the minority
In reply to these objections Atkins argued that
was pointless
it
in
to specify exactly
the operational details of the assembly since the example of 1974 demonstrated the dangers of rigidity. If the government were to insist
on an
explicit
power-
sharing element in the operation of the assembly the chances of Unionist
co-operation would be further reduced.
made in the Northern on 10 May. The positions struck in the White Paper debate were repeated with a Conservative backbench lobby, led by Amery and Biggs-Davison, allied with the Unionists in opposition. The main attacks focused on the assembly being a prelude to unification and the conflict that would be created between the assembly and Westminster. Three Conservatives, Lloyd, Budgen and Viscount Cranbourne resigned positions in government over the Bill. Labour offered three main criticisms and were to abstain. Firsdy, the government should endorse guaranteed minority representation in any future executive rather than leave this open to discussion. Secondly, the presiding officer of the Provision for the establishment of the assembly was
Ireland Bill which had a second reading
assembly should be appointed by the Secretary of State rather than be elected by
members of it which was
likely to result in a
position. Thirdly, the Irish rectify this the
more
dimension was not
partisan individual holding the
sufficiently
emphasised and
to
assembly should have a committee to deal solely with relations
with the Irish Republic.
There was a majority of 137-29 for the government at the third reading on 29 June after the Conservative integrationists had fought a rearguard action in the Committee stage. Despite their delaying tactics the integrationists never government since they could never muster more than Ireland Act 1982 showed no major changes from the White Paper although there was an additional safeguard intended to allay fears about the vagueness of the criteria for devolution. A draft Order proposing full or partial devolution would have to be presented to both Houses of Parliament which would have to be satisfied that the provisions of the Order were likely to command widespread acceptance throughout the community. The elections were to take place on 20 October 1982. Seventy-eight seats were to be contested by the STV system using the electoral boundaries of the twelve
seriously threatened the
about twenty rebels.
The Northern
British government policy in Northern Ireland 1 969-89
150
Westminster seats.
As mentioned above, the DUP were more supportive of the OUP but the latter would contest the elections and take their
seats.
assembly than the
At the beginning of October
announced that the SDLP would be which would include the parties of the
Hume
seeking talks on an all-Ireland basis
31
Republic and the Unionists. Because of the lack of a concrete recognition of the
SDLP would contest the 32 on an abstentionist platform. The decision of Sinn Fein to contest the elections on an abstentionist platform, following an ard-fheis decision in 1981, meant that the SDLP could not boycott the elections and thereby risk handing the initiative to Sinn Fein. Therefore, there was no possibility of the assembly moving beyond the scrutinising stage unless the SDLP could be persuaded to
Nationalist tradition in the devolution proposals, the election
participate.
The
seats
won and
percentages of
first
preference votes cast were
OUP
26
DUP 21
(23%), SDLP 14 (18.8%), Alliance 10 (9.3%) and Sinn Fein 5 (10.1%) with the two other seats going to independent Unionists. The turnout 33 was 61.7%. Although trr SDLP vote was slightly higher than in the 1981 local (29.7%),
34
and Sinn Fein votes would appear to have come from previous one in three of what may be assumed to be 35 the Catholic vote had gone to Sinn Fein had worrying implications for government policy. It made it difficult to maintain that there was scarcely no support for the politics of violence. Moreover, the strategy of attempting to erect a powerelections
abstainers, the fact that approximately
sharing structure with the support of the
SDLP as the political representative of
community would be undermined if Sinn Fein became strong enough to challenge the hegemony of the SDLP. The assembly thus met with fifty-nine members participating and embarked upon its scrutinising and deliberative functions, including preparing reports for parliaments consideration and reviewing draft legislation for Northern Ireland. The impact of the assembly was further reduced by the inter-party rivalry over the allocation of chairs of the committees and Kilfedder's appointment as the minority
presiding officer. This role for the assembly could continue indefinitely since there was no time limit placed on
its
existence and there
was no prospect of
devolution while the Nationalist boycott continued.
The
principal developments in early 1983 centred
on Hume's attempts
to
develop his ideas for discussions on an all-Ireland basis. In February he
announced
and Spring, the leaders of the parties comprising the were discussing the SDLP proposal for a Council for a New Ireland and the Fianna Fail leader Haughey gave it his support at the party's ard-fheis. Haughey saw it as a way towards a constitutional conference on British 36 withdrawal and the hopes of FitzGerald and Hume that it would be a serious that FitzGerald
coalition government,
attempt to consider structures in which the unionist tradition could be accommodated were undermined when at the end of March the OUP, and Alliance
DUP
declined FitzGerald's invitation to participate.
The Conservative administration
1 979-83
151
Security policy
The
principal legislative basis of security policy, the
EPA
1978 and the
PTA
1976, were both passed under a Labour administration with Conservative
when
came to office they saw no need for further Concerns about the exceptional nature of the Acts and the implications for civil liberties were consistently expressed by a group of Labour backbenchers and Fitt (see Chapter 4). The Conservative response was to argue that the renewal provisions were sufficient for parliamentary monitoring of the legislation and for concerns to be expressed. However, in the early 1980s there was a growing lobby within the Labour Party prepared to challenge the bipartisan position on both constitutional and security policy. Constituency parties renewed efforts to get conference to accept resolutions for withdrawal of troops and the endorsement of unification, the latter being 37 adopted in 1981. This was partly a reflection of the gains made by the left within the constituency parties and the disillusionment with the political stalemate and emphasis on security during Mason's period as Northern Ireland Secretary support and
changes
the Conservatives
in the provisions.
1976-9. In the renewal debate on the
PTA
in
March 1981 38
Hattersley, the
shadow
Home Secretary, tabled a motion calling for an inquiry into the Act to consider its As he acknowledged,
operation and possible amendments.
it
was
a
modest
request as he did not require an inquiry to consider the necessity for the Act.
main purpose should be
to provide
operation than that given in the
Commons,
possible abuse of the exclusion provisions.
vote against renewal
if the
the motion. Whitelaw, the
especially in relation to the use
The Labour
Secretary, argued that as
half years since the Shackleton Report
39
there was
However Labour concern was echoed by the
who supported
front
little
Liberals,
it
its
and
bench would not
request were refused but would divide the
Home
The
more comprehensive information on
House over
was only two and
a
point in another review.
SDP and some Unionists
the motions for an inquiry. Forty-four
members voted
against
renewal which was the highest figure yet in the annual debate; an indication of
growing concern over the seeming permanence of the PTA. In the next renewal debate of March 1982 Whitelaw conceded the a review.
Although he did not specify why,
it is
likely that
such
a
demand for move would
Labour front bench and bolster an unsteady bipartisanship. Suphad little to lose since it was very unlikely that any review would advocate the repeal of the PTA. Hattersley went as far as to say: 'I cannot believe that if the right honourable Gentleman and I were in opposite roles this evening I 40 would be asking for the Act to be renewed.' There must be some scepticism about whether Labour would have been so forthright in government as in opposition. In the event Hattersley recommended abstaining pending the publication of the report. However, fifty-three members, mostly Labour, voted against
placate the
porters of the Act
renewal.
152
British
The
government policy
in
Northern Ireland 1 969-89
Review, chaired by Lord Jellicoe, was published in February 1983.
41 It
was concerned with the details of operation rather than whether the PTA was actually necessary: the terms of reference included: 'accepting the continuing need for legislation against terrorreflected the Shackleton Report in that
The From the ism'.
statistics
it
presented in the report supported the fears of its opponents.
inception of the Act in
November 1974 up
to the
end of 1982 5,555
people had been detained under Section 12. Exclusion orders had been laid against 261 (nearly
Therefore nearly being taken.
The
5%) and
90%
criminal charges against a further 361 (nearly 7%).
of those arrested were released without further action
relatively
low numbers of prosecutions, especially in Britain,
raised suspicions that the Act
harassment.
42
complement
was being used
for intelligence gathering
and/or
In Northern Ireland the Act could be used as a substitute for, or
to,
the arrest provisions of the
EPA. The
'reasonable' criterion for suspicion as did the
PTA
EPA
but the
did not have a latter
had the
advantage of allowing the five-day extension of detention. Jellicoe reached the same conclusion about the preventative role of the arrest powers as had successive Home Secretaries. Para. 55 stated: 'There can be no clear proof that the arrest powers in the PTA are, or are not, an essential weapon in the fight against terrorism.' As the case against the Act was not proven and the police endorsed the utility of the provisions, Jellicoe recommended only minor adjustments. Extended detention was justifiable for intelligence purposes but
with certain safeguards. These should include extension being for a specified period and not automatically for results.
There should be
five
days and only on the grounds of anticipated
Home Office scrutiny of extension applications to too freely granted and where possible the Home
close
ensure that they were not
Secretary rather than junior ministers should be responsible for approval.
Section 12 power of arrest should only be used
when no
appropriate, with 'normal' legislation being employed
The
other power was
whenever possible. The was not only the longer
attraction of emergency legislation to the security forces
period of holding permitted but also that
it
did not require suspicion of a
particular offence.
Having endorsed unchanged powers of arrest and detention, Jellicoe made recommendations to improve the position of those subject to them. Recommendations included provision of a printed notice of rights to be retained by those held and right of access to a solicitor after forty-eight hours and every subsequent forty-eight hours. Financial support was to be made available if detention exceeded forty-eight hours and the physical conditions of detention should be improved with better accommodation and exercise facilities made available.
Exclusion orders were considered to be a material contribution to public safety in the
UK. 43 Although
should be kept for use possibility of abolition.
the incidence of their use had declined the provision in
extreme cases but subject to regular review with the principal changes to the 1976 Act provisions were
Three
1 979-83
The Conservative administration
recommended.
Firstly, the
153
period of normal residence which indemnified a
person from exclusion should be reduced from twenty years to three years. Secondly, exclusion should be for a fixed three-year period rather than indefinite with renewal subject to fresh application by the police with the onus being on the
Home
Secretary to justify extension rather than the excluded person having to
provide grounds for the revoking of the order. Thirdly, the period in which
made should be extended from
representations against exclusion could be
would be the
right to a personal
Secretary's adviser after exclusion
had occurred. This
ninety-six hours to seven days. Also, there
interview with the
Home
was to remedy the problem that people often did not make representations as this had the effect of prolonging detention before exclusion. Proscription under the Act, which included financial support of and addressing meetings of proscribed groups as well as membership, was endorsed. The practical effect of proscription was limited but deproscription would raise problems of public disapproval and lay the government open to charges of going 'soft' on terrorism. Subsidiary comments rejected proscription of loyalist groups to produce symmetry with the EPA since loyalist terrorism was not a problem in Britain.
Despite improvements to the exclusion provisions, the report as a whole
confirmed the fears of its
critics
44
that exceptional legislation
was becoming more
acceptable and permanent. Jellicoe advocated the dropping of the 'Temporary Provisions' section in the Bill
was
to
title
of the Act and the Police and Criminal Evidence
extend the length of detention in police custody incorporating the
precedent of the EPA. As a prospective safeguard against the too-easy accept-
ance of the
PT A, Jellicoe recommended the retention of annual renewal and that
any new Act should have a
maximum
life
of
five years, after
should be drafted to allow a reappraisal of the legislation.
It is
which
a
new
doubtful
if
bill
such
permanence of the Act. Another become permanent was the recommendation
provision was adequate to prevent the growing indication that the Act
was
likely to
to international terrorism. The 1976 Act was Northern Ireland although the powers of arrest were not circumscribed. In the renewal debate of 1981 Whitelaw stated that:
that
its
powers should extend
specifically related to
power of arrest and detention is not limited to Irish terrorists, because it may not always to the police at the time of arrest whether a terrorist is motivated by Irish or other causes. However, in a current circular, Home Office advice to the police is that it would be contrary to the intention of the Act for this power to be used to arrest someone 45 concerned with terrorism known to be unconnected with Northern Ireland. the
be obvious
The government
accepted Jellicoe's report and in the renewal debate of 1983
Whitelaw announced
that a
46
new Bill would be drafted for legislation of five years' The Labour Party was to oppose renewal for
duration, subject to annual renewal. the
first
time following a conference decision of 1982. Hattersley argued that
because of the infringement of civil
liberties, the
continuation of the Act had to be
British government policy in Northern Ireland 1 969-89
154 contingent on certainty that
was
cited to
show
it
was
essential to the safety of the nation. Para.
that neither Jellicoe nor
Whitelaw had demonstrated
55
this. It is
had expected Jellicoe to reach any other conclusions. Both the remit of the inquiry and the record of previous inquiries into emergency legislation militated against hopes for radical revision or repeal. Hattersley felt that both the extension of the putative Act to cover international terrorism and its five-year duration would diminish the importance of annual renewal and 47 reflected a deeper illiberal trend in government policy on law and order. Para. 9 ofJellicoe had stated that the PTA should only remain in force if it fulfilled three criteria. It had to be effective, its aims could not be achieved by the use of normal legislation and it did not make unacceptable inroads into civil liberties. On all unlikely that Hattersley
three counts, argued Labour, the legislation failed.
The government preventative and
how few were The Act was by its nature
claimed that the figures in Jellicoe revealing
charged after arrest were of
little
significance.
much of the information gained was of use although insufficient argument that was an unfortunate but the possible detention of those engaged in terrorist
to bring a criminal charge. Implicitly, there
intelligence gathering
and the
necessary price to pay for
was
also the utilitarian
arrest of innocent people
activities.
The among
conversion of Labour to opposition of the Act provoked indignation
breakdown of Labour Party. However, of Labour in government and
the Conservatives at what was perceived to be the
bipartisanship and the malign influence of the
left in
such principled opposition has not faced the
test
the
Home Secretary when Labour introduced the initial Act, doubted that if 48 Hattersley were Home Secretary he would repeal The concern over the drift
Jenkins,
it.
permanence and abuse of the powers of arrest had been as valid in the late 1970s when the Labour government had endorsed the maintenance of the Act. Renewal was carried and a new Bill based on the Jellicoe recommendations was presented by the Conservatives later in the year (see Chapter 6). The other principal piece of emergency legislation, the EPA, was also under scrutiny in this period. The fifth Annual Report of the Standing Advisory 49 Commission on Human Rights (SACHR) had recommended the dropping of the detention provision and the insertion of a clause specifically prohibiting the to
use of threats of violence during interrogation. Section 8(2) of the 1978 Act referred only to 'inhuman or degrading treatment' and it was felt for presentational reasons, at least, a clause concerning threats should be incorporated.
recommended that Section
It
which the onus on bail was placed on the defendant rather than the prosecution should lapse and be granted on the same terms as in non-scheduled offences. The discrepancy between the number of arrests made and charges brought under Sections 11 and 14 gave rise to suspicions that the powers were used for the screening and harassment of the Nationalist community but the SACHR did not feel that conclusive evidence existed on this point.
was
also
2(2) by
The Conservative administration In
its
next report the
1 979-83
155
SACHR recommended a clause of reasonable suspicion be
1 1 powers had originally be was no longer used this section was largely applied for questioning with a view to re-arrest under Section 13 with respect to a specific offence. As a specific offence was rarely mentioned in arrest under Section 11: 'we consider it crucial that the minimum requirement should be for the officer to have reasonable grounds for suspecting that the individual is a 50 terrorist who has been involved in specific criminal activity.' The same criterion of reasonableness was advocated for Section 14 which concerned arrest by members of the armed forces. Without a test of objectivity it was impossible to ascertain whether abuses were taking place. On a more general note, the SACHR expressed its concern over a remark made by Alison, the Minister of State, that the burden of proof lay with those wishing to change the 51 Act. This indicated that there was a tendency for the Act to become accepted as permanent legislation. The provision for detention lapsed in 1980 52 but the government refused to implement the other recommendations of the SACHR. The Labour spokesman, John, was concerned that the government did not do more to publicise the SACHR findings either within the Commons or among the public, and called for a judicial review of the Act as it was five years since the Gardiner Report. In the renewal debate of December 1980 Atkins rejected such a course since it would only raise unrealistic expectations among those who wanted to dismantle the Act. Drastic reform was not feasible and this would be the only basis on which a review would be justified. In 1981 Concannon repeated the Labour demand for an inquiry. The front bench did not advocate the jettisoning of the main provisions but wanted specific areas to be considered. These included the possibility of a plurality of judges in Diplock courts, changes in the wording of the section relating to admissibility, the list of scheduled offences and the onus of proof in cases of firearm possession. Concannon moved a motion for an inquiry which was defeated; however the Labour front bench was not prepared to vote against renewal. The Labour Conference of 1981 had accepted that Diplock courts had to be retained but supported a plurality of judges, de-scheduling of minor offences and expressed
introduced into Section
1 1
to prevent abuses. Section
invoked as a preliminary to detention but as
it
concern over 'case hardening'. 53
announced that an inquiry was to be set up. This change of heart was presumably related to consistent Labour pressure over the previous two years and a feeling that a review would mitigate further strains on bipartisanship. Having set such store on a review Labour would be bound to accept its conclusions and it is unlikely that anyone thought it would propose any radical changes. Labour backbenchers feared that the scope of the review would be too limited and criticised the government for lack of urgency. The review, by Baker, was not appointed until April 1983 as the government argued that it had to wait for the conclusions ofJellicoe. The decision to establish a review headed off In June 1982 Prior
British government policy in Northern Ireland 1 969-89
156 a possible
Labour vote against renewal and the review's conclusions
will
be
considered in the next chapter.
At the operational
level, the policy
of 'police primacy' was maintained despite
the increased level of violence in 1981 related to the hunger strikes.
The problem
of securing convictions through the courts continued. Detention, which had not
been used since 1975, was allowed to lapse in July 1980. Detention powers were to remain on the statute book as amending legislation would be required to remove them. However, the renewed use of detention would be subject to parliamentary approval by way of an Order whereas previously the Secretary of State could reactivate the measure on his own initiative. The securing of convictions through the courts was made more difficult by the adverse publicity surrounding the interrogation of prisoners and the implementation of the Bennett recomendations (see Chapter 4). Hermon, who became Chief Constable of the RUC in January 1980, had made a personal commitment to improve the force's reputation and in the period following Bennett complaints of ill-treatment declined.
54
These factors help to explain the emergence of the use of accomplice evidence on a large scale from 1981; which is commonly known as the 'supergrass' strategy. This was not without precedent in British law though accomplice evidence had been used extensively in Ireland in previous centuries to counter agrarian and nationalist unrest. There were also a series of 'supergrass' trials in Britain in the 1970s but with crucial differences from the way in which the system was to operate in Northern Ireland. Firstly, the judge had a duty to warn the jury of the danger of convicting on uncorroborated evidence; in the absence of juries in the Diplock system this resulted in the rather dubious practice of the judge warning himself in such circumstances. Gifford states: 'there is no guidance from
any Appellate Court as
how
to
a judge sitting alone should deal with the
uncorroborated evidence of an accomplice'.
55
Secondly, the majority of con-
were obtained with corroborated evidence and in 1977 the Director of Public Prosecutions issued a directive that no more cases should be brought on uncorroborated 'supergrass' evidence. Thirdly, it appears that in only
victions in Britain
one case in England was immunity from prosecution granted; in other cases a reduced sentence was the incentive to turn Queen's evidence. In the late 1970s the use of 'supergrasses' declined in Britain. Public and professional disquiet about both the morality of granting concessions to convicted criminals and the practical consequences of using possibly unreliable evidence seem to have been influential in this decline.
The
origins of the policy in
Northern Ireland are unclear. Scott, Under
Secretary of State at the Northern Ireland Office, stated that there was no executive decision to encourage the use of accomplice evidence; operational decision by the
RUC. 56
did not constitute a strategy.
The
it
was an
Therefore, the use of accomplice evidence
RUC position was that
it
merely encouraged
those willing to give evidence, although lawyers cited cases of their clients being
The Conservative administration
1 979-83
157
pressurised to provide information and to provide the
RUC with names of those
wanted brought to trial. Both Gifford and Greer (1987) are sceptical of the RUC claim. Between November 1981 and November 1983 at least twenty-five 57 'supergrasses' were responsible for the arrests of nearly six hundred suspects. The scale of the operation and the offering of immunity from prosecution or other inducements was unlikely to have developed without at least tacit approval it
of the Attorney-General or other
members of the
executive.
and the practical problem of giving credence to the evidence of those who had admitted to serious crimes and had a vested interest in implicating others, the actual process of the trials brought the system into disrepute. The sheer number of defendants and charges and the corresponding length of trials raised the question of whether the supergrass, even if the testimony were honest, could be expected to recall accurately the individuals involved in (and details of) specific cases. For example, in the Black case, the second of the completed cases, there were 38 defendants and 1,084 indictments covering 45 separate incidents. The dangers of relying on uncorroborated accomplice evidence were apparent. The utilitarian case for the system was also likely to be undermined if respect for the judicial process was
As
well as the moral objections to the 'supergrass' system
eroded; both loyalist and republican groups opposed the use of supergrasses and judges were to develop a more
of many of the the policy.
trials after
critical position after the early trials.
1983 seemed
to
The
collapse
mark the end of the current phase of
58
In response to disquiet at the operation of 'supergrass' trials the government
issued guidelines. In a
General stated that
all
Commons
statement of October 1983 the Attorney-
decisions concerning immunity from prosecution were
taken by the Director of Public Prosecutions, after consultation with the Chief 59
In practice, the role of the police must have been decisive since they were the only ones capable of judging the potential of the accused as a 'supergrass'. Despite this safeguard and RUC claims that immunity was not sought for those accused of or guilty of murder, the provisions fell short of those
Constable.
no immunity had been granted since a recommendation of LJ Lawton in 1974 whereas in Northern Ireland the Director of Public Prosecutions had granted immunity to at least fifteen people by the end of 60 1984. An appendix to the tenth report of the SACHR recommended that all details of arrangements made between the accomplice and the authorities regarding immunity or financial inducements should be disclosed to the defence before the trial since these terms were material to the credibility of the evidence given. In early cases no such details were given, although later it appeared to be existing in Britain. In Britain,
more general
practice.
The problem difficult to
make
of corroboration was not resolved.
raison d'etre of the 'supergrass' strategy
not available.
It
would be extremely
corroborative evidence necessary for prosecution since the
The presence
was
that other evidence
was frequently
of a jury might make uncorroborated evidence more
British government policy in Northern Ireland 1 969-89
158
acceptable to the extent that
it
would have
than only a judge, but there was
little
to convince at least ten jurors rather
prospect of the restoration of jury
trial.
EPA 61
Baker argued that uncorroborated evidence was acceptable since judges were competent to assess the credibility 6f 'supergrasses' and had to give reasons for their decisions which could be challenged in the In his review of the
Appeal Court. The collapse of a series of cases after 1983 indicates that judges were critical of uncorroborated evidence and Greer argues that need to limit the damage to the legal system and stress its independence from the executive helped 62 Baker felt that to produce a more critical stance by the legal profession. 'supergrass' trials were likely to be a passing phenomenon but if continued there should be a limit of twenty defendants per trial. The accusations that the length of remand was in effect a form of covert detention (in the first five cases the length of 63 remand was between ten and twenty-one months) had further discredited the system. Baker recommended that either bail should be mandatory after twelve months or else application could be made to the High Court after six months and every subsequent three months if refused. Although 'supergrass' trials were to continue until 1986 the high point of the strategy was 1981-3. To summarise, the reasons for the decline appear to be a mixture of awareness of the disrepute into which the law was brought, a more critical position adopted by the judiciary and the failure of the system to prevent the continuation of violence.
As
been
well as the development of the supergrass strategy there have
summary killing of suspected Republicans has taken place - a avoid the problems of securing convictions through the courts. By
suspicions that the drastic
way
to
the nature of such incidents
it
is
virtually impossible to
occurrences constitute a predetermined policy and sanctioned. Boyle et
al.
(1980)
64
if
determine
such
if
so at what level
it
was
indicate that in 1978 there developed a tendency
ambushes for suspected terrorists and to shoot them when the army personnel were themselves not threatened. This contravened both criminal law and the 'yellow card' directives for army operations. Evidence that the government is prepared to condone such actions does not seem to be conclusive. Successful prosecutions have been brought against UDR members for sectarian attacks and at least one member of the army has been found guilty of murder. 65 However, in two well-publicised cases involving the RUC the verdicts and the
by the army
to lay
judges' statements demonstrated a reluctance to convict despite prima facie
evidence of unlawful
Manchester, from a suspicion that
unprepared
Economic
The
if the
killing.
The removal of Stalker, Deputy Chief Constable
'shoot-to-kill' investigation of the
government had not
officially
RUC
of
further fuelled
sanctioned such actions
it
was
to take sufficient action against those involved.
policy
advent of a Conservative administration in
May
1979 with an ideological
The Conservative administration hostility
towards
state
1 979-83
159
support for industry, public expenditure, the corporatist
embodied in the development agencies and to regional policy mechanisms in general had potentially grave implications for the Northern Ireland economy and the policies of the Rees/Mason period. However, despite the abolition of the Regional Employment Premium in 1979, three years later than in Britain, there was evidence that the Conservatives accepted the need for public support for private capital both in expanding sectors and for those in decline. Financial support for DeLorean and Harland and Wolff was main66 and Northern Ireland was accepted as a special case inasmuch as tained financial incentives were higher than in assisted areas in Britain. Given the Conservatives' opposition to major public-sector industrial development, the main thrust of policy was to be the public support, both direct and indirect, of private capital. This had been an important element of policy in the previous administration (see Chapter 4) and the changes were of emphasis rather than a qualitatively different policy. This is most clearly demonstrated in the concentration on the service sector and new hi-tech industries rather than on the traditional regional policy focus on manufacturing industry. Regional policy had supported manufacturing industry because firms in this sector were more likely to be large employers and have a corresponding greater multiplier effect and it was considered that they were easier to attract to the province because they were more mobile, being less tied geographically to their 67 markets. However, the rapid decline in manufacturing industry with the loss of 68 between June 1979 and June 1981 revealed the limitations of such jobs 28,000 a policy. To attempt to offset this decline both the Department of Commerce and the Northern Ireland Economic Council (NIEC) endorsed a greater emphasis being placed on the service-industry sector; the latter did so in part because of the lower cost of job creation. It was unlikely, which both the government and the development agencies appreciated, that this sector could wholly compensate for 69 manufacturing decline because it did not tend to be labour-intensive and many representation
of the 'sunrise' industries tended to situate themselves in areas of the to the
main
regions.
financial centres
and the European market than
UK closer
in peripheral
70
Another indication that the Conservatives recognised the need
for public
support of commerce was illustrated in that industrial development, along with housing, was given priority in the Northern Ireland expenditure programme. In June and December 1980 the allocation of resources to departments was revised to channel more funds towards industrial development at the expense of the 71 education and social services budgets. An unpublished review for the government by Arthur Andersen, the accountancy consultants, in 1979 considered that support for industry was 72 'broadly cost effective'. Standard Capital Grants were available at 30% compared with 22% for Special Development Areas in Britain and approximately fifty different measures, both financial and 'back up', were available in the
1
60
British government policy in Northern Ireland 1 969-89
form of selective assistance. These measures were usually negotiated by companies on an individual basis with the Department of Commerce. If incentives were 'broadly competitive with those available in other countries' as Shaw, Under Secretary with responsibility for Industry, claimed in April 73 1980 one possible area for reform was the institutional arrangements for the provision of support. A tripartite structure of the Department of Commerce, the Northern Ireland Development Agency (NIDA) and the Local Enterprise Development Unit (LEDU) had existed since 1972, apart from the substitution of the NIDA for the Northern Ireland Finance Corporation in 1976. Concern
had been expressed by the Northern Ireland parties and the NIEC about whether 74 This might there was sufficient co-ordination between the different agencies. have been influenced by the unfavourable comparisons drawn between the Northern Ireland system and the Industrial Development Authority of the Republic. It was felt that the success of the latter was aided by its greater autonomy from government and a greater corresponding commercial freedom. The more complicated structure and division of responsibility in Northern Ireland, and the potentially bewildering array of grants, loans and services available was a potential disincentive to inward investment. Shaw rejected calls for major restructuring on the grounds that the existing agencies were proving successful and that new legislation would be required which could prove disruptive to their functioning. Other factors may have been that as devolution talks were in progress, the government wanted to await the outcome of these before altering what would be a transferred matter in the event of devolution. Also, it had been suggested that the Civil Service feared that restructuring would weaken its influence in industrial policy and it pressurised 75 the Department of Commerce to resist such changes. In the absence of major changes the government announced its intention to create a consultative forum to improve the co-ordination of the three agencies. It was to be composed of the Minister responsible for industrial development, the chairs and chief executives of NIDA and LEDU, the chairman of the Industrial Development Advisory Committee (ID AC) 76 and members of the NIEC. Three other measures were announced. There was to be a change of emphasis in NIDA operations. It was to concentrate on industrial-development promotion in growth and especially hi-tech sectors and to encourage the promotion of joint ventures between Northern Ireland and overseas companies. Its 'rescue' function, granted in 1976, was to be taken over by the Department of Commerce and its financial limit fixed by the department was to be raised from £50 million to £75 million. The second measure was an increase in promotional staff for the Department of Commerce with two more based in USA and one each in France and Germany. Thirdly, the Department of Manpower Services was to be expanded to adopt a leading role in industrial retraining and in offering support for managerial training
schemes.
Despite the rejection of administrative changes
in
1980, the government
The Conservative administration
1 979-83
161
continued to review the situation. This was partly due to the pressure of Northern Ireland opinion and perhaps that in the circumstances of rapidly rising
ployment
77
there was a feeling that anything was worth a
try.
unem-
In August 1981
Atkins proposed the establishment of the Industrial Development Board (IDB) following the recommendation of a steering group chaired by Butler, the
The IDB was established by the Industrial Development (NI) Order which was presented to parliament in July 1982. It was to replace the NIDA and the section of the Department of Commerce concerned with industrial development in an attempt to fashion a more unified and streamlined development agency. The model of the Republic's IDA seemes to have been an influence, and this is also reflected in the downplaying of the role of the Minister to allow as much operational freedom as possible to the executive of the IDB. Ministerial involvement was to be limited, in general, to cases where social or political factors were significant or when especially large sums were involved. To facilitate this the IDB could allocate up to £3 million to any company in select financial assistance without prior approval from the Ministry of Finance and Personnel (which controls departmental expenditure) and up to £2 million in miscellaneous provisions, such as equity stakes, training assistance and factory successor to Shaw.
leasing.
The emphasis on commercial the board.
It
was
to
criteria
was
also reflected in the composition of
have up to twelve members appointed on merit rather than as
representatives of particular bodies and interest groups. This
was
a shift
from the
development agencies. The chief executive, who would take the major commercial decisions on the advice of the 78 board, was to have been a proven success in the private sector and the government hoped that such experience would result in greater efficiency for the development agency and avoid the risks of bureaucratic delay. With the DeLorean experience fresh in the mind the aim of the IDB should be: 'to provide assistance to companies only where it is satisfied that following the one-off injection of such assistance the company will be capable of standing on its own
more
corporatist arrangements of the earlier
feet without further special subsidy.
79
The tension between favouring the autonomy of the development agencies and the need for government supervision of the allocation of public funds persisted.
The IDB was
part of and integrated into the newly-created Department of Economic Development and doubts were expressed as to whether the new arrangements would make a significant difference. The Northern Ireland Chamber of Commerce and the NIEC favoured rationalisation 80 but felt that integration of the IDB into the new Department might militate against autonomous commercial decision making. Butler himself was to admit that the institutional arrangements were not fundamentally different from those which had preceded them. 81 For reasons mentioned above, the department was to retain control of administering standard capital grants.
The second
function of the Industrial Development (NI)
Order was
to
merge
1
British government policy in Northern Ireland 1 969-89
62
the Department of Commerce and the Department of Manpower Services into a
new Department of Economic Development. This had originally been advocated by Quigley (1976) because industrial-training and direct-labour schemes were an important part of industrial development and a merger woulcf provide a better integration of policy.
The third element in industrial support was LEDU, which was left unchanged in the reorganisation. It
underwent
a
major expansion
in
1980-81 with
its
annual
There was an internal decision to adopt a higher profile in response to higher unemployment 82 which the government supported. The record of the LEDU had been good especially in terms of the cost of jobs promoted and the government had an job promotion target raised from between 1,000 and 1,200 to 4,000.
ideological predisposition towards the small-business sector.
Not only was the
LEDU expanded, its remit was revised. With Department of at the end of 1980 the LEDU was empowered to offer
Commerce agreement
had been limited to manufacturing New measures were introduced aimed to assist those made redundant. The Small Business Development Programme had been introduced in October 1979, aimed at those with experience in larger concerns who had no small-business background. Up to 80% starting-up costs were available for new ventures. In 1981 a new enterprise grant was introduced geared towards the unemployed with no previous experience. Grants of up to £5,000 as a subsidy to income and for the purchase of plant and equipment were made available. If there is one particular trend that stands out in this period, it is the emphasis on attracting new service and hi-tech industries, as the prospects for manufacturing revival were slight. To this end, at the close of 1982 Prior announced that the IDB was to have senior personnel allocated to four specific sectors: robotics, electronic office equipment, medical electronic equipment, and service-sector equipment. This was in response to Chamber of Commerce evidence to the 83 Industry and Trade Committee that the hoped-for new technology sector industries had not materialised. As far as priorities of which size of firm to attract, Butler made it clear that the government had to continue the search for overseas assistance to the service sector. Prior to this
it
or manufacturing-related service industries.
investment despite the high cost of job creation
common to this sector:
persuaded that the small firm sector and the medium
'I
am fully
to large establishment or
domestic sector by themselves are not sufficient to overcome the problems which
we
face/
In
84
March 1983
development.
Up
Prior detailed a to
80%
new group of measures
to stimulate industrial
corporation tax reimbursement was to be offered on
approved projects. The logic behind
this
was
that
such incentives would only be
companies who had achieved viability concession) and it was hoped to redress the balance available to
(as
it
in the
was
a profit-related
competition with the
Republic's Industrial Development Authority which used tax relief much more widely. This reform had been advocated by the
IDB, the Committee Report of
The Conservative administration
1
979-83
1
63
1982 and the Northern Ireland Assembly. Rather than tax reliefer se the would be administered in the form of a grant, related to employment creation, by the IDB and LEDU since differential tax policy for Northern Ireland fiscal was not considered acceptable as it would breach the uniformity of the assistance
UK
structure.
Other measures included the increase of derating on industrial premises from to 100% from the next financial year, grants of 30% towards energy conservation projects in an effort to offset Northern Ireland's higher energy costs, and a new advisory service to provide information on improved production processes and research and development. The estimated cost of the derating and energy measures was £9-10 million per annum, but it was not possible to estimate the cost of the corporation tax relief scheme or the number of jobs likely
75%
to
be created.
Although Northern Ireland benefited from higher than the rest of the
levels
of industrial support
UK and relatively high levels of public expenditure, 85 there
was a degree of congruence
in industrial policy.
One example was
the govern-
ment's attempt to target more closely the areas in need of support; these often frequently termed the 'inner
being what
is
announced
in the
extended to
cities'.
The
budget of March 1980, was directed Northern Ireland.
enterprise zone strategy,
at
urban regeneration and
The purpose of enterprise zones was to allow firms to site in designated areas where they would not be subject to bureaucratic constraints and granted 100% derating, simplified planning procedures and exemption from being required to keep statistics for government purposes. In July 1980 two areas of Belfast, one in the west of the city and one on the shore of Belfast Lough, were designated enterprise zones confirmed by an Order of October. A third zone was designated in Derry in November 1982. According to government figures, 35 firms employing 206 people had been set up in the Belfast zones by the end of 1982. 86 However, the enterprise zone programme seemed ill-suited to Northern Ireland and it is doubtful that even the government considered that the programme would have much effect on employ87 ment. The main impact was ideological in that any private -sector activity in a depressed area when 'freed' from bureaucratic constraints could be hailed as a success, and critics have argued that the exercise was mainly about public 88 relations. A problem with the enterprise zone scheme, which also applied to Britain, was that there was no discrimination in favour of newly-created firms. This meant that some of the job creations were in fact relocations from other parts of Northern Ireland. O'Dowd and Rolston (1985) estimate that this may be 89 as high as 55%. Many of the industries attracted were in the retailing and warehousing sectors which did not tend to generate much employment compared with, for example, the manufacturing sector. Even the siting of the west Belfast Zone adjacent to areas of high unemployment did not prove especially successful since it has not been established that those employed came
1
British government policy in Northern Ireland 1 969-89
64
from these areas where unemployment reaches 30-40%. tends to militate against the enterprise zone strategy capital subsidy
is
A
final
point which
that the general level of
and non-financial support throughout Northern Ireland
that the incentives available in the zones are of marginal significance.
is
such
Even when
such incentives induce relocation the risk occurs of the 'swings and roundabouts' of regional policy; jobs merely move from area to area rather than the net number available being increased.
The expansion of industrial training schemes and courses for young people was another policy in which Northern Ireland broadly reflected that of the UK as a whole. However, the provision in Northern Ireland was greater, reflecting the higher level of unemployment and possibly the view that the unemployed were more likely to become involved in paramilitary activity. In autumn 1982 the Youth Training Scheme (YTS) was introduced to replace the Youth Opportunity Programme (YOPS) which had existed since 1977 and provided places for 10,000 people. YTS was introduced a year earlier than in Britain and was to be more comprehensive; attempting to find work experience/college places/ apprenticeships for sixteen- and seventeen-year olds where in Britain the 90 emphasis was on places for the former. Under the direction of the Department of Manpower Services the YOPS scheme had provided a variety of programmes to remove young people from the labour market. These included apprenticeships in Government Training Centres and in the private sector, the Work Preparation Unit aimed at industry-oriented activities, Younghelp, a community and social work scheme and places on Enterprise Ulster schemes. To deal with the problem of the longer-term unemployed Action for Community Employment (ACE) was introduced in April 1981 as a supplement to the Enterprise Ulster programme established in 1973. It was to provide full- or part-time employment for those who had been unemployed for twelve out of the previous fifteen months. The sponsor of a project, often a community group or voluntary body, would be provided with up to 90% of its labour costs by government. By comparison with the YTS, which was ostensibly to have a training element, ACE was a straightforward job-creation scheme, principally aimed at the unskilled, with the projects typically being environmental or building repair work. The ACE scheme was to take prominence over the Enterprise Ulster since the latter tended to be more cosdy. An assessment of the value of these schemes is beyond the scope of this work, though it might be noted that the training value of the YTS has been severely criticised in the UK generally. Whether the prime motive of the government was to subsidise the labour costs of the private sector, reduce unemployment or to keep people off the streets, it put a significant amount of resources into the schemes. In 1981-2 the Department of Manpower Services expenditure on industrial (re)training
and direct labour schemes was £73.3
the figure for standard capital grants and about
loans and other forms of industrial support.
91
40%
million, almost twice
of expenditure on grants,
By 1984 9,150
adults were placed
The Conservative administration
on
training,
ACE,
1 979-83
Enterprise Ulster and
1
management schemes and
65
there were
6,550 people on the guaranteed year of the various YTS projects and 1,850 on 92 second year YTS projects. The total is equal to approximately a quarter of male
manufacturing jobs in the province.
The switch of emphasis to the new-technology sector and service
expansion in
the government's industrial -support strategy was emphasised above. Neither this
nor the expansion of training and direct labour schemes could compensate for the accelerated decline of manufacturing employment.
Between 1979 and 1984
over 28,000 male manufacturing jobs were lost compared with a decline of
10,000 between 1975 and 1979.
93
The
capacity of the public sector to offset this
had declined since the 1970s because the rate of increase in public expenditure had declined in real terms. The combination of this, the closure of many of the multinationals which had been established in the 1960s, and the continuing difficulty of attracting inward investment was reflected in the rate of unemployment. The figures (male and female) for the years 1979-83 were 1979,
9.6%; 1980, 11.4%; 1981, 15.4%; 1982, 17.3% and 1983, 19.4%, with male 94 figures alone showing higher levels.
Social policy
The
period 1979-83 did not witness any major innovations in the field of social
policy.
poor
Housing continued
level
to
be of significance; reflecting both the continuing
of public housing stock in the province and the hope that improved
housing conditions might have wider advantages in helping to legitimise the state
The government may not have felt that there was a direct one frequent commentator on housing in Northern Ireland
for disaffected citizens.
relationship but
argues that there was at least the possibility of a spin-off effect. Continuing British is
relatively
high levels of public expenditure can ... be seen as part of the
Government's perceived
'reformist' strategy for
Northern Ireland. Such a strategy
based on the premise that a 'high' level of public expenditure on housing
contribute to the amelioration of the Province's wider political problems.
may
also
95
Whatever the relationship between better housing and the problems of violence and securing a political settlement, it is undeniable that Northern Ireland was spared the reduction in housing expenditure experienced by the rest of the
from the
late
UK
1970s. In 1980-81 the government announced that housing was to
and environmental budget and by 1981-2 and in subsequent years per capita expenditure on housing in Northern Ireland was
take priority in the social
almost four times the level of that for England and Wales. 96
The
accession of
Prior to the position of Secretary of State helped in this process as he
was more
successful in fighting for additional expenditure than his predecessor, Atkins.
Housing Executive which partly reflects the
In 1983 housing completions by the Northern Ireland
(NIHE)
totalled 4,044, the highest figure since
1978
98
97
1
British government policy in Northern Ireland 1 969-89
66
renewed emphasis put on housing. However, the rate of completions cannot be used as the sole indicator in housing improvements since the Conservatives, as had their Labour predecessors, continued a move towards rehabilitation rather than new constructions. Although in terms of expenditure housing in Northern Ireland may be contrasted with policy for the UK as a whole, many of the same provisions were introduced and housing policy had a large degree of congruence with that of Britain. Examples include the large increases in public-sector rents to subsidise the capital programme of the NIHE which was permitted to spend more of its income, including that from house sales, on capital projects than were local authorities in Britain.
Another example of congruence with British policy was the increased sector. This included the 'right to buy' under the Housing (NI) Order 1983, the selling of sites and 'unlettable' properties to private developers and the adoption of the 'homesteading' policy in July 1980 under which bricked-up properties, mainly in the inner city parts of Belfast, were sold at low cost in an attempt at regeneration and to reverse the trend of depopulation in these areas. There was also increased liaison and joint initiatives with banks and building societies in an effort to attract funds for the rehabilitation of downmarket properties. These trends were reflected in the increase in owneroccupied property from 42% of dwellings in the early 1960s to 54% by 1984." emphasis on the role of the private
The ideological commitment to the private
sector of the Conservatives should
not be over-emphasised in the Northern Ireland context. detailed above were underpinned by public subsidy
continued to be
much more
Many
of the ventures
and the public rented sector
adequately financed than in Britain. Prior himself 100
and the assumed if unquantifiable between housing conditions and alienation from the state was by the Northern Ireland Office in securing high levels of expenditure, to Britain, for Northern Ireland housing.
claimed that 'we are
all
Keynesians here'
relationship utilised relative
The position of the (SACHR) continued to
Standing Advisory Commission for
be marginal, as argued above.
101
Human
Rights
The Seventh Annual
Report 1980-81 recorded the commission's dissatisfaction with the limited to, and the lack of consultation over, the Repre-
parliamentary time allocated
sentation of the People Act 1981; legislation which had serious implications for
human rights. 102 The
report for the following year noted with regret that neither
the White Paper 'Northern Ireland:
subsequent Northern Ireland rights.
103
More
UK as
A Framework
for Devolution' nor the
debates considered the question of
human
SACHR
had long advocated a Bill of Rights, a whole but if this proved impossible then for Northern
generally, the
preferably for the
Bill
Ireland only; but this continued to have
little
The SACHR also noted that there was human rights which it had not embraced
support
among
the British parties.
an economic and social dimension to in its
work, and that economic decline
made the work of the Fair Employment Agency (FEA) in the private sector that much more difficult. 104 Despite Prior's undertaking to review the role of the
The Conservative administration
1 979-83
1
67
SACHR, there was little prospect of a Bill of Rights being adopted and even less of any recognition of the concept of rights in the economic and social sphere.
The Ninth Annual Report 1982-3 105 summed up the frustration of the SACHR and closely reflected the complaints made when Mason was Labour Secretary of State:
106
We encounter contrasting interpretations of our statutory remit and this inevitably affects the extent to which we are able to investigate matters of concern to us. We do not have formal investigatory powers. Limited resources are available to us and considerable uncertainty continues to exist as to our proper relationship with other statutory agencies
which operate in the human rights field. Moreover, it is abundandy clear that the wording of Section 20 of the Northern Ireland Constitution Act 1973, which lays down the Commission's statutory remit, no longer reflects the significant shift there has been in the public perception of human rights and the pressure which this undoubtedly exerts on our
programme of work; nor does
the Act
make
clear the role
we should
play in promoting
public awareness of human rights in general or those particular issues of concern to us.
To
clarify its position, the
Ireland Office officials and will
be considered
in
107
SACHR called for a Joint Study Group of Northern SACHR members to be set up. The outcome of this
Chapter
6.
Conclusion
A
principal feature of this administration
constitutional sphere, albeit largely abortive.
was the degree of activity in the Both Atkins and Prior followed the
well-established precedent of the devolutionary path, thus demonstrating a continuity with the administration of
1974-9 and
adopted by the Conservatives when in opposition.
a
break with the integrationism
The principal difference in the
devolutionary proposals was the greater emphasis on the Irish dimension in the
1982 White Paper with
its
explicit recognition
of the legitimacy of the Nationalist
was insufficient to win support of the SDLP and, in the long term, the increased emphasis on bilateral arrangements with the Republic following the summits of 1980 and 1981 was of more significance as this process was to culminate in the agreement of 1985. The change of Secretary of State in 1981 had little impact on the formulation of constitutional policy; the main difference between the tenures appears to be in Prior's relative success in 108 shielding Northern Ireland from public expenditure restraints. This period is also marked by a reappraisal of Irish policy by the opposition. This was of limited significance in the constitutional area as 'unity by consent' did not practically affect support for devolutionary proposals and thus general support for the government was maintained. Conflict, or at least disagreement, between the parties was more evident over security policy which reflected Labour's more critical position concerning emergency legislation. However, this opposition did not extend to the government's stance over the hunger strike issue tradition.
However,
this
1
1
68
British
which was supported by all but the
government policy in Northern Ireland 1 969-89
'fringe'
elements of the Labour Party.
Notes »
Guelkel984p.36. 2 Kilfedder and Dunlop were independent Unionists, Maguire was an independent and Fitt resigned from the SDLP in November 1979. 3 'The Government of Northern Ireland: A Working Paper for a Conference.' Cmnd 7763 1979. 1
4
ibid. para. 5.
5
ibid. para. 28.
6
Fortnight
7
Flackes 1983
No. 174 Dec. 1979/Jan. 1980. p.
240.
some Unionists and Conservative backbenchers government was trying to introduce an assembly as a vehicle for the re -introduction of an institutionalised Irish Dimension was too conspiratorial. (InterAccording
8
that
to Atkins, the belief of
the
view).
9 'The Government of Northern 7950 1980.
10 1
12 13
Ireland: Proposals for Further Discussion.'
Cmnd
ibid. para. 64.
John HC. Vol. 988 Cols 570-73 9/7/1980. Rees HC. Vol. 988 Col. 702 9/7/1980. Principal among them were Amery, Gardiner,
Stanbrook
and
Biggs-
Davison.
HC. Vol. 988 Col. 716 9/7/1980. HC. Vol. 994 Col. 558 27/11/1980.
14
Alison
15
Atkins
16
The May 1980 Summit had spoken
of the 'unique relationship' between the two
countries.
17
Fortnight
that the 1985
18 19
No. 180 March/ April 1981.
It
was within the framework of the council
agreement was signed.
See HC. Vol. 7 Cols 1020-1176 2/7/1981. For details of the hunger strike period and the government response see Clarke
1987.
20
Prior quoted in O'Malley 1983 p. 367.
21
Prior allowed the discussion of security, a reserved matter, as an incentive for
For an assessment of the 1987 and O'Learyetal 1988.
participation.
22 23 24 owing 25
HC. HC.
role of the
Assembly committees, see A.J. Greer
692 5/4/1982. 693 5/4/1982. The section in the White Paper on the Irish Dimension had been watered down to pressure from Thatcher and Haiisham. Prior 1986 p. 197. See Fortnight No. 186 May/June 1982. Anglo-Irish relations were at a low point Prior
Prior
Vol. 21 Col.
Vol. 21 Col.
following the Republic's refusal to support Britain over the Falklands war.
26 27 28 29
e.g. see
Powell in the debate of 28/4/1982.
See Flackes 'A Short Road Scott
HC.
to the Sea?' Fortnight
No. 188 October 1982.
Vol. 22 Col. 931 28/4/1982.
This position
is
developed by Soley, Labour Party spokesman,
in his
submission
The Conservative administration to the
1 979-83
New Ireland Forum, Public Sessions No.
1
1 1
Dublin 19/1/1984 and
69
in Collins (ed.)
1985.
30
Concannon HC.
31
This was
32
FortnightNo. 190 January 1983.
33
This figure from Flackes 1983.
Vol.
22 Col. 866 28/4/1982. New Ireland Forum which
to result in the
first
met
in
May
1983.
34 Bew and Patterson 1985 p. 123. 35 The combined vote of the SDLP, Sinn Fein and the Workers' Party. 36 Fortnight No. 192 March 1983. 37 At the 1981 Labour Party Conference there was a total of 58 resolutions and amendments relating to Northern Ireland; the highest ever figure. 38 HC.Vol.l Cols. 331-95 18/3/1981. 39 See the security section in chapter 4. 40 HC. Vol. 20 Col. 157 15/3/1982. 41 'Review of the Operation of the Prevention of Terrorism (Temporary Provisions) Act 1976' (Jellicoe Report) Cmnd 8803 London HMSO 1983. 42 See, for example, Scorer and Hewitt 1981 and Walsh 1983. 43
Jellicoe Para. 176.
44 See previous renewal debates and the Sixth Annual Report of the SACHR 1979/80 HC 143 1980/81. 45 HC. Vol. 1 Col. 393 18/3/1981. 46 HC. Vol. 38 Cols 564-642 7/3/1983. 47 HC. Vol. 38 Col. 573 7/3/1983. 48 HC. Vol. 38 Col. 575 7/3/1983. 49 Fifth Annual Report of the SACHR HC 433 1979/80. 50 Sixth Annual Report of the SACHR HC 143 1980/81 p. 8. 51 ALISON HC. Vol. 975 Col. 1 194 1 1/12/1979. 52 Detention powers lapsed but were not removed from the Act. 53 HC. Vol. 26 Col. 943 30/6/1982. 54 Boyle, Hadden and Hillyard 1980 p. 40. 55 Giffordl984p.5. 56 ibid. p. 10. 57 Greer 1987 p. 7. 58 For a debate about whether the 'supergrass' strategy had ended, see the article by Jennings and Greer in Fortnight No. 232 (21/1/86) and the reply from McDonough in No. 234 (24/2/86) and the correspondence in Nos. 236 (24/3/86) and 240 (2/6/86). 59 Statement by Attorney General. HC. Vol. 47 Cols 3-5 24/10/83. 60 Tendi Annual Report of the SACHR 1983-4 HC 175. 61 'Review of the Northern Ireland (Emergency Provisions) Act 1978' (Baker Report) Cmnd 9222 HMSO 1984. 62 Greer op. cit. p. 8. 63
Gifford op.
64
Boyle,
cit.
p. 9.
Hadden and
Hillyard 1980 pp. 28-29. See Asmal 1985 paras. 54 and 55. See Chapter 7 for details of the Stalker 'affair'. 66 Although such support was based upon expected production from DeLorean in early 1981 and hopes for diversification at Harland and Wolff. 67 Keeble 1976 pp. 202-4.
65
British government policy in Northern Ireland 1 969-89
170 68
NI. Annual Abstract of Statistics Dept. of Finance and Personnel Belfast
HMSO
1986. Table 10:2.
69 See Industry and Trade Committee Seventh Report 'Government Support for Trade and Industry in Northern Ireland' HC 500 398 I & II 1982. 70 Other 'peripheral' areas of the UK, such as Scodand and Wales, proved more successful than Northern Ireland in attracting high-tech industries. Teague 1987 p. 171. 71 Fortnight No. 178 October/November 1980 and No. 180 March/April 1981. 72 Buder evidence to the Select Committee op. cit. Para. 2. 73 Shaw HC. Vol. 952 Cols 190-192 1/4/1980. 74 Harvey and Rea 1982 p. 89. 75
76 under 77 78 79 80
ibid.
The Advisory Committee to the NIDA which had a statutory right to be consulted the Industrial
Development Act 1966 with respect
to
NIDA-sponsored
See below for figures. Saxon Tate, of Tate and Lyle, was appointed. Buder HC. Vol. 27 Col. 1 130 14/7/1982. A Report by the Northern Ireland Economic Council industrial development agency independent of government.
in
1980 advocated
81
Northern Ireland Committee 2nd Sitting Col. 38 5/5/1982.
82
Interview widi
83
Industry and Trade Committee op.
84 85
Evidence of Buder
35%
a single
LEDU Official Belfast 3 1/7/86.
The government
approximately
projects.
to Industry
cit.
para. 138.
and Trade Committee para 116.
has claimed that public expenditure in Northern Ireland
is
per capita above that for Britain. This estimate has been challenged;
Economic Council Paper 'Public Expenditure Comparisons between Northern Ireland and Great Britain' No. 18 Belfast 1981. 86 HC. Vol. 45 Col. 374 13/7/84. 87 Anderson 1983 p. 315. see in particular the Northern Ireland
88 0'DowdandRolstonl985p.227. 89 ibid. p. 226. 90 'Youth Employment and Training' Northern Ireland Economic Council Paper No. 27 Belfast 1982. 91
Figures taken from Industry and Trade Report.
92 93 94 95 96 97 98 99 100
Annual Abstract of Statistics op. cit. Table 10:4. ibid. Table 10:2. ibid. Table 10:8. Singleton 1986 p. 48. ibid. See also figures in this article. See Connolly 1983 p. 135 and Weir 1983. See Government Expenditure Figures Cmnd 9702-1 1 1986. Cartmill and Singleton 1984 p. 43. Weir op. cit. p. 384. 101 See social policy section in chapter 4. 102 HC. No. 202 Session 1981/82 paras. 4-21. This Act was passed after the election of Bobby Sands for Fermanagh/South Tyrone in April 1981 to prevent convicted criminals standing as candidates.
103
Eighth Annual Report 1981/82.
HC. No. 230 Session 1982/83
paras
1
1-12.
1
Tlie Conservative administration 1 979-83
104
ibid para. 44.
105
HC. No. 262
06 107 108
See
1
Session 1983/84.
social policy section in chapter 4.
HC. No. 262
Session 1983/84. para. 58.
Connolly 1983
p. 72.
1
7
The
Conservative administration: 1983 to the Anglo-Irish Agreement
Introduction
The Conservatives were returned to office in June 1983 with an increased overall majority of 144, winning 397 seats to Labour's 209 seats. Prior remained as
Secretary of State until September 1984 when he was replaced by Hurd,
who was
by King in September 1985. The Earl of Mansfield was Minister of State from June 1983 until May 1984 and Butler held the same position until in turn replaced
September of
Under
that year
when he was
replaced by Rhodes-Boyson.
Secretaries were Patten, Scott and
The
The latter two were still serving at the time of the agreement, having been succeeded by Richard Needham in September 1985.
April 1984).
three
Lord Lyell (who was appointed
in
Patten
Constitutional policy
The
inauspicious beginning of the 'rolling devolution' initiative of 1982,
SDLP abstentionism and the scepticism of the Official Unionists, added impetus to the attempts to the move from an 'internal' settlement (i.e. one based solely on power sharing or some form of cross-community accommodation within Northern Ireland) to an all-Ireland framework. It should be noted that this development was not solely reducible to the stalemate in the devolution strategy. Since the summit of December 1980 when the government of the Republic of Ireland and the UK agreed to joint studies at an official level, the results of which were published in November 1981, it had been clear that the British government was prepared to move beyond the Northern Ireland stage if the prospects for devolution remained slight. Since the assembly's inception it had fulfilled its scrutinising and deliberative role but there was no indication that the SDLP was prepared to end its boycott. As indicated in the previous chapter, the SDLP leadership had moved towards a position in which any further political progress had to be premised on some form of input from the Irish Republic. The question that remains to be answered is that if the prospects for bedevilled by
1
Conservatives: 1 983 to Anglo-Irish Agreement
1
73
more pronounced and/or formalised role for from the Unionist community why the government did not continue with direct rule which was commonly perceived as devolution were remote and a
Dublin would
risk further opposition
An important internal factor (i.e. within Northern Ireland was the entry of Sinn Fein into electoral politics. Following the election of Sands and Carron in by-elections during the period of the 1981 hunger strikes, Sinn Fein contested the assembly elections of 1982 gaining 10.1% of the first preference votes and in the general election of June 1983 gained 13.4% of votes 2 cast, compared with 17.9% for the SDLP. The chances of Sinn Fein superseding the SDLP as the principal nationalist party were probably slim but it did make the option for the government of 'sitting it out' and not attempting a new initiative that much more difficult. If the SDLP were no longer, or perhaps no the ieast worst' option. itself)
longer perceived to be, the electoral voice of the nationalist community the strategy of trying to erect power-sharing with
its
participation
became
that
much
more problematic.
A related issue was that support for Sinn Fein was interpreted by many commentators as growing evidence of 'alienation' amongst the Nationalist community. This term was not used in a specific or sociological sense. It implied that one or more of the factors of lack of recognition of the Nationalist cultural tradition, judicial
3
economic disadvantage and
a perception of the security forces
and the
system as sectarian disposed a significant section of the nationalist
population to support Sinn Fein and implicitly the use of violence. This notion of alienation
was used by
Hume
in
an
effort to establish
discuss possible structures in which to in Ireland.
an all-Ireland Forum
to
accommodate the two dominant traditions
Thatcher was sceptical about the existence or growth of alienation
4
but the later acceptance of the British government of an institutionalised input by the Irish Republic in the north indicated that the in
argument had some resonance
Westminster. External, or international, interests in Northern Ireland also
difficult for the British
government
to
pursue a
'passivist' policy.
long been an interested observer in the Irish question.
5
While
made
it
more
The USA had it
was wary of
pushing the issue too hard for fear of being accused of interference in an
ally's
United States government would view some form of Anglo-Irish agreement favourably, to the extent that it was prepared to grant funds to aid economic development if an agreement were sovereign matters,
reached.
it
was
clear that the
6
Secondly, partly as the result of Hume's lobbying, in the early 1980s the took a more active interest in Ireland and in
March 1983
EC
the political committee
of the European Parliament proposed to prepare a report on the Northern Ireland question.
7
The report was approved by the Political Affairs Committee in later by the European Parliament. The report respected the
February 1984 and
sovereign authority of the
UK
over internal matters and refrained from
advocating any particular constitutional blueprint.
The
British
government had
1
74
British
government policy in Northern Ireland 1 969-89
refused to co-operate with the study on the grounds that the subject was outside the competence of the
EC
although Conservative
MEPs
abstained rather than
voting against the report. Despite the cautious tone of the report, all-Ireland dimension in social
it endorsed an and economic development, supported the Inter-
8 Governmental Council and advocated the establishment of a parliamentary tier. In short, both the EC and the United States viewed the situation in an all-Ireland context which implied a recognition of the legitimacy of Nationalist aspirations to an extent which would be unacceptable to most of Unionist opinion. This made it more difficult, in diplomatic terms, for the UK to focus exclusively on 'internal' frameworks or to adopt a 'passivist' approach in the face of economic stagnation and Nationalist alienation. The New Ireland Forum met for a period of a year between May 1983 and May 1984. It received written and oral submissions from interested parties, including church representatives, community groups, individual Unionists and two Westminster MPs, Biggs -Davison and Soley, although they were not official 9 representatives of their respective parties. A number of studies were also published dealing with the Irish economies, the legal structures, north and south, and the cost of the violence. The Forum Report itself was published in May 1984 containing three main sections: an account of the origins of the problem; an assessment of the present situation; and a consideration of three possible frameworks for a future Ireland, Joint Authority, a Federal/Confederal state or a
unitary state.
The more
ambitious hopes that the forum might achieve some breakthrough
accommodating the two traditions had been dashed by the refusal of the Unionist parties to participate. The report itself was contradictory in that while it recognised the British and Protestant element in Unionism it failed to demonstrate how these could be better safeguarded under any of the Forum's three constitutional options than under the prevailing position of Northern Ireland as part of the UK. Therefore, it was left undemonstrated why any Unionist should support these projected constitutional arrangements. Commentaries on the report saw it as old-fashioned unitary state nationalism with a few glosses which did not indicate a serious attempt to 10 incorporate the north. The lack of commitment to repeal Articles 2 and 3 of the 1937 Constitution and the wrangling between the parties of the Republic over which of the three options to adopt further undermined the credibility of the in laying the foundation for a pluralist Ireland
forum.
11
In Britain, Kinnock, the
welcomed the forum since it policy. Prior welcomed the condemnation of violence and recognition of
Labour Party
leader,
endorsed 'unity by consent' which was Labour party 'positive' aspects
of the report, the
the Unionist tradition, but argued that since
none
fulfilled the criterion
reflected in a radio interview in late
much as
he could
in
all
three options appeared to be ruled out
of northern consent. His lack of optimism was
May when he declared he
Northern Ireland and was prepared
to
felt
he had done as
be replaced.
12
175
Conservatives: 1 983 to Anglo-Irish Agreement
more diplomatic
Prior's
reservations about the
more forcefully by Thatcher at 1984 when she bluntly rejected I
have
made
it
quite clear
.
.
.
Forum Report were
expressed
the Chequers Anglo-Irish summit of November all
three options.
that a unified Ireland
was one
That is out.
solution.
was confederation of the two States. That is out. 13 authority. That is out. That is a derogation of sovereignty. solution
A
third solution
A second was joint
what had largely become received wisdom at Whitehall: the and threat posed by, Nationalist alienation which had been assiduously pushed by Hume, FitzGerald, and Irish Foreign Affairs officials, Donlon and 14 Thatcher's position may have been influenced by the results of the Lillis. European elections of June 1984 in which the Sinn Fein vote of 13.3% was virtually the same as at the 1983 general election and substantially less than the 22.1% gained by Hume for the SDLP. The possibility that Sinn Fein could
She
also rejected
degree
of,
seemed
establish itself as the leading Nationalist party
terms of
political philosophy,
Thatcher was
to
be receding. Also,
in
sympathetic to theories of
less
was more likely to and order or personal responsibility than a consideration of unemployment levels or shortcomings in Northern Ireland's alienation than Prior or Whitehall officials; criminal activity elicit
a response of the
need
for law
security forces.
At the press conference following the summit there seemed from the Dublin-Westminster ary tier was once
axis.
The
need
We
drift
away
cannot impose ways from London.
for greater security co-operation
An improvement
can only be brought about by
agreement between the minority and majority and we obviously
agreement ...
I
have long taken the view that
will strain for that
we cannot impose something from
15
This was reassuring
condemned Hurd's his first
be a
more postponed by referring it to the respective parliaments and was emphasised:
the
London.
to
question of an Anglo-Irish parliament-
to Unionists
and Anglo-Irish
relations
worsened
as
Hume
reiteration of Thatcher's rebuttal of the alienation thesis. In
speech to the Northern Ireland Assembly in December 1984
Hurd
told
were not accommodated the government and consult with Dublin 'over the heads' of the Northern
the Unionists that if the Nationalists
would continue Ireland people.
to rule
However
the Unionists felt
it
unlikely that Thatcher, widely
thought to be one of the more pro-Union of recent Prime Ministers, would
make
which would infringe British sovereignty. In early 1985 the Unionist parties made overtures to the SDLP but it seems on the assumption that the latter would not take up its assembly seats. Thus the Unionists could portray thema deal
selves as conciliators without the risk of having seriously to consider
any
machinery for power sharing or cross-community administration. In light of this
it
remains to be seen why there was movement towards the
resuscitation of the Anglo-Irish process.
There were four factors which indicated
British government policy in Northern Ireland 1 969-89
176 that the likelihood or
need
for
such a course was no more pressing than in
previous years. Firstly, there was Thatcher's supposed Unionist sympathies indicated above. Secondly, the low level of violence and deaths in Northern
compared with 1981 and the early to mid 1970s,* meant security on an all-Ireland basis were no more pressing than previously. Thirdly, the probability of a unionist backlash if Dublin were given any institutionalised input into northern policy making risked substituting one alienation problem for Ireland,
initiatives
another. Fourthly, as indicated above, Sinn Fein's electoral advance appeared to
have peaked.
However, there were also countervailing factors which were to prove to be the It has been suggested that the accession of Hurd to Northern Ireland Secretary speeded up the process of treating Northern Ireland as a mutual problem to be dealt with on a bilateral basis with the Republic. Hurd came from the Foreign Office which was involved in the negotiations with Dublin and thought to be, especially by Unionists, a department sympathetic to bilateral 16 Secondly, there is the question of negotiations and perhaps unification itself. the degree of Unionist hostility to an institutionalised role for Dublin. The negotiations which led up to the agreement of November 1985 were led by the Cabinet Secretary Armstrong and his Irish counterpart Nally and the respective ambassadors, Goodison and Dorr. This could have led to an underestimation of 17 However, elements of the the likely unionist hostility to the agreement. Northern Ireland Office felt that middle-class Unionism could be assuaged if benefits of improved security and economic revival could be offered as incentives to accept Dublin's role. Alternatively, and in a more Machiavellian mode, it might have been calculated that Unionist hostility to the agreement would be an incentive to internal power sharing which, as it turned out, was to be offered as a way to diminish Dublin's consultative role when the agreement was signed. Two other points should be noted. The international perspective, made more pertinent by Hume's cultivation of international contacts, and the need to 'be seen to be doing something' was still of relevance. Also, Thatcher's commitment to the Union proved sufficiently flexible to afford the Republic what was to be a consultative role. After the agreement was signed, she admitted to having under18 estimated the reaction of the unionist community but claimed that the Union had been made more secure by the recognition by the Republic that any change in the constitutional position of Northern Ireland required the consent of the majority, and the potential effect of the agreement in weakening Sinn Fein and the IRA. An indication that a renewed attempt at Anglo-Irish negotiations was to be made came in early 1985 when a Cabinet Committee was established to consider the issue. It included most senior Cabinet members including Howe, Whitelaw, Hurd, Brittan, Tebbit, Biffen and Gowrie but Gow, formerly Thatcher's Private Secretary, was excluded. This was an indication of the trend in developments as he was known to oppose increased Dublin influence in the north and was to stronger.
177
Conservatives: 1 983 to Anglo-Irish Agreement
resign from a Treasury post until
November
when
the agreement was signed.
From
early
1985
there was a succession of meetings at official and ministerial
made public, which further angered By March Hurd and FitzGerald and the two Foreign Ministers, Howe and Barry, had met twice and Thatcher met FitzGerald at European Community summits in March and July. The matters discussed and the progress made were subject to much rumour given the secrecy surrounding them. However, it seems that by May/June the
level,
the substance of which was not
Unionists.
prospects for agreement were poor; partly because of the differing emphasis on what was necessary to combat 'alienation'. Dublin, no doubt influenced by the SDLP, emphasised the judicial and security elements in 'alienation'. Possible areas of reform included the disbanding of the UDR, the introduction of a new code of conduct for the RUC, joint courts in which judges from the Republic could sit alongside Northern Ireland judges in Diplock cases, and the introduction of three judges in Diplock courts.
The
was unfavourable. In June Hurd and the Lord Chief Justice opposed the joint-court principle although he later withdrew his objection if the 19 two parliaments agreed to the policy. Three judges presiding in Diplock trials had been advocated over a long period by critics of the system but had been 20 rejected in reviews of the Emergency Provisions Act on the grounds that there were insufficient personnel in the Northern Ireland judiciary and that a plurality of judges was unsuitable in the adversarial system of British courts. The problem with major reform of the security forces or the judicial system was that it was likely to provoke unionist hostility and might also affect the morale of the RUC and UDR. This could be crucial when the former had to be relied upon to cope with potential disorder from Unionists resulting from any agreement being reached. The RUC was attempting to demonstrate its impartiality over the re-routing and banning of loyalists marches in the summer of 1985 and the British government did not wish to add to the pressures upon it. The UK was more likely to make concessions on cultural aspects of the Nationalist tradition, in acknowledgement of its legitimacy and equality with the British response to these suggestions
ruled out the
UDR
as a subject for negotiation
Unionist tradition. Recognition of the Gaelic language, for example, in the
naming of streets, and the flying of the tricolour 21 would offend the more extreme Unionists but would be easier concessions to make than security or judicial reform. In light of the differing emphasis on what was necessary to tackle 'alienation' it would seem that the balance moved in the UK's favour in the period up to the signing of the agreement on 15 November 1985. The agreement established an Intergovernmental Conference to be jointly chaired, when meeting at ministerial level, by the Secretary of State for Northern Ireland and an Irish minister designated as the Permanent Irish Ministerial Representative. This position was filled by the Foreign Affairs Minister, Barry. There was also provision for meetings to be held at an official level and for other
British government policy in Northern Ireland 1 969-89
178
ministers or advisers to be included
if the
topic
under discussion
fell
within their
area of responsibility. Examples cited were the Attorney-General and the respective heads of the two police forces.
The Forum
role for
Dublin
in the
conference
fell
short of the three options of the
Report. Joint authority was explicitly ruled out; 'There
is no derogation from the sovereignty of either the United Kingdom Government or the Irish Government, and each retains responsibility for the decisions and administration 22 The conference recognised the of government within its own jurisdiction.' right of the Irish government to be consulted on matters relating to Northern Ireland, and the British government's commitment to listening to the views of the Republic are contained in the same Article: 'In the interest of promoting peace and stability, determined efforts shall be made through the Conference to resolve 23 any differences.' One commentator considered that the position of Dublin can
be: 'best described as considerably less than joint sovereignty but definitely
than 'mere' consultation.'
The
more
24
conference was to consider four principal areas. These were:
political
matters, security matters, legal matters which included the administration of
and cross-border co-operation (which included economic, cultural, and security matters). Political matters involved efforts to accommodate the two traditions in Northern Ireland, to ensure the avoidance of economic and social discrimination and to consider the possibility of a Bill of Rights. To help secure this equality, the Irish government was to be consulted on the role and composition of agencies involved in this area; namely the Police Authority, the Police Complaints Board, the Fair Employment Agency, the Equal Opportunities Commission and the Standing Advisory Commission on Human Rights. Three principal areas were the subject of security matters: security policy itself, the relations between the security forces and the (Nationalist) community, and prison policy. Article 8 on legal matters focused on the possibility of mixed courts and the question of extradition and extra-territorial jurisdiction. The conference was to have no operational responsibilities in the security field; these would remain with the Chief Constable of the RUC and the Commissioner of the Garda Siochana. A commitment to enhanced cross-border co-operation was justice,
social
made
in Articles 9
and 10 although there was
operation already existed through
little
specific
mentioned. Co-
more informal channels and
via the Inter-
Governmental Council of 1981. In view of the Unionist hostility to a role for Dublin, Article
1
it
should be noted that
included a recognition by the Irish government that any change in the
status of Northern Ireland could only
come about with
the consent of a majority
Northern Ireland and that at the present there was not a majority for a change in status. The British government was to use this statement in efforts to reassure 25 the Unionists about the agreement but in effect it said no more than was conceded at the time of Sunningdale in 1973. Moreover, the failure to remove Articles 2 and 3 of the Republic's Constitution, which claimed sovereignty over in
Conservatives: 1 983 to Anglo-Irish Agreement
1
79
Northern Ireland, fuelled unionist suspicions that rather than helping to perpetuate partition as the British government argued, the conference was part of a process of unification.
Another feature of the conference was
its
flexibility in that
it
could be
superseded by other constitutional developments. Article 2(b) allowed for the reduction of Dublin's input into policy areas
if they
became
a devolved administration. Therefore, rather than
the responsibility of
being a clean break with
previous constitutional initiatives the conference can be seen as having a degree
which preceded it. The devolutionary government in attempting to defuse the expected Unionist opposition. If the conference were so unpalatable one recourse for Unionists was to work for its supersession by accommodating
of continuity with those
initiatives
element was of possible advantage
to the British
Nationalists in a devolved administration.
The
conference was subject to review after three years or earlier
by either government, which allowed them scope and nature of its
to see:
activities are desirable'.
of the
governments.
development
of joint
requested
This implied that the degree of
Dublin involvement could be altered; one interpretation possiblity
if
'whether any changes in the
authority
is
if
that
it
allowed the
favoured
by
both
26
Having detailed the reasons for the establishment of the conference and its it would be instructive to consider the initiative in the context of previous constitutional policy. There is no doubt that the impact of the conference, both within Northern Ireland and without, was enormous, with commentators seeing it as potentially the most ambitious attempt at a settlement 27 since the early 1920s. There are three, and possibly more, elements to the agreement which differentiate it from previous initiatives since direct rule. Firstly, the recognition of the right of the Republic to be consulted in the making of Northern Ireland policy and act as de facto advocates of the Nationalist community went far beyond the Irish dimension as envisaged in the 1973 Council of Ireland or the joint studies in areas of mutual interest which had taken place informally for many years and been formalised in the Intergovernmental Council of 1981. It can be contrasted with the downplaying of an Irish dimension in the period of the Convention, 1975-6, and during the tenure of Rees and Atkins. Even as recently as the end of 1984 Thatcher had emphasised that the way forward lay within the province rather with structures imposed by London or Dublin (see p. 175). Secondly, the need for the consent of the Unionist community to constitutional initiatives which had caused the downfall of the 1974 executive and bedevilled all subsequent attempts at power-sharing initiatives had been circumvented. For the British government the conference had the advantage that it did not need Unionist participation or consent to operate, thus making provisions,
effective opposition to
Thirdly,
the
it
difficult.
28
recognition of the
rights
and
identity
of the Nationalist
British government policy in Northern Ireland 1 96 9-89
180
community was emphasised more than initiatives,
government declared
British
in the previous attempts at constitutional
when
with the exception perhaps of the Sunningdale period that, if
forthcoming,
it
the
would support any future
wish of the majority of the people of Northern Ireland to becorrie part of a united Ireland.
29
Also the fact that the Republic was to be consulted on Northern
Ireland policy was popularly viewed by both communities in Northern Ireland as a 'gain' for the Nationalists.
As Northern Ireland
is
often perceived, especially in
the field of constitutional policy, as a 'zero-sum' game, this was also seen as a
defeat for the Unionists.
However, the conference should not be considered as a total break with past 30 As O'Leary (1987) has noted, two factors have been of importance with the Northern Ireland Office in attempts to frame political settlements. One is termed the internal track (i.e. the securing of the broadest possible agreement within Northern Ireland) and the other the external track (i.e. the maintenance of good relations with the USA and the Irish Republic to avoid international embarrassment). The possibility of devolution which would reduce the role of the conference has been held out to the Unionists and therefore a continuity with policy.
previous attempts to re-establish devolution
exists.
The
external track policy
is
well served given the near-unanimous support for the agreement in Britain, the
USA. 31 Both
Republic and the
the power-sharing policy of
1973-4 and the
Atkins attempt at devolution of 1979-80 were influenced in part by their effect on the international
community and,
despite the
many
differences, the 1985 con-
ference was also informed by the same consideration. O'Leary argues that the
coming together of
'well-established bureaucratic strategies' of the Northern
Ireland Office, incremental political manoeuvres, and explain the signing of the Anglo-Irish Agreement.
SDLP
pressures, best
32
Security policy
The recommendations of the Jellicoe Report (see Chapter 5) formed the basis of a new Prevention of Terrorism Act which received its second reading in late October 1983. The debate on the second reading reflected the positions the parties had adopted in the renewal debates since 1982 when Labour had taken a more critical position, culminating in opposition to renewal in 1983. An amendment was moved by Hattersley which
stated that the:
basis of the Opposition's rejection of the Bill
no
clear proof of the effectiveness of such
Ireland
who
is
that
Lord Jellicoe found
that there can be
measures and that some people
in Northern 33
are opposed believe that the Bill will foster support for terrorism.
He argued that the Bill was being opposed on grounds of both principle, in that involved arbitrary arrest and detention; and practice, in that the
be shown
to
be
maintained that
it
not
and could increase support for terrorism. It was was not inconsistent for Labour to have supported renewal
effective it
PTA could
Conservatives: 1 983 to Anglo-Irish Agreement
until
1983 and now to move the amendment since the
changed. In 1974 that
181
was considered necessary
it
were feared and
justification for the
to prevent the
to prevent a backlash against the Irish
Act had
widespread attacks
community in
Britain.
Now the justification was based more upon intelligence-gathering which Brittan 34 seemed to endorse. Other reasons for the shift to opposition were the seeming permanence of the powers and the terms of the Jellicoe Report which prevented a proper consideration of whether the powers were necessary. Soley, an influential figure in the Labour Party's move towards opposition to the PTA, echoed the belief that the gathering of intelligence rather than the conviction of terrorists was the main purpose of the Act. The government's defence was the same as it had employed over recent years. It was impossible to prove definitely that the Act reduced terrorism but the balance had to be in favour of maintaining the provisions, especially given the support for them from the security forces. The amendment was defeated 302 votes to 144 and the main question was passed by 291 votes to 46 with the Labour front bench abstaining. The new act, the Prevention of Terrorism (Temporary Provisions) Act, became law in March 1984. It was closely modelled on the recommendations of Jellicoe (see Chapter 5). The major changes were that the period of exclusion was limited to three years, which could then be renewed if the Secretary of State thought necessary, and there were improved opportunities for representation. The provisions of arrest were extended to cover international, though not domestic, terrorism unlike the 1976 Act which was limited to terrorism associated with Northern Ireland. Despite the opposition of some Conservatives,
including Atkins,
35
the definition of 'terrorism' in Section 17 (1) included the
'use of violence for political ends'.
This definition seemed to conflict with the
government's contention that the motivation for a criminal act was irrelevant and could appear to give some legitimation for terrorism.
It
also
made
extradition
more difficult. Section 17 (2) made the Act subject to annual renewal, had been the 1976 Act, and Section 17(3) limited its duration to five years.
potentially as
This innovation was suggested by Jellicoe to emphasise the exceptional nature of the legislation but
it is
doubtful whether
the drift to permanence.
However,
in
it
would have any impact
an attempt
in preventing
to allay fears in this area the
'temporary' clause was retained in the tide of the Act despite Jellicoe's recom-
mendation that
it
should lapse.
insufficient information figure,
appointed in
To
counter complaints that parliament had
concerning the operation of the
December 1984, was
to provide
PTA, an independent
an annual review of the Act.
Sections relating to arrest, detention and proscription of organisations were left unchanged in line with the Jellicoe Report. The Labour Party had also developed a more critical stance towards the Emergency Provisions Act (EPA). In the second renewal debate of 1983 36 Soley outlined three principal concerns: the illiberal
permanence of the
legislation
aspects of it which were creeping into British legislation;
37
and the
the need for
British government policy in Northern Ireland 1 969-89
182 flexibility in
descheduling offences; and the possibility that judges in Diplock
courts were becoming 'case hardened'.
There was not conclusive evidence of this
although the decline in the rate of acquittals suggested that this was a possible
development.
Labour abstained on renewal in December 1983 but in the next renewal ofJuly 38 1984 it was to oppose the continuation of the EPA for the first time. Archer, the principal Labour spokesman, explained that Labour did not favour repeal of the Act. Rather, it was protesting about the lack of urgency of the government in 39 arranging a debate on the Baker Report which had been published in April 1984 and the limited terms of the report which had, prior to taking evidence, accepted the need for the continuation of emergency provisions. Labour also accused the government of not giving urgent enough consideration to Baker's recommendations on bail and descheduling (see p. 158). The government comfortably survived the vote by 181-70. The Baker Report largely endorsed the existing provisions of the 1978 Act and the need for the continuation of emergency powers. The 1978 Act covered five major areas: provisions for bail; powers of arrest; the suspension of juries; admissibility of confessions; and detention; and Baker's recommendations will be considered in turn. Baker argued that section 2(2) should be altered so that the initial onus for opposing bail should be on the prosecution. Under the 1978 Act it was the responsibility of the defence to demonstrate that bail could be granted without the risk of further offences being committed or that the defendant would not reappear for trial. Baker felt that this was unnecessary since the judge had wide discretionary powers to deny bail if he considered that the above factors were relevant. Baker also recommended that there should be an automatic right of bail after twelve months remand if the defendant had not been committed for trial. This was in response to the long periods of remand often involved in 40 Diplock cases which were frequently perceived as a form of 'backdoor' deten41 tion; a view with which Baker had some sympathy. Another factor contributing to the length of time taken to complete Diplock trials was that, owing to reasons of security, they could only be heard at the Belfast City Commission and Baker advocated that other courts should be It
was thought
that the different
contained in Sections
1 1
made
available.
powers of arrest
and 13 of the
in
EPA and Section
emergency
12 of the
legislation,
PTA should be
and preferably incorporated into one new Act covering terrorism. 42 was that under the PTA 1976 a suspect could be held initially for forty-eight hours with the possibility of up to five days' extension while under the EPA the holding period was seventy-two hours with no extension permitted. Baker favoured the forty-eight-hour provision with the option of extension and recommended it for either a new EPA or an Act which would consolidate the arrest powers of the two currently existent Acts. A second inconsistency was that arrest under Section 12 of the PTA required rationalised
The
principal difference at present
'reasonable suspicion' compared with 'suspicion' under the
EPA
of 1978; a
Conservatives: 1 983 to Anglo-Irish Agreement
difference which was of
some
1
legal significance.
ableness' should be extended to Section 11 of the
The
EPA
83
criterion of 'reason-
under which the police
operated and to Section 14 which gave powers of arrest to the armed forces.
The
powers of the army should be restricted to those offences related to terrorism rather than including 'ordinary' crime since this was inconsistent with a arrest
policy of police primacy.
Baker rejected both the return of jury trials, owing to the problem of intimidation, and the use of a plurality of judges or the use of a judge with lay assessors. The use of three judges would further slow the whole judicial process
and Baker did not feel that it would be of any practical use. One way to reduce pressure on the Diplock courts was to 'certify out' more offences (i.e. present them in jury courts) especially as many cases had no terrorist connections. Recommendations in this category included those offences which carried a maximum of a five-year sentence, kidnapping and false imprisonment offences, 43 The authority robbery and aggravated burglary, and certain firearms offences. to 'certify out' should be extended to the Director of Public Prosecutions rather than remain the preserve of the Attorney-General. To avoid the potential problem of jury intimidation in descheduled cases the judge should be empowered to discharge the jury if intimidation occurred and try the case himself.
Section 8 of the 1978 Act
made
confessions inadmissible
the use of 'inhuman or degrading treatment'.
The
if they
resulted from
SACHR had argued that the
use of violence and the threat of its use should be specifically ruled as
Baker endorsed
this
exclude a confession
illegal
44
and
recommendation. In practice, judges had discretion if it
was gained
in
to
such a way, but the right of them to do so
should be codified.
The
Section 12 power of detention without
trial had not been used since 1975 1980 although it remained on the statute book. Baker recommended its repeal as it was not consistent with the policy of criminalisation and police primacy and was also an international embarrassment. If the power to
and had lapsed
detain
in
became necessary
in the future
it
should be reintroduced by parliament
rather than by the Secretary of State's reactivation. 45
on 'supergrasses' were detailed above. Among the miscellaneous recommendations was that any new Act should be annually renewable (rather than biannually as at present) and have a five-year duration. This would bring it into line with the new PTA. It should also include a definition of 'terrorism' framed to exclude a political element since this tended to emphasise the motivation of a crime, which Baker considered irrelevant, and had a propaganda value in justifying offences. No recommendation was made concerning the proscription of Sinn Fein as this was considered to be essentially a political decision beyond the scope of the report. The report was debated in late December 1984 at the same time as the second 46 renewal of the 1978 Act for 1984. The government response to the report was
The
report's considerations
1
84
British
government policy
in
Northern Ireland 1 969-89
it. However, Hurd had made no decision on the rationalisation of police stated that the government arrest powers or the increased scope for the Attorney-General to deschedule offences. Neither was it convinced of the need to legislate on the proposed bail
generally favourable given the lack of anything radical in
reforms or the exclusion of threats of violence; the with by the judges' discretionary powers.
latter
Labour was
was, in practice, dealt to divide the
House
because of the government's delay in allowing Baker to be debated and
its
dissatisfaction with the government's response to the questions of the length of
remand, the use of uncorroborated accomplice evidence in 'supergrass' trials (which Baker had defended), and the decline in the acquittal rate in Diplock trials. The Labour front bench accepted the need for emergency powers although Archer went further than spokesmen had previously when he mooted the possibility of a return to jury trial: 'I have been driven to conclude that the time may have to come to restore for all offences the trial method which was 47 normal until eleven years ago.' If there were incidences of perverse acquittals the policy could be reversed but it would demonstrate governmental concern for civil liberties. It is
introduced
it
unlikely that
Labour thought
this feasible or
would have
themselves; the main thrust of its criticism was that the government
was showing neither urgency nor seriousness in its consideration of possible reform. Archer announced that Labour would again oppose renewal with the proviso that:
Government takes the Act away and gives it serious consideration, together with Sir George Baker's Report and what has been said this evening, and then returns to the House
if the
with appropriate proposals,
In
we
will
of course reconsider the situation.
June 1985 the government announced
that a
new
act
48
was
to
be drafted,
although no date for legislation was given. In line with Baker, Section
powers would be repealed which would mean the of the
PTA
permitting a
maximum
1 1
arrest
RUC would rely on Section 12
of a forty-eight-hour arrest period unless
was granted. Section 2(2) was to be amended to put the onus on refusing bail on the prosecution. The new Act was to be of five years' duration and subject to annual renewal. Three of Baker's recommendations were specifically rejected. The power to deschedule, although extended, was to remain with the Attorney-General and not be subject to delegation to the Director of Public Prosecutions. Secondly, the detention clause was to be retained on the grounds that if a situation warranting ministerial extension
its
use occurred during the parliamentary recess the Secretary of State should be
able to reactivate detention. Thirdly, attempts were being
length of
made
to shorten the
and reduce the average length of remand, but Baker's recommendation of the right to bail after twelve months, remand would not be trials
introduced.
Labour again voted against renewal despite an attack on the decision by Mason, a former Secretary of State. Archer outlined three principal reasons for
Conservatives: 1 983 to Anglo-Irish Agreement
the decision; the retention of the
185
power of detention, the counterproductive
nature of the emergency provisions as a whole in that they undermined the fairness of the legal system in the eyes of the minority
of the government to commit
itself to the
community and the failure new and revised
rapid introduction of a
Act.
Economic policy
The Northern
Ireland economy, in line with that of the
a degree of stabilisation in the period
UK generally, witnessed
1983-5. There was a decline in the rate of
closures and job losses in the manufacturing sector, and improved prospects for 49
However, the prospects for unemployment continued to be poor for a combination of reasons including the restraints on public-sector expansion which had created jobs in the late 1970s, the growth in numbers entering the job market and the the significant shipbuilding and aircraft sectors.
improvements
in
continued problems in attracting inward investment.
There were no
radical departures in
economic policy
in this period,
which
is
unsurprising since a Conservative government had been returned. For example, a seventy-acre site within the
boundary of Belfast International Airport was
granted Freeport status in February 1984. Like the enterprise zone experiments
which preceded it, such a policy had the ideological benefit of lifting certain restrictions on the operation of the market but in terms of employment was likely to be marginal. Also, there had been a major reorganisation of the industrial development agencies in 1982 (see Chapter 5) and thus there was little scope for further institutional reform. The strategies of these bodies in 1983-5 largely reflected those which had been developed in the previous administration. These had been revised in the face of the problems and costs involved in relying on the attraction of inward investment, which had been highlighted by the failures of DeLorean and Lear Fan. 50 Therefore the changes in the period 1983-5 were marginal and largely a continuation of those embarked upon in the previous
period.
The poor prospects for inward investment are revealed by the fact that in 1983-4 the Industrial Development Board (IDB) had managed to secure only 51 539 jobs in five projects from this source and approximately 80% of its budget was geared to protecting existing employment rather than financing new projects. Although sometimes accused of placing too little emphasis on indigenous and 52 medium-size sector companies, the IDB could not afford not to compete with other countries and regions of the UK for the limited amount of mobile capital. As there was little hope of further increasing financial incentives to capital (indeed the rate of standard capital grant was reduced from 30% to 20% in March 1985 following a review by the Department of Economic Development), there was a concentration on trying to utilise other methods to attract inward investment. One was the establishment of the 'Northern Ireland Partnership' in
1
86
British
government policy
in
Northern Ireland 1 969-89
October 1983. This was an informal group of over one hundred organisations and companies, including banks, trade unions and the Chamber of Commerce which was to attempt, through international contacts, to counteract the 'image' problem of Northern Ireland which was considered to be a major barrier to attracting overseas investors.
A
second
tactic
53
was an attempt
unencouraging sources.
to
attract
investment from previously
Historically, a large proportion of
inward investment
had come from the USA but the 1980s had witnessed a number of closures of 54 American- controlled plants and the lack of success in attracting Japanese capital made the Far East an obvious target. In May 1985 the IDB opened an information bureau in Singapore and representations resulted in Japanese direct investment in the province for the first time in 1985 and by the end of the year three Japanese-controlled units had opened. In an attempt to further capitalise on these breakthroughs, the IDB signed a co-operation agreement with the Japanese Trust and Banking Company in November 1985 by which the latter would advise Japanese companies on the financial incentives available and the industrial practices prevailing in Northern Ireland. A third strategy pursued was the emphasis the IDB put on the development of joint ventures and licensing agreements between Northern Ireland and foreign companies. This reflected the difficulty there had been in attacting fully integrated productive units, as opposed to branch plants, to the province. Not only had the number of jobs in foreign-controlled firms in Northern Ireland declined in Northern Ireland, but since the successful period of the late 1960s and early 1970s the form of investment had tended to change from new developments to the acquisition of existing companies; a trend reflected in less employment creation and capital expenditure. It was hoped that such joint ventures would facilitate the development of new export markets. The historic dependence on the British market meant that potential recovery might be arrested
if the
economy remained depressed.
British
The IDB had been criticised for failing to emphasise sufficiently the medium-size sector
55
possibility of attracting
but, as argued above,
it
small and
could not afford to ignore the
inward investment. However, there was an awareness of
the potential problems of sponsoring large-scale incoming investment.
Thus
emphasis, following the trend of the early 1980s, was placed on projects in which the quality and longevity of employment appeared good rather than
on numbers
Another problem to be addressed was the relative failure of Northern Ireland, compared with other regions of the UK, to attract new high-tech sector 56 industries. In an attempt to remedy this, the IDB identified medical care and technology, electronics and information technology, manufacturing technology and tradeable services as four of the eight sectors given priority in its mediumterm strategy produced in 1985 57 and encouraged linkages between the alone.
and industry in technological research. In March 1985 a new development fund, Ulster Development Capital, was launched. This was a joint
universities
3
Conservatives: 1 983 to Anglo-Irish Agreement
187
venture incorporating the IDB, insurance companies and pension funds with the
Northern Ireland economy, and, in be seen if Northern Ireland can improve its share of this sector; certainly more 'traditional' sectors such as textiles, clothing/footwear and food/drink/tobacco remain significant in industrial development-assisted employment. objective of channelling local savings into the
particular, the 'newer' sectors. It
The
role of the other
remains
to
development agency, the
LEDU,
followed the pattern
on the service sector and a general expansion to offset the decline in manufacturing and the problems of securing inward investment. Job creations by LEDU increased from 2,550 in 58 1982-3 to 3,658 in 1983^ and to 4,009 in 1984-5. In April 1985 Hurd announced two new incentives for small businesses: a 50% property development grant, and a three-tier marketing grant, and in October an interest-relief grant was introduced to subsidise small firms' borrowing costs. Although the history of the LEDU may be considered largely one of success, especially with
established in the early 1980s: that
is,
a concentration
the low cost of job creation (£4,600 in 1984-5), there
is little
scope for
this sector 59
making significant inroads into unemployment which stood at 21.2% in 1985. As well as direct industrial support, the other main strand of the government strategy for unemployment was the use of direct labour and community schemes and, as in the rest of the UK, schemes to remove young people from the job market and unemployment figures. Of the former, Enterprise Ulster was extended for a further three years from the end of March 1983, and employed approximately 1,500 mostly unskilled workers.
Employment scheme was more
The
Action for
Community
expanded from employing 2,500 in 1983 to approximately 4,000 in 1984, with expenditure increasing from £5.25 million 60 in 1982-3 to £10.81 million in 1983^. However, as with the efforts of the development agencies, such attempts were likely to be little more than palliative given the unchanging problems of Northern Ireland's 'image' and its peripheral 61 location. Crucially, the period of public-sector employment expansion acting as a compensating mechanism was over. The recovery of some of the traditional 62 sectors, such as textiles, clothing and food production following the contraction of 1981-3 was unlikely to affect mass unemployment with its attendant political and social implications. rapidly
Social policy
As with economic policy, there are few developments to record in the field of social policy. This can be ascribed in part to the government preoccupation with the development of negotiations leading up to the 1985 agreement, and also to the relatively uninfluential position of the agencies operating in this field. For example, the FEA Report of 1982— 63 records its dissatisfaction with its staffing levels,
although reports covering this period have an optimistic tone concerning
public awareness of
its
role in
promoting equality of opportunity. Similarly, the
1
British government policy in Northern Ireland 1 969-89
88
S ACHR's influence in important areas of government policy remained marginal; its
long-held advocacy of a
government's timidity
Bill
of Rights was ignored as were
in considering 64
its
criticisms of the
reforms of the Emergency Provisions Act
following the Baker Report.
The
SACHR had previously expressed misgivings about what
it felt to be its and had sought consultations with govern65 ment officials for clarification of its position. In July 1984 Prior stated that he recognised: 'that there is a strong case for amending the commission's statutory
ill-defined
and circumscribed
role
remit, at a suitable legislative opportunity, 66
While the
more
clearly to reflect the
commis-
SACHR was
encouraged by this response, nothing concrete materialised. The report for 1984-5 recorded that no legislasion's
broad concern'.
tive clarification
the protection of
had been forthcoming and expressed disappointment
human
rights in
that:
Northern Ireland and the developing role of the
Commission cannot be afforded a greater priority in terms of staff resources. We therefore remain deeply concerned that the Commission may not be making the contribution it should in
this
important
In January 1985 the
and
legislation
field
of work.
67
SACHR decided to undertake a major review of the agencies
designed to safeguard citizens against political and religious
No such review had was fuelled by the ample evidence that, despite the reforms of the previous sixteen years, the Catholic community still suffered disproportionately from higher unemployment, bad housing and poorer living standards. This was revealed in the 1981 census, the research of the FEA, and reinforced by the Department of Finance and Personnel's Continuous House68 hold Survey of 1985. The government indicated its support for the review which may have stemmed as much from fear of the possibility of American disinvestment if concerted efforts were not made as from altruistic motives. The report 69 was published in November 1987 and will be considered in Chapter 7. However, two preliminary observations will be made. The recommendation to replace the FEA with a new body under the control of the Northern Ireland Office rather than the Departments of Finance and Personnel and Economic Development tends to reinforce the argument that the FEA had discrimination and to ensure equality of opportunity.
previously been carried out and
it
lacked a measure of financial and political support from the government.
Secondly, the Policy Studies Institute workplace survey, conducted on behalf of the
SACHR,
revealed that
85%
of respondents reported that the Fair Employ-
at all on their personnel policies and 61% had no 70 This would knowledge of the 'Guide to Manpower Policies and Practices'. indicate that the FEA's belief in a growing public recognition of its aims and work was perhaps overly optimistic.
ment Act had no impact
Conservatives: 1 983 to Anglo-Irish Agreement
1
89
Conclusion
The
period 1983-5 was dominated by the negotiations which culminated in the
Anglo-Irish Agreement and thus
its
distinguishing feature was the development
of a process which might reap future benefits rather than the enactment of
This process reflected an implicit recognition by the British government that the preceding years of intervention had been insufficient not only to resolve the 'problem' but, with the rise of electoralism within Sinn Fein,
particular reforms.
perhaps also to contain
it.
The
process also marked the formalisation of the
management of Northern
'international'
established between the
UK
and the
Ireland, building
Irish
on the closer
links
Republic following the summits of
1980-81.
The perception that new structures were necessary was widespread among the interested parties during this period: FitzGerald's 'Constitutional Crusade', the
New Ireland Forum and the OUP's 'Way Forward' policy document indicate that there was a consensus that attempts had to be
made
to
break the deadlock.
The
potential failure of, or shortcomings within, any of these blueprints (including the
Anglo-Irish Agreement) does not detract from the fact that, albeit from differing perspectives,
most of the important actors believed the
status
quo of political
stalemate could not go unchallenged.
The
cement bipartisanship at the level of strains between the parties over security policy which increased with Labour opposing renewal of the EPA for the first time, following its opposition to the PTA towards the end of the previous signing of the agreement helped to
constitutional policy.
This contrasted with the
administration.
Notes 1
Anglo-Irish Joint Studies 'Joint Report and Studies'
2
Figures from Flackes 1983 and Fortnight (various).
3
For example, the use of Gaelic
were circumscribed although
4 5
6
in
naming
in practice they
streets
Cmnd 8414
1981.
and the display of the tricolour
were permitted.
for this point and Thatcher's views at the end of 1 984. See Guelke 1984 and Cox 1987 for the US and international perspective. At the time of the agreement in November 1985 no details had been released
See below
although later the
US
government agreed
to
$120 million worth of economic
aid over
three years.
7
Haagerup (Rapporteur), European Parliament Working Document 1-1526/83.
'Report drawn up on behalf of the Political Affairs Committee on the situation in Northern Ireland.'
8
No progress
had been made on the establishment of a parliamentary tier following 1 985 agreement the two governments they would give 'support as appropriate' if the two parliaments agreed to its
the consideration in the Joint Studies of 1 98 1 In the .
stated that
formation. (Article 12).
9
A list of oral and written submissions are included as appendices to the New Ireland
1
1
90
British
government policy
in
Northern Ireland 1 969-89
Forum. Dublin 1984. 10 Economist 5/5/1984 and Fortnight No. 201 May 1984. A unitary state was the preferred option. This was to ensure that Fianna Fail 11 endorsed the report and to allow the four parties to present a united frojit. 12 Cited in Fortnight No. 205 June 1984. 13 Cited in Girvin 1986 p. 157. 14 These officials later played an important role in negotiations leading up to the Anglo-Irish Agreement.
15
Thatcher quoted
16
See Cox op.
17
It
in Fortnight
was suggested
No. 210 December 1984.
85.
cit. p.
in
an interview by a
member
of the Northern Ireland Office that
elements of it were concerned about the unionist response and underestimated greater caution states: 'the
And
it.
is
North
The
belief that the
echoed is
in
an
no more
article
in crisis
felt that the negotiators had Northern Ireland Office would have opted for
by K. Toolis (Fortnight 210 December 1984)
now
than
at
any other point over the
the grey bureaucrats at the Northern Ireland Office
17/12/1985 quoted
Belfast Telegraph
19
Observer 7/7/1985.
20
Gardiner 1975 and Baker 1984 both rejected a
in
know it.'
Connolly and Loughlin 1986
18
who
last 15 years.
p. 10.
plurality of judges for the
Diplock
courts.
The
Flags and Emblems (Display) Act (NI) 1954, which limited the display of the was repealed by the Public Order (NI) Order 1987. 22 'Agreement between the Government of the United Kingdom of Great Britain and Northern Ireland and the Government of the Republic of Ireland' Cmnd 9657 1985.
21
tricolour,
Article 2(b).
23
ibid.
24 25 26
Cox op.
cit. p.
91.
See Tom King cited in Connolly and Loughlin op. cit. p. 156. O'Leary 1987a p. 8. Article 1 referred to, but did not define, the
status of Northern
Ireland.
27 e.g. Connolly and Loughlin op. cit. p. 146. 28 The tactics engaged in by the unionists included a challenge to the legality of the agreement in the high court, attempts to force the government to hold a referendum in Northern Ireland, the mass resignation of Westminster seats so as to recontest them as a referendum, suspension of normal business
committee
to fight the
one-day strike
in
in the
agreement, withdrawal from
March
assembly and the creation of a
district councils
and area boards and
1986, and the presentation of a petition to the Queen.
have been limited especially as
a
The effects OUP, DUP
rifts have developed between and within the and the Alliance Party over which tactics to adopt. Paramilitary action has also been muted, partly due to the distrust of the politicians. See next chapter for details.
HC Vol. 866 Col. 37 10/12/73. O'Leary op. cit. pp. 15-16. 3 Haughey's initial opposition to the agreement has been qualified general popularity of the measure in the Republic. 32 O'Leary op. cit. p. 18. 29 30
33
HC. Vol. 47
34
Brittan ibid. Col. 56.
Col. 57 24/10/1983.
in
response to the
Conservatives: 1 983 to Anglo-Irish Agreement
35
Atkins ibid. Col. 71.
36 37
HC. Vol. 50 Cols 517-571 8/12/1983. This point related
Criminal Evidence
191
extended holding powers of the police
to the
in the Police
and
Bill.
HC.
Vol. 63 Cols 559-81 5/7/1984. 'Review of the Northern Ireland (Emergency Provisions) Act 1978' (Baker
38 39
Report)
Cmnd
The
40
9222 1984.
average length of remand was 46 weeks. (Prior;
HC.
Vol. 63 Col.
562
5/7/1984).
41
Baker Para. 174.
42
A new PTA was introduced at the time of the publication of the Baker Report. A 1986 Amendment Order to the EPA 1978 did extend the Attorney General's
43
power
to 'certify out'
but
it
did not extend to robbery or burglary where firearms,
explosives etc. were used.
44
See security section
45
ibid.
46 47 48 49
HC. Vol. 70 HC. Vol. 70 HC. Vol. 70
50
Financial Times 25/10/84.
51
Financial Times 6/'6/84.
52
Teaguel987p.
53
In 1983 Tate, the chief executive of the
in ch. 5.
Cols 575-650 and 651-72 20/12/1984. Col. 590 20/12/1984. Col. 652 20/12/1984.
Times 16/9/85.
172.
IDB, claimed
that the 'image'
problem of
Northern Ireland had cost 2,000 jobs from new investment from two American companies.
See
also
economic policy section
54
Teague
55
Financial Times 24/10/84.
56
Teague
57
Industrial
op.
op.
cit.
cit.
Table on
in ch. 5.
p. 168.
p. 172.
Development Board. 'Encouraging Enterprise,
A Medium Term
Strategy for 1985-1990' Belfast 1985.
58 59
60 61
1984
HC. Vol. 81 Col. 417 26/6/85. HC. Vol. 74 Col. 1155 7/3/85. HC. Vol. 53 Col. 816 10/2/84. One of these problems was the high a project to bring natural gas
cost of energy in the province. In
from the Kinsale
field in the
and revised proposals were rejected by the government Ireland gas industry was to be run
June 1984 Butler approved the
down at a cost of £97
start
in April 1985.
The Northern
million and a loss of 1 ,000 jobs. In
of a £30 million development programme of lignite
extraction although there are doubts concerning
its
long-term
Northern Ireland. (See Financial Times 4/12/85). 62 Financial Times 6/4/84.
HC 189 Session 1984/85 p. 5. HC 394 Session 1985/86 para. 71.
63
Seventh Report.
64
Eleventh Report.
65
Seech.
66
HC Vol. 64 Col. 655 25/7/84.
67
Eleventh Report op.
5.
cit.
September
Republic was cancelled
para. 7.
viability for
energy needs in
1
British government policy in Northern Ireland 1 969-89
92 68
PPRU Monitor:
Continuous Household Survey, Religion No., 2/85. 1985 (Dept.
of Finance and Personnel).
69 SACHR 'Religious and Political Discrimination and Equality of Opportunity Northern Ireland. Report on Fair Employment' Cm. 237 HMSO, Lotidon, 1987.
70
ibid.
Section 3:52.
in
The The
Conservative administration: Anglo-Irish Agreement to 1989
Constitutional policy
The
period from 1985-1989 can be categorised as one of latency in constitu-
tional policy; this
unsurprising since the agreement of 1985 was a major
is
breakthrough and subsequently events were dominated by the respective parties' attempts to destroy, sustain or modify
it.
In view of the continuing, though
confused and internally acrimonious, opposition to the agreement from the Unionist community
was
that
it
survived.
has been said that the main achievement of the agreement
it
1
It
also provided a conduit
through which disputes between
the respective governments could be resolved or defused, particularly as each
government had the
right to request special meetings to discuss issues of
contention; these normally concerned the elements of security policy which strained Anglo-Irish relations.
2
Despite the lack of progress in talks between the parties involved,
it
would be
a
mistake to assume that serious consideration was not given to possible ways forward. Indeed there was a proliferation of 'talks about talks', policy documents, bilateral
and
multilateral meetings.
The
prospects for progress always appeared
limited since the Unionist opposition to the
The
agreement never looked
to
have the
it was which could permit a reduction in the scope of the agreement. However, it never looked likely that the two principal Unionist parties would offer the SDLP sufficient (i.e. guaranteed seats in an executive) to make the latter believe that devolution was a better option than the continuation of the agreement in its established form. It might be instructive to consider some elements of the series of talks, to sketch a rough chronology and to explain why
resources to force
committed
its
suspension.
British
government reiterated that
to devolution
they were, ultimately, fruitless.
The
series of talks
ment were the most
between the Unionist
politicians
and the British governdepended on
crucial in that any advance towards devolution
the former's preparedness to take a conciliatory line towards the prior to the agreement, the Devolution
SDLP.
Just
Committee of the Northern Ireland
1
94
British
assembly debated sibilities
and
its
third report,
of that of 1974, and
55%
government policy
in
Northern Ireland 1 969-89
which advocated an executive with the responrequiring two-thirds of assembly support
initially
in the longer term. Despite the intervention of Sir Frederick
erwood, the Conservative
Cath-
MEP who acted as intermediary between the parties on
the Committee, the proposals looked unlikely to succeed and O'Leary et
conclude
that: 'at
no stage of
its
bridging the power-sharing gap'.
3
existence did
it
The agreement
[the
Committee] look
effectively
mittee redundant. However, in February 1986 Paisley and
Thatcher
at
Downing Street and
al.
like
made the comMolyneaux met
reacted positively to her pledge to consider the
proposals based on those of the Devolution Committee Report.
It
appeared that
Molyneaux and Paisley were prepared to continue to negotiate while the agreement was in place but back-tracked following pressure from other Unionist representatives and protests from a Harland and Wolff shipworkers' delegation. They undertook not to have further talks with the British government unless the agreement were scrapped. Consent was to be withheld and relations deteriorated as Unionist politicians endorsed a one-day strike held on 3 March 1986. It seems that Molyneaux and Paisley believed, given the solidity of the Unionist community against the agreement, the British government might be prepared to consider a temporary suspension but they could not bring their parties with them 4 unless they won some substantial concession. It has to be remembered that a devolutionary solution not only had to satisfy the two governments and the SDLP but also a substantial section of the OUP, many members of which were not disposed towards devolution, especially the fully-fledged legislative variety.
Further movement was made
less likely by two factors. Firsdy, the Unionist from the British government reflected in the boycott of Westminster and the call in April 1986 by Molyneaux and Paisley for a rates
estrangement strike as part
of a twelve-point plan for
was increasing
division
civil
disobedience; and, secondly, there
among the Unionist community about both
adopt in opposition to the agreement and what should replace include:
DUP
it.
the tactics to
Examples of this
OUP commitment to the disruption of OUP attacks on the excesses of DUP factions, the
criticism of the lack of
council business, publication of a
5
reciprocal
UDA policy
document 'Common Sense'
criticised the position of established
in early
1987 which
Unionist parties, and the endorsement of the
independence option by McCusker (deputy OUP leader) and Robinson (deputy DUP leader) in September 1986, if the agreement remained in place. The impetus for renewed talks was the general election of June 1987. The relatively
low turnout was seen as an indication of the electorate's dissatisfaction
with the Unionist campaign. 6
The Unionist MPs ended their boycott of Westminster and were prepared for talks, with Molyneaux indicating that he would look favourably on an invitation to discussions from Thatcher. Despite the shifting positions and splits in the Unionist community, none of the essentials was changed. Thatcher offered an open invitation in July 1987 to which the Unionists responded positively but confirmed that any successful outcome would
Conservatives: Anglo-Irish Agreement to 1 989
necessitate the replacing of the agreement.
NIO
officials
before
full
on 14
1
On the
95
eve of exploratory talks with
July, Paisley insisted that suspension
would be necessary
negotiations could take place.
The meetings between Molyneaux and Paisley and senior NIO officials in July and August 1987, the first for eighteen months, were officially described as 7 'mildly encouraging' but no comments were released on the contents. Further 'talks about talks' took place at Stormont in mid August and in mid September King met Paisley and Molyneaux in the first ministerial contact since February 1986. The basis for the talks was the publication of 'An End to Drift' by the Unionist Task Force, composed of McCusker (OUP), Millar (OUP) and Robinson (DUP) which had been set up in February 1987 to rethink Unionist strategy. As before, it seemed that an impasse had been reached. The policy document held out the prospect of power sharing of some form with the SDLP if the role of the Republic as advocate of the Nationalist community were reduced or removed. It was unlikely that the SDLP would accept this and there was the additional problem that Paisley immediately denounced power sharing and Molyneaux had no enthusiasm for anything beyond administrative devolution scarcely a 'carrot' for the SDLP. Given this situation both sides were cautious and the talks were no more than exploratory and low-level. An explanation for the resumption of talks may lay in that neither party to them had much to lose. The Unionist campaign of boycott and non-cooperation had done little to discomfort the British government and provoked criticism from the Unionist population and the government was keen to keep open the lines of communication. By the close of 1987 prospects became bleaker as Paisley and Molyneaux moved away from the task force recommendations and the OUP annual conference in November voted against devolution which would include a minority veto and an amendment by Maginnis more favourable to devolution and power sharing was defeated. In December King met Paisley and Molyneaux twice in the fifth and sixth of the series of 'talks about talks'. A further downgrading of the 'End to Drift' Report became apparent when, early in 1988, Paisley and Molyneaux set up a joint working group, reportedly following pressure from King to put forward alternatives to the Anglo-Irish Agreement. 8 At the end of January, proposals were presented to King which more closely resembled the OUP document 'The Way Forward' of 1984 than the Task Force Report with administrative devolution being the most which Molyneaux was prepared to endorse. The response of both the NIO and the SDLP was cool although at the end of January King met the two party leaders to discuss the prospects for administrative devolution. The last in the series of talks between the British government and the Unionist leaders took place at the end of May; the details of the discussions were not released and Molyneaux and Paisley warned that the meetings between the SDLP and Sinn Fein were hindering progress in inter-party devolutionary talks within Northern Ireland. This period marked the end of ten months of relatively regular meetings and with the retreat from the
1
96
British
Task Force (which caused
a
rift
government policy
in
Northern Ireland 1 969-89
between Paisley and
his
deputy Robinson),
devolution and a reduction in the scope, or alteration of the terms, of the
agreement seemed even less likely. Discussions between the Northern Ireland parties proved no more successful. The SDLP and the OUP, represented by two members each, had informal meetings in February and March 1986 which ended with Hume rejecting the Unionist devolutionary proposals.
The stumbling-block was that not only was it who favoured a substantial role for the
unlikely that even those Unionists
minority in a devolved administration
of the
OUP)
could
SDLP would dimension. leader,
'sell'
(e.g.
elements within the
accept an internal settlement
The
UDA,
Maginnis
such a package to other Unionists, but also whether the
'greener' elements of the
if it
meant
SDLP,
a
weakening of the
Irish
including Mallon the deputy
were opposed to such a development. As if to emphasise the polarisation, DUP and the OUP rejected talks with the SDLP on the state of the
both the
Northern Ireland economy in February 1987. Another development which was to militate against the possibility of UnionistNationalist accommodation was a series of talks between the SDLP and Sinn Fein. The first meeting between the party leaders, Hume and Adams, took place in January 1988 and others followed in March, April, June and August of the same year; a total of seven meetings. On 5 September the end of the series was officially announced by the party leaders. The SDLP regretted being unable to persuade Sinn Fein to have the IRA call off its campaign of violence and Sinn Fein declared itself perplexed by the SDLP's perception of Britain's role in Northern Ireland as one of neutrality between the two communities since the signing of the agreement. It is difficult to see what could be achieved by such talks given that the history of militant Republicanism offered little evidence that the armed struggle would be abandoned solely for electoralism. 9 Also, Hume was to attract criticism from members of his own party as well as the Unionist and Alliance parties. It is possible that Hume was unconcerned if he alienated liberal unionist opinion since he either had no real interest in, or saw no real prospect of, devolution and was unconcerned if they felt it was more difficult to negotiate with him after he had met with Sinn Fein. 10 Of lesser significance were occasional talks between the British government and the SDLP. The SDLP seemed content with the existing structure, if not always the substance, of the Anglo-Irish Conference and had
move on
the devolution issue.
There were
little
also tenative attempts
incentive to
by the Republic
overcome Unionist alienation from existing structures. In May 1988 Haughey was prepared to talk to Unionist representatives outside the framework of the agreement although Molyneaux would commit himself to no
to
stated that he
more than an exchange of policy position papers with the Taoiseach. he denied that even stated that the
In early June had been taken and in the same period Paisley would not talk to the Irish government prior to an internal
this initial step
DUP
settlement in the north.
Conservatives: Anglo-Irish Agreement to 1 989
By
1
97
end of 1988, with the review of the agreement due, the succession of above had achieved little concrete. The British government maintained its position of being open to talks without preconditions and in mid October invited submissions for the review which the Unionist parties formally declined on 13 October. The following month Thatcher wrote to the Unionist leaders raising the possibility of reviving the talks which had been suspended in May but no progress was made. As if to emphasise the seemingly endless search for a breakthrough which conflicted with the political realities, the BBC announced in February 1989 that inter-party talks held in Duisberg, West Germany in October 1988 promised a major development; optimism endorsed 11 by the Alliance Party which claimed 'superb progress'. However the SDLP and the Unionist parties denied that agreement on an internal settlement was near and that the 'leaking' by the BBC had helped to undermine the already slight chance of success. The stumbling-block was the same one which had bedevilled negotiations since 1985; the Unionists wanted a 'running down' of the agreement to provide the space for 'talks about talks' while the SDLP rejected any developments which included a weakening of the agreement. The prevailing mood of 1989 was one of pessimism and apathy on the political front. The more moderate of the confessional parties (the SDLP and the OUP) did well by comparison with their direct rivals (Sinn Fein and the DUP) in the local elections ofJune but this did not augur a constitutional breakthrough. The spate of journalistic reviews of Northern Ireland on the twentieth anniversary of the deployment of troops reflected a general pessimism signalled by Rees and Callaghan advocating a suspension of the agreement in August to facilitate political progress. The sterility and inconclusiveness of the bilateral and multilateral talks of 1985-9 is unsurprising. It was increasingly difficult for the Unionist community to negotiate with a united voice since there was no consensus on what could be conceded or what was a preferred constitutional arrangement. The Unionist camp threw up a myriad of ideas in this period including various forms of devolution, integration, independence and new structures for north-south relations and the increasingly vocal campaign for equal citizenship reflected growing disenchantment with the policies and tactics of the OUP and DUP. Neither government felt an internal settlement to be a pressing need especially once it became clear that Haughey, as Taoiseach, was to reverse his hostility to the agreement which he held in opposition and consequently the conference was to the
talks outlined
be maintained.
12
Having charted the basic course of inter-party and party-government talks in period and the reasons for their lack of progress, it is instructive to assess the
this
position of the Conservative government, the response of the
Labour opposition
and the consequent degree of bipartisanship. Crudely, the government position was to 'sit tight' as far as the agreement was concerned. In face of occasional, and sometimes severe, backbench criticism of its operation especially with respect to extradition
problems with the Republic, the government emphasised that the
1
98
British
government policy in Northern Ireland 1 969-89
and the improvein long relations, had to viewed the term. community be Commitment to ment in the agreement was reinforced as it became obvious by mid 1986 that Unionist opposition, while not exhausted, was largely ineffectual and that the Irish government, whichever party was in office, was determined to honour it despite the tensions which periodically arose. The corollary of the government position was the advocacy of devolution as a long-term aim, as expressed in Article 4 of the agreement, and the rejection of integration. To facilitate the former the government consistently repeated its
benefits of the agreement, in terms of the reduction in violence
availability for talks
with any party except Sinn Fein. Partly because of the
pressures on parliamentary time and partly because of the integrationist overtones, procedural changes in the consideration of Northern Ireland legisla-
were rejected. Orders in Council remained the predominant form of legislaand backbench calls for the creation of a Grand Committee to consider Northern Ireland affairs were rejected. tion
tion
These positions
are reflected in the debates
on the annual Extension Orders of
the Northern Ireland Act which provides for the renewal of direct rule.
13
In the
three successive debates of 1986, 1987 and 1988 integrationism was rejected for the following reasons. First,
it
ignored the different history, traditions and party
it would close the door and third there was no evidence that it would achieve widespread acceptance in Northern Ireland. In short, government constitutional policy can be characterised as having three principal features: adherence to the agreement, devolution as a longer-term aim and a consistent rejection of integration. Labour policy also endorsed these three aims, and it was argued in the previous chapter that the agreement had reinforced bipartisanship. However Labour tended to put a different complexion on the agreement, seeing it as part of a process which could, in the long term, lead to the unification of Ireland. This was the expressed hope (it cannot perhaps be dignified as a policy) of the Labour Party as stated in two policy documents: 'New Rights, New Prosperity and New Hope in Northern Ireland' published in April 1987 and 'Towards a United Ireland' of September 1988. As an incentive towards unification Labour was still in the process of developing the concept of 'harmonisation' which included the creation of an all-Ireland economic development authority and increased northsouth co-operation based on integrated policies in areas including social security, tourism, energy and agriculture. In the short term Labour's constitutional policy did not differ significantly from that of the Conservatives, although Labour was keen to contrast its far sightedness with what it considered to be the Con-
structure of Great Britain and Northern Ireland; second, to devolution
servatives'
'crisis
political progress.
Labour's
management' and emphasis on security
official position
of favouring unification by consent and rejection of
the use of violence by Republicans predisposed nationalism.
to the exclusion of
14
However there were
it
towards constitutional
strains in the party fuelled
by the existence of a
Conservatives:
A nglo -Irish Agreement to 1989
199
lobby favouring British withdrawal and sympathy for the aims
support
Sinn Fein. The
for,
of the
activities
IRA were
of, if
prevent Sinn Fein from gaining the support of a majority of Labour alone the
members of
not outright
probably sufficient to activists, let
the Parliamentary party. Furthermore, Labour's
own
organisation and tactics helped to prevent the faster development of the with-
The
drawal or pro-Sinn Fein factions.
use of the block vote at Conference had
and in 1986 Conference Agreement by 4,402,000 to 408,000 on a card vote and in 1988 a motion supporting political and military withdrawal within the lifetime of the next Labour government was defeated on a show of regularly ensured the defeat of withdrawal motions
rejected a motion attacking the Anglo-Irish
The appointment
hands.
McNamara,
of Kevin
a
member
long associated with
support for Irish unification, as shadow spokesman following the defeat of Peter
Archer
in the
draw the
shadow cabinet
elections ofJuly
1987 can be seen as an attempt to emphasis on
sting of pro-Republican dissent within the party given his
unification. It also signified
an attempt to build bridges with constitutional
nationalism in response to the
left's
move towards Sinn
Fein.
15
Irish policy was fragmented and pronouncements gave this impression, was the speech by the deputy spokesman Bell in March 1987 which implied that a future Labour government would consider an early review of the agreement in order to
Another
indication
that
Labour's
inconsistent, or at least that public
secure Unionist support in the event of a
hung
parliament.
Memories of
Callaghan's discredited dealings in 1978-9 and the risk of upsetting the 'green'
lobby within the party ensured that Archer and Kinnock's press secretary quickly
responded and ruled out any deals and any changes agreement. 1985.
The
It
to,
or early review
of,
the
maybe concluded that Labour policy remained little changed from
principal features are that 'unity by consent'
aspiration rather than policy, the
differences with the Conservatives constitutional sphere.
had the
status of
pro-Sinn Fein lobby was marginalised and party
were much greater
in the security
than in the
16
Constitutional stalemate was further revealed in the suspension of the 17
The assembly had never been likely to was periodically boycotted by the OUP and the nationalists had never taken their seats. The day after the agreement was signed an emergency sitting of the assembly passed an emergency motion repudiating all aspects of it. In early December normal meetings and the scrutiny committees of the assembly were suspended and a nineteen-member Committee on the Government of Northern Ireland was established to consider opposition to the agreement, an action which precipitated a boycott by the Alliance Party members. In mid March 1986 a formal resolution was carried to wind up the Devolution Report Committee (the third report of which had appeared just prior to the agreement in October 1985) and to refuse to carry out the scrutiny of draft
Northern Ireland Assembly find a devolutionary
Northern Ireland
in 1986.
consensus as
it
legislation.
The refusal of the assembly to carry out its statutory functions obviously put its
200 future in jeopardy. possibility of
Twice
British
government policy in Northern Ireland 1 969-89
May
1986 King warned the assembly about the
in
suspension and on 27
refused his invitation to discuss refer draft orders
its
May
the leaders of the Unionist parties
future. Until this time,
and consultative documents
to the
King had continued
assembly but there was
to
little
On 19 June the Northern Ireland Assembly (Dissolution) Order 1986, taken together with the Northern Ireland Act 1974 (Interim Period Extension) Order 1986 was approved by the Commons with Labour supporting the government. The Order dissolved the existing prospect of a revival of its proper functioning.
assembly but did not abolish the legal basis for the establishment of a possible future assembly. This was consistent with the long-term
aim of restoring some
form of devolution to Northern Ireland. Another and as yet uncompleted constitutional development was progress discussions concerning the establishment of Anglo-Irish parliamentary
Such
a
body had
its
genesis in the Anglo-Irish Studies report of 1981
in
tier.
(Cmnd
8414) which had, in turn, originated in the Anglo-Irish summit of December 1980 between Haughey and Thatcher. Article 12 of the Anglo-Irish Agreement left
the decision concerning further developments to the respective parliaments
November 1988 the steering committee proposals were presented to the British government. Twenty- five members each from the Dail and the Commons would compose the group. Each delegation would have a majority from the ruling party in the respective legislature with the recommended composition from Westminster being 13 Conservatives, 8 Labour, 3 Northern Ireland and 1 other member. Refined proposals presented in February 1989 recommended that more Northern Ireland members undertaking to give support as appropriate. In
could be allocated with agreement from the British parties, that the group would
meet biannually, be purely consultative and have the authority to produce reports and recommendations. At the time of writing the group has yet to be established and it is likely that Unionist MPs will boycott its operation, although it has no formal connection with the agreement.
Of the conference
18
meetings themselves, the two governments, represented by
the Secretary of State for Northern Ireland and the Minister of Foreign Affairs of
on the topic under met thirty times between the initial meeting and the end of 1989. The frequency of meetings depended both upon relations between the two govern-
the Republic and other ministers and officials depending discussion,
ments, as either could
call for a special convening to discuss matters of urgency, and also upon internal political developments. For example, general elections tended to reduce the frequency of conference meetings. The longest period
without a formal meeting was approximately three months. Full details of the
meetings were not disclosed, although the press office of the Northern Ireland Office released a areas were those
summary of topics discussed. 19 The most regularly discussed of security, upon which the British government tended to place
emphasis, and the administration of justice in the north and public confidence in it
which was
a perennial concern of the Republic's representatives.
Other topics
1
Conservatives: Anglo-Irish Agreement to 1 989
which
featured
regularly
were
fair
20
employment and anti-discrimination
measures, economic co-operation and the possibility of a
of rights for
bill
Northern Ireland. A judgment on whether the conference has been a success or failure in its first four years depends largely on whether one takes a short or long-term perspective. Political opponents and critics tend to focus on the former and the lack of political
and security progress
in
Northern Ireland. The
state
of
Anglo-Irish relations in the absence of the agreement remains a matter of conjecture. However, two judgments can be categorically made. First, the
agreement
in
itself
did
not prevent disputes
and tensions between the
governments. Relations reached their nadir over the extradition question and
207 fL). The government of the Republic felt that the government consistently placed too much emphasis on the security aspect of the problem and insufficient on police-community relations and other questions affecting the minority community. Second, the conference was well suited to absorb these strains and it was never in doubt that the agreement would survive. The Republic was unlikely to relinquish its formalised input into Northern Ireland policy and Fianna Fail, following Haughey's volte-face, became as committed to the agreement as its Fianna Gael signatories. A principal advantage for the British remained that it helped to insulate the government from international criticism by the incorporation of the Republic the Stalker affair (see p. British
into policy formulation.
Under
the terms of the agreement
three years. In October 1988 King,
its operation was on behalf of the
to
be reviewed
after
British government,
invited submissions. The Unionists refused the offer and stated that they would have nothing to do with mere tinkering. The review was published in late May 1989 and concluded that 'no fundamental change' was required at present (para. 28). In light of the disagreements between the governments procedural changes were recommended in an attempt to forestall the development of disputes. These included a regular schedule of meetings (as had developed in 1988) which would allow a more systematic consideration of forthcoming developments, an informal ministerial meeting at least once a year and scope for widened ministerial participation to increase the range of topics of mutual interest covered in conference. To emphasise the positive work of
the conference para. 6 undertook to publicise
more
effectively the discussions
that took place.
The
other points covered in the review include
commitment
to devolution
by the two governments, recommendations for greater recognition of the rights and identities of the two traditions in Northern Ireland, progress in fair
employment
legislation
parliamentary
Body and the welcoming of the establishment of the Fund for Ireland. In essence, it was clear that no radical
International
departure
from
the
and
existing
towards
form
the
establishment
of Anglo-Irish
of
relations
the
was
Inter-
under
202
British
government policy
in
Northern Ireland 1 969-89
consideration and that the emphasis remained on long-term amelioration.
Security policy
The
period 1985-9 was in large part dominated by security considerations; the
stalemate in constitutional developments and the continuation of violence meant that
much government time and legislation was devoted to security measures. As
in previous chapters the focus will be
on emergency
legislation
laneous measures taken in an attempt to limit terrorist
The
Prevention of Terrorism Act had been limited to
new
and the miscel-
activity.
five years'
duration in
by 1989. It was still subject to annual 20 saw a reiteration of established renewal and the three debates of 1986-8 positions by both government and opposition. Labour consistently opposed 1984, thus necessitating
legislation
renewal on the grounds that the legislation was both wrong in principle in infringement of civil liberties and unnecessary in practice. majority of those arrested under the Act,
shadow
Home
fears that the
95%
The
its
fact that the vast
according to Kaufman, the
Secretary, in the debate of 1987 were not charged gave rise to
PTA was
with the remaining
used for harassment and normal legislation could deal
5%.
Labour was also critical of the government's refusal to let lapse the exclusion powers of the 1984 Act despite the recommendation of the independent reviews presented by Phillips and, from 1986, Viscount Colville. The government also rejected Viscount Colville's proposal in the 1988 renewal that the extension of
detention beyond the
initial
courts rather than the
Home Secretary. The government position remained that,
forty-eight hours should
be the responsibility of the
PTA were necessary and 21 Labour were in power it would risk repeal. The new PT Bill, which had to become law by March 1989 to prevent the powers lapsing, received its second reading on 6 December 1988. The principal measures were unchanged including those of proscription, forty- eight hour detention with up to five days' extension at the discretion of the Home Secretary, arrest powers, port controls and exclusion for up to three years. Three main changes from the 1984 Act were made. First, the new Act was to be of indefinite duration, not limited to five years, although annual renewal was to be retained. Second, remission in Northern Ireland was reduced from a maximum of half the sentence to one third for those sentenced to more than five years for a scheduled offence. Those on conditional release convicted of a scheduled offence would have to serve first any unexpired period of remission from the previous sentence. Third, and most significantly, measures designed to prevent the flow of money or
while terrorism continued, the provisions of the
doubted that
if
property to terrorist organisations by 'laundering' via legitimate businesses were
introduced which gave the courts greater powers to investigate accounts and seize assets,
and changed the onus of proof on to the defendant to explain the Hurd had announced such changes in September 1988
source of such monies.
Conservatives: Anglo-Irish Agreement to 1 989
in
response to
RUC
203
concerns that a significant proportion of paramilitary
funding came from ostensibly legitimate companies. Such legislation had a
precedent in the attempts to deal with the finances of those suspected of drug operations.
It
also
became an offence
to
handle money for terrorist organisations
although the effectiveness of such measures were likely to be limited given the increased sophistication of paramilitary financing.
The passage of the Bill was marked by acrimonious disputes between the government and opposition and by a confused stance from Labour which strained relations between its front bench and some backbenchers. Apart from its general opposition to much of the Act, Labour focused on the failure of the government to respond quickly to a European Court of Human Rights ruling of November which found that the extended period of detention contravened the convention article which required a judicial element to be introduced as soon as possible following arrest. On 22 December Hurd stated that the government wished to meet the European Court requirement but this would require more 22 time in which to make arrangements with the judiciary. In the interim, a temporary derogation would be posted which might later be made permanent. Labour's concern was raised in the second reading and later manifested itself in the committee stage in January 1989. As well as criticism of arrest powers and executive control of extended detention, Labour attacked the government for refusing to accept Colville's recommendations concerning the ending of exclusion orders and dropping the offence of withholding information which might be of assistance in preventing the commission of terrorism by another person. In consequence, Hattersley moved an amendment declining a second reading for the Bill, stating the powers 23 are 'wrong both in principle and in practice'. However, when the amendment was defeated by 3 1 1 votes to 199 the Labour front bench chose to abstain on the second reading on the grounds that it supported the clauses which were designed to curtail terrorist funding. This provoked protest from the left of the party which failed to
to the
understand the policy of abstention in
PTA.
Forty-three Labour
light
members voted
of party policy of opposition
against the second reading and
two of the rebels, Short and Bennett, resigned junior shadow cabinet positions in protest.
A second reading was given by 305 votes to 45. Hogg, Home Office Minister, change in detention procedures
In committee, inter-party disputes continued.
informed the committee that there was no
likely
was a lack of time to introduce an element of judicial review before the Bill. Labour accused the government of reneging on an agreement to bring in an amendment complying with the European ruling; in turn the government accused Labour of delaying the passage of the Bill after having agreed not to be obstructive. Labour denied that it had agreed a timetable for the committee stage. Sheerman and Archer moved amendments respectively to remove exclusion orders and keep remissions to a maximum of half the original sentence. Both were defeated without a vote being taken. Hattersley moved an
since there
completion of the
204
British
amendment
government policy in Northern Ireland 1 969-89
which would bring the legislation into line with the European Court ruling but this was defeated by 241 votes to 134. On 23 January the government won a majority of 272 to 214 authorising the use of the guillotine and on 30 January the Bill received a third'reading and was carried 235-134 with Labour opposing. The new Prevention of Terrorism (Temporary Provisions) Act came into force on 23 March 1989. The other major piece of security legislation, the Northern Ireland Emergency Provision Act was also under review. The last Act had been passed in 1978 and the government was pledged to reconsider the legislation in light of the major review by Baker in 1984. Labour maintained its opposition to the legislation, a limiting total detention to four days,
position adopted in 1984, in the biannual renewal debates. Prior to the
new bill
being introduced in 1987, minor changes were introduced in the Northern Ireland (Emergency Provisions) Act 1978
(Amendment) Order 1985. This
widened the discretion of the Attorney- General to certify that in respect of particular cases offences should not be treated as scheduled offences.
Those
covered included kidnapping, false imprisonment and offences which carried a penalty of less than a five-year sentence. The government was being somewhat cautious since three of Baker's recommendations were rejected. 'certify
The authority to
out' was not extended to cover the offences of robbery or aggravated
was to remain with the Attorney-General and not extended to the DPP on the grounds that the former was directly responsible to the Commons. There was to be no provision for a jury to be discharged in a 'certified out' case if the judge believed it subject to harassment or intimidation. The government
burglary and
it
move ran the risk of bringing the courts into disrepute. The Order was approved on 16 January 1986 with Labour support. In June 1986, during the second continuance Order of the EPA, the government outlined its plans to revise the Act and in December of that year a second reading of the new Bill was presented concurrently with the third continuance Order 1986. The new Bill may be considered as a 'mixed bag' and thus provoked an ambivalent response from the opposition and the civil liberties lobby. This was
believed that such a
in many respects provisions of the Bill improved the rights of the arrestee and mitigated the more oppressive aspects of the existing legislation. However at the same time this was partly influenced by the fact that it was becoming institutionalised. It was increasingly unlikely that the legislation would be repealed in the foreseeable future and the gap between emergency legislation and ordinary 24 legislation which applied to the rest of the UK was closing. The gradual slide of emergency legislation into permanence was a concern that opponents had frequently voiced and the 1987 Act supported their fears. To consider these points in turn. The more liberal aspects of the Bill included the requirement of 'reasonable' suspicion in the exercise of arrest and search powers replacing 'suspicion' only in the 1978 Act, the reduction of the maximum
because
period of detention for a suspect without further Ministerial authority from
seventy-two to forty-eight hours, the statutory right of access to a solicitor within
Conservatives: Anglo-Irish Agreement to 1 989
forty-eight hours of arrest
and the
a friend or relative of their
205
right of a suspect at the time of arrest to inform
whereabouts.
Two other important changes were
the
1978
onus of proof
in the granting of bail reverting to the prosecution: in the
legislation the
onus was placed on the defendant's counsel to demonstrate that would not be breached and this had been criticised by
the conditions of bail
Baker. Second, the safeguards relating to the admissibility of confession evi-
dence were increased. It was made explicit that confessions obtained by the use or threat of violence were not admissible and that confessions could be excluded
had exercised this do so had not previously been codified. Lest it be thought that the government had embraced a new-found liberalism, aspects of the Bill caused concern for the Labour opposition and other interested parties, including the S ACHR and the government of the Irish Republic. Archer, the Labour spokesman, stated that Labour would not oppose the second reading
by a judge
in the interests of justice. In practice judges
discretionary
power but
their right to
given the positive aspects of the Bill outlined above but would, rather, press for
amendments
in
committee. Specific concerns included the change from
biannual to annual renewal, which indicated the further institutionalisation of the legislation, the retention
of the Section 12 detention powers despite the fact that
they had not been used for twelve years and the refusal to introduce three judges in
Diplock courts. King had argued that a plurality of judges was unnecessary
given the safeguards of the automatic right of appeal and the requirement of a written record of the judge's decision. Bell, Labour's deputy spokesman,
believed that the
Crown Law
Officers had advised Thatcher against the intro-
duction of three- judge courts.
Concerns over the lengthy periods of remand which Labour had raised
recommendation
in previous
in
scheduled offence cases,
renewal debates, had led to Baker's
remand should be automatically limited
to twelve months. government rejected this as it could be 25 exploited by defendants to slow down or prevent cases coming to trial. The SACHR, in its annual report for 1986-7, echoed concern over the retention of detention powers and expressed dissatisfaction that the arrest powers were not restricted to reasonable suspicion of involvement in a scheduled offence. Other criticisms covered the lack of clarification of what constituted reasonable force in the use of firearms by the security forces, the fact that the Attorney-General was not permitted to deschedule any offence as he saw fit and that emergency powers had not been consolidated in one Act. Having rejected Baker's recommendations concerning the maximum period of remand, measures were taken to expedite bringing cases to court and the hearing of them. The RUC and DPP reviewed procedures and the number of staff involved in the preparation of files was to be increased, scheduled offences were to be tried at Crown Courts other than Belfast and the Secretary of State was empowered to set time limits on preliminary proceedings in scheduled offence cases. Remand prisoners had to be
that
Scott, King's deputy, stated that the
taken to magistrates court every twenty-eight days rather than seven days as
British government policy in Northern Ireland 1 969-89
206
previously; the former requirement
magistrates were often not
empowered
was somewhat of a formality because to grant bail.
aimed
were
tightening restrictions on at These included strengthening the law concerning support for proscribed organisations to bring it into line with the PTA 1984 and putting more groups into the category of those about which it was an offence
Miscellaneous
provisions
paramilitary activity.
to collect information likely to to
become
be of use
to terrorists. Security
companies were
subject to an annually renewable licence issued by the Secretary of
State, a provision to take full effect
from the beginning of 1988. This was an
attempt to deal with the problem of paramilitary protection rackets acting
under the guise of security businesses. To facilitate a more considered appraisal of the operation of the EPA an independent annual review was established as had existed for the PTA since 1985 and the government committed
itself to a
regular publication of statistics relating to the Act's
operation.
The Labour
response was to support the second reading because of the
improvements of the suspects'
move amendments
in
rights
committee.
detention powers and to limit
defeated and Powell, the
OUP
in arrest powers and to remove the Section 12 maximum of 110 days were
and safeguards
New
clauses to
remand to a member, introduced
a clause to increase the
number of scheduled offences which could be 'certified out' which suffered the same fate. On 8 April the Bill received a third reading with no vote being taken.
Although the Act had a five-year duration and was subject
to
annual
renewal, the balance of the 1987 changes indicated that the legislation was
becoming more permanent. The attempt
to balance additional police
powers
with (formally) increased safeguards for suspects/defendants and a code of practice
for
the
operation of the powers emphasised the similarity with
'normal' legislation, particularly the Police and Criminal Evidence Act 1984.
Some
of the formal safeguards were subject to restriction.
The
right of the
suspect to have someone informed of their whereabouts could be delayed by
up to forty-eight hours by an officer of the rank of superintendent or above and solicitor-client consultations were, in practice, subject to delay and held within the sight and hearing of a uniformed officer.
Labour concerns that the government was too cautious in its reforms and it relied overmuch on security measures in its Northern Ireland policy persisted after the passage of the 1987 Act. In the renewal Order of 1989, presented in March, McNamara accused the government of political lethargy, reliance on a containment policy and of ignoring concerns, expressed by the SACHR. Specific Labour disquiet focused upon the retention of detention powers, the problem of lengthy remand, the lack of a plurality of judges and 26 the recent incursions upon the suspect's right to silence. The government's consideration of allowing certifying in and the possibility of making that
Conservatives: Anglo-Irish Agreement to 1 989
207
fatal shootings by members of the was not sufficient to quell Labour criticisms and the Order was opposed. However, the government won a comfortable majority of 239 votes to
manslaughter charges available in cases of security forces
118.
In addition to refining the legislative basis for the fight against terrorism, the
second main weapon of the British government was the improvement of crossborder co-operation with the Republic. At an operational level this seems to have
improved in the period 1985-9 with substantial searches and arms finds executed by the Gardai and the Irish Army and frequent discussions within the Conference, often with the Chief Constable of the RUC and the Commissioner of the
The other principal area of inter-state co-operation was and the British government hoped that the agreement would facilitate developments following the Republic's commitment in 1985 to accede to the European Convention on the Suppression of Terrorism (ECST). However, extradition was to remain a politically sensitive issue in the Republic and was to be the cause of the most strained relations between the two governments in Gardai
in attendance.
that of extradition
this period.
Legislation had been passed in 1975 and 1976 in the two countries to tackle
problem of bringing charges for crimes committed outside the jurisdiction of where the fugitive now resided. This legislation was essentially a compromise and an ineffective one; a result of Irish members of the commission rejecting the
extradition for political offences including those of a terrorist nature.
The
effect
of the Irish legislation, the Extradition (European Convention on the Suppres-
was to restrict the scope of the political offence government had originally refused to sign the ECST in 1977 because it conflicted with the reasoning of the Law Enforcement Commission. By the mid 1980s there had been a change of heart, for what seems to have been two main reasons. First, the fact that the Irish government had a formal input in Northern Ireland policy made it politically easier to 'sell' the traditionally emotive policy of extradition to the UK. Second, the nature and savagery of sion of Terrorism) Act 1987
exemption.
The
Irish
McGlinchey case, seemed to predispose the courts A Supreme Court ruling of 1985 reversed the conclusions of the 1974 commission and found that it would be unconstitutional to exempt from extradition those charged with terrorist offences
certain crimes, especially the to reject the claim
arising
of the political offence.
from the Northern Ireland
conflict.
Subsequent
cases, including
Quinn,
Russell and Shannon, reaffirmed this change in judicial attitudes. Association
with republican paramilitary groupings
became
a reason for the non-application
of the political offence exception rather than a reason for
These developments allowed the Republic
its
to sign the
February 1986. In view of this change of policy and
application.
Convention on 24
it was would be included. Implementation was suspended until December 1987 by when the Republic hoped that further reforms in the administration of justice would be made in Northern Ireland. It
only to be expected that safeguards
its
political sensitivity
British government policy in Northern Ireland 1 969-89
208
does not seem that any formal quid pro quo was agreed with the British government. FitzGerald was quoted as having believed that extradition develop-
ments were
tied to the introduction of three judges in the
Diplock courts
although Peter Barry, Fine Gael Foreign Minister and representative at the conference, denied that there was such an understanding. Extradition
(Amendment) Act 1987 was passed which
27
Additionally, the
limited the provisions of
the principal legislation to one year, with the possibility of renewal. Part 3 of the
Amendment Act covered
extradition to the
UK and required that the Attorney-
General be provided with a summary of the evidence against the person to be extradited. The British government believed that only a warrant and a note confirming that sufficient evidence existed were necessary in exchanges between the two law officers. This was to prove a matter of contention in the
Ryan case
overcome the political offence obstacle the British government may be frustrated by the strict interpretation by the Irish 28 courts of the formalities and technicalities concerning extradition procedures. Some evidence of the difficulties and the different governmental emphases of what was required before ratification arose in December 1986. The Irish government stated that ratification could be delayed unless the Northern Ireland judicial system was reformed and Dukes, the Fine Gael Justice Minister, said that changes did not so far live up to those envisaged at the time of the agreement. He and Barry raised the three judge issue at the conference meeting of 8 December to which King responded with talk of 'great practical difficulties'. Subsequently it would become clear that the UK would not shift on this point; neither the government law officers nor the Northern Ireland judiciary were (see p. 209).
It is
possible that having
disposed towards a plurality of judges.
The
accession of
Haughey
as
Taoiseach
in
March 1987 threatened
further
complications given the existence of a pro-Republican lobby in Fianna Fail. At the end of March Haughey declared that the legislation prepared by Fine Gael would be examined to see if changes were necessary before it took effect in December 1987 and this review resulted in the Amendment Act. Throughout most of 1987 it appeared that the law would not be ratified by the appointed time as
Haughey remained
critical
of the administration of justice in the north 29
The Remembrance Day bombing at Enniskillen put pressure on the Irish government to ratify extradition arrangements. Kinnock told Haughey that ratification should not be linked to the quid pro quo of reforms in the north and King voiced governmental impatience although he did not directly link the two issues.
when he questioned
need for involving the Irish Attorney-General in the which formed part of the Amendment Act which went before the Dail in November 1987 and was narrowly passed. 30 The legislation was ratified in December 1987 and a year later the Dail approved a motion 95-57 making permanent the extradition procedures. These developments failed to repair relations between the two governments as Britain the
scrutinising of warrants
felt
the Republic placed
it
in a least
favoured position by unilaterally imposing
Conservatives:
A nglo -Irish Agreement to 1989 made
conditions which
extradition
more
209
difficult
while the Republic
ponsibility for difficulties lay with Britain for not
requests.
31
A series
and Glenholmes details,
felt
res-
making detailed enough
of failed extradition attempts, including the Burns, O'Reilly
due
cases,
to defective warrants or irregularities in procedural
increased tensions between the two governments and illustrated that the
Irish courts
tended to apply the
letter
of the law as the political offence exemption
narrowed.
new low
with the Ryan case in late 1988. Ryan, an Irish Belgium on suspicion of IRA involvement. Belgium priest, had been arrested in Britain and repatriated him to Ireland. Britain his extradition to had refused extradition from Ireland but this was initially refused due to his attempted Relations reached a
inaccuracies in the presentation of warrants, according to the Irish Attorney-
General
who
Murray,
incompetence.
32
In a
accused
Commons
the documentation sent by his office
The
his
was
Mayhew
of
December, Mayhew denied
that
British
statement of
1
counterpart
insufficient or improperly presented.
only difficulty he conceded was the omission of the date from the chief
clerk's certificate
which accompanied the warrants and
this oversight
was
promptly corrected. Ryan's extradition was refused on the 13 December on the
grounds that publicity
fair trial.
The
the implied criticism of British justice
of the safeguards included in the
The
and comments by Thatcher had government reacted angrily to and argued that such a reason was not one
in the British press
prejudiced the chances of a
British
amendment
to the Extradition Act.
case provoked Conservative backbench criticism of the Irish government
and of the agreement itself. Thatcher defended the
latter
and argued that it was a
channel through which to press the Irish to reform the extradition law. At the conference meeting of 14 December, King formally asked for a review of extradition procedures. In response,
Lenihan and Collins, the
Irish Justice
Labour had had proved inadequate and rarely used which was one reason why the British government had been eager to improve extradition arrangements as part of the Anglo-Irish Agreement. It can be argued that the storm over extradition was out of all proportion to its relevance and importance within the overall security policy of the government. Minister, urged greater use of extra-territorial legislation which also advocated.
However,
this legislation
Despite the presence in the Republic of 'known' terrorists,
if
extradition pro-
cedures worked faultlessly they would have had marginal significance on the
problem since most Republican extradition
seemed
to
ment, and especially
activists are based in the north. However, assume an almost symbolic importance. For the governfor some backbenchers and Unionists opposed to the
agreement, the litmus test of the Republic government's commitment to the anti-terrorist drive
was
ratifying legislation, the
willingness to facilitate extradition.
The
delay in
on this commitment. From the Irish standpoint, British and the prejudgement of Ryan smacked of the residual anti-Irish and
case threw doubt criticism
its
procedural niceties and Murray's statement in the Ryan
210
British
government policy
in
Northern Ireland 1 969-89
Together with other seemed to confirm to the Irish that the British government saw the Northern Ireland problem largely, if not solely, in security colonial mentality
which existed
insensitive decisions (see p. 217)
terms.
in British political circles.
it
33
The
security developments so far considered
had a continuity with those of
preceding administrations and the development of Anglo-Irish relations. By contrast there was also in this period a series of ad hoc responses to the failure of existing policy to deal with both the incidence of terrorism political
and well-entrenched
support for Sinn Fein. These measures were to reinforce the criticism by
government that the government was concerned essentially On 12 October 1987 the NIO published a discussion paper 'Elected Representatives and the Democratic Process in Northern Ireland'. This was a response to the problem posed by Sinn Fein participation in local councils since the winning of fifty-nine seats in 1985. Unionist councillors
Labour and the
Irish
with the security dimension.
had complained of the inconsistency, not to say hypocrisy, of the government which expected Northern Ireland representatives to discharge functions in the council chambers with Sinn Fein members when it refused to meet them itself. Also, the government was concerned that elected representatives were free to express generalised support for Republican violence;
support would have
but in practice
The paper
made
council
this legislation
members
liable to
more
specific soliciting of
prosecution under the
considered four responses: proscription of Sinn Fein, an oath of
allegiance, extended disqualification for prospective council
members
convicted
of offences and a declaration eschewing violence as a condition of taking
The
EPA
was seldom used.
paper's preferred option was for the declaration.
incorporated into the Elected Authorities (NI)
Bill
The
office.
proposals were
which received
its
second
December 1988. Since the publication of the discussion paper pressure had mounted for new initiatives following the violence of summer 1988 and in particular the bombing of a coach of troops near Ballygawley. Clauses 1 reading on 5
and 2 of the
Bill dealt
with the extension of the district council franchise to
include categories excluded under 1962 legislation; these included citizens of the
who were not commonwealth citizens and 3-7 contained the details of the Declaration. It was to cover candidates for assembly and district council elections and those co-opted to fill casual vacancies. If elected, members: 'will not express support Irish
Republic resident in the North
the wives of servicemen. Clauses
for or approval of proscribed organisations or acts of terrorism
.
.
.
connected
with the affairs of Northern Ireland'. Clause 6 defined behaviour which would constitute a breach of the declaration. five
years disqualification
if
It was on application
to
be a
to the
offence with a penalty of
civil
High Court
a
breach of the
declaration were upheld.
The
Bill
provoked much
criticism. Unionists
wanted
offence with prosecution the responsibility of the
onus on councillors
to bring cases
a
breach made a criminal
DPP. A
and put themselves
civil
at risk
offence put the
from republican
Conservatives: Anglo-Irish Agreement to 1 989
211
attacks. Labour considered the proposals flawed on several grounds. The Bill would be exploited by Sinn Fein for propaganda as an attack on free speech and it was unnecessary since incitement to violence and support for terrorism were already criminal offences and it would place the judiciary in an invidious position. Marshall, the Labour shadow spokesman, believed it would be ineffective since Sinn Fein would be happy to sign the declaration while supporting IRA activity and he accused the government of presenting ill-conceived legislation because of the need to be seen to be doing something. McNamara denounced the proposals as misconceived, futile, unnecessary and likely to strengthen the paramilitary
case.
Labour's opposition was mitigated by
its
approval for the clauses of the Bill
An amendment to oppose the was defeated and Labour abstained on the second reading which was carried by 274 votes to 41 The third reading on 26 January 1989 received a majority of 98-21 with opposition from Northern
extending the
district
council
franchise.
declaration but to support the other clauses
.
Ireland that
members; Nationalists opposing the declaration and Unionists angered
breach of it was not to be made a criminal offence.
must be concluded that the Act, like proscription clauses in emergency was largely presentational. It indicated the government's distaste for Sinn Fein rather than being a practical attempt to deal with problems in district councils. The lack of concern shown by Sinn Fein, the vagueness of the declaration and the refusal to involve its own law officers indicate that the legislation would be of limited worth. A second measure aimed at curtailing publicity for the Republican cause was the broadcasting ban on Sinn Fein announced in October 1988. Some commentators have detected the increased influence of the Prime Minister in Northern Ireland policy in this period which provoked intra-governmental tensions. To formulate responses to Sinn Fein and the IRA, she utilised a highly restricted ministerial committee to push through her preferred options which provoked differences with Hurd, the Home Secretary, who had reservations It
legislation,
about the measures.
34
BBC and IB A from broadcasting direct statements by representatives of proscribed organisations, Sinn Fein, Republican Sinn Fein, and the UDA and also by persons whose statements supported or invited support for these organisations. This action was justified, Hurd argued, because such statements were offensive to viewers and terrorists drew support and sustenance from such broadcasts. On 2 November a motion was presented to the Commons to approve the October directive. Hurd enlarged on his earlier statement by arguing that TV and radio access by supporters of violence spread fear and the media were being used to deliver indirect threats. As a concession to balance, the ban on direct reporting would be lifted for the duration of election campaigns and in parliamentary proceedings. Hattersley, Labour's Home Affairs spokesman, moved an On
19 October
requiring
them
Hurd
to refrain
issued a notice to the chairmen of the
212
British
amendment not
government policy
to support the restrictions
in
Northern Ireland 1 969-89
on the grounds
were
that they
incompatible with a free society and likely to assist rather than frustrate terrorists
who would
find
them
to
be a propaganda coup.
The government
position
was
untenable; the fact that such broadcasts caused public offence was insufficient
ban and the claim that it would help to defeat terrorism was absurd. Other Labour speakers saw the genesis of the measure in a combination of Thatcher's authoritarian instinct and the ill-conceived policy of being seen to be doing something - the illusion of activity. This was echoed by two Conservative members, Townsend and Shepherd, who considered the measures illiberal and hasty. The illiberal aspect was reinforced as the ban applied to all subjects, not only terrorism, if the speaker represented one of the affected organisations. The Labour amendment was defeated 244-183 and the main question, approving the Home Secretary's action, was carried 243 votes to 179. The third of the ad hoc measures announced in the second half of 1988 was the restriction of the suspect's right to silence. The initial announcement by King in October 1988 of forthcoming legislation provoked criticism as it occurred in the middle of a trial of three persons accused of conspiracy to murder the Secretary of State. This prompted the judge to remind the jury that it should not justification for a
take the proposal into consideration
when reaching
its
verdict. Introducing the
Criminal Evidence (NI) Order 1988 on 8 November King stated that the right of silence
was not
to
be removed but the courts would be allowed:
'in certain
draw such inferences as would be proper from 35 an accused's silence'. Under the existing law the judge in a Diplock court must direct himself that he may not draw inferences from an accused's silence even
carefully defined circumstances to
when an innocent person may
reasonably be expected to protest his/her
innocence or provide evidence in support of establishing his/her innocence.
King attempted to bolster this change by invoking a recommendation of the Criminal Law Review Committee 1972. This was somewhat undermined by Labour and Democrat claims that this report was generally discredited and the fact that the Royal Commission on Criminal Procedure 1981 had recommended no change to the right to silence at police stations and in the courtroom. The change was further justified in light of the 'deliberate and extreme exploitation' of the present position by suspects trained to refuse to answer questions and had to
be the
set against the
EPA
background of increased protection of suspects'
rights
under
1987.
Four circumstances were outlined in which the judge would be permitted to draw inferences from the suspect's silence: first, if the suspect offered an explanation at
trial
when
it
might have been given
at the initial
questioning;
must be warned he will be called to give evidence and if he refuses the court may draw such inferences as would appear proper; third, if the accused refuses to explain to second,
if the
prosecution established there
is
a case to answer, the accused
the police specific details (such as marks on clothing); and fourth,
refuses to account for his/her presence at a particular place.
if the
accused
Conservatives: Anglo-Irish Agreement to 1 989
213
Labour opposition reflected its criticism of the other measures considered The government was accused of political bankruptcy and over-reliance on short-term legal measures. Specific to this legislation were claims of government inconsistency. It was trying both to argue that the change was necessary to deal with the problem of paramilitary activity and that it was not an exceptional measure as it was later to be extended to England and Wales. Also, the evidence of the need for change was questionable. None had been published and the government position was based on anecdotal evidence provided by the RUC and the Northern Ireland judiciary. Opposition to the Order also came from the Democrats and some Conservative members; one of whom Lawrence considered it nonsense to claim that the right to silence was one of the most important obstacles to securing convictions. An additional concern was voiced by Fraser, a Labour member. The lack of juries, the frequent lack of access to a solicitor in the first forty-eight hours of detention and the absence of a duty solicitor meant that the safeguards for suspects in Northern Ireland were weaker than for those in England and Wales and such a change would add to this above.
among members of its own party about the common-law right, the government won approval for
disadvantage. Despite disquiet
erosion of a long-standing the
Order by 274 votes
The Order
to
210 with Labour and the
SLD opposing.
reflected the authoritarian drift of the
sented the latest in a long series of attempts to
government and repre-
make
easier the securing of
had been of primary importance since the move away from internment in the early 1970s and the frequent lack of other evidence or witnesses to help secure convictions. Physical and verbal abuse of suspects had largely stopped after the revelations of the Bennett Report in 1978 and the 'supergrass' strategy of the early 1980s had run its course. The new Order prompted speculation that its provisions could facilitate the re-emergence of 'supergrass' use as the accused's silence could be used as corroboration for other evidence such as 'supergrass' statements. It had been a feature of the 'supergrass' trial that the majority of those who did not confess had exercised their convictions. Confessions
right to silence.
36
The upsurge
IRA
and the responses detailed above brought the The government had ruled it out in June 1988 but it was subsequently discussed at a meeting of Thatcher, King, Hermon (Chief Constable of the RUC) and Walters (GOC in Northern Ireland) on 20 August and at an emergency meeting between Thatcher and King at Downing Street on 24 August. Despite support for internment from the Northern Ireland Police Federation, Unionist MPs and some Conservatives, the balance of forces was against it. The opposition of all sections of the nationalist population, one of the original problems, was a major factor and Haughey was most unlikely to introduce it in the Republic. This was of significance since Hermon and Doherty, the Commissioner of the Gardai, felt it would only be 37 effective if simultaneously introduced on both sides of the border. A third of
activity
question of internment back on the agenda.
214
British
government policy in Northern Ireland 1 969-89
problem was that of the international damage to Britain's reputation as internment would undoubtedly be presented by Republicans as evidence of further repression. Supporters of internment argued that better intelligence would prevent the mistakes of 1971 being repeated and while this is probably correct the three factors above held good and were sufficient to marginalise the option of internment. Following the discussions of August, relatively few changes were made at an operational level. Troop reinforcements and changes in the rules of engagement for security forces were ruled out; one change was that the S AS was to take a more prominent role in surveillance replacing the RUC in dangerous areas.
38
As well
as security legislation the other crucial part of the equation in defeating
terrorism was the improvement in community/police relations and improve-
ments in the administration of justice. These were topics frequently raised by the Irish government at the conference and seen as the key to long-term improvements in the north. In the review of May 1989, the Northern Ireland Office outlined advances made in this area. These included efforts to increase RUC recruitment from the minority community, RUC accompaniment of any army patrol likely to come into contact with the public, a new RUC code of conduct, 'Professional Policing Ethics', published in April 1988, improved structures involving the district councils to develop a widely representative group of policecommunity liaison committees and new procedures introduced by the army to expedite responses to complaints concerning allegations of misbehaviour by members of the armed forces. The major reform was the introduction of an Independent Commission for Police Complaints (ICPC) in the Police (NI) Order of May 1987. This was the culmination of a NIO consultative paper of April 1985 which set out proposals taking account of the changes contained in the Police and Criminal Evidence Act 1984 in England and Wales. As in the provisions of that Act, investigation of complaints was to remain with the police. The Northern Ireland Police Authority was to undertake investigation of senior officers and Chief Inspector of Constabulary was to appoint investigating officers for lower ranks. The main responsibilities of the ICPC were as follows. It had the power to require that the investigator in cases of lower ranks was to come from another police force. The Chief Constable was required to refer to the commission all complaints requiring formal investigation for it to monitor, and it was also to have a monitoring role in minor complaints and a discretionary power of supervision in non-complaint matters. The Secretary of State and the Police Authority were given the reserve power to refer to the commission for mandatory supervision investigation of a matter which affected the public interest even if it was not the subject of a formal complaint. This last provision was specific to Northern Ireland, as was that allowing the presentation of a complaint by a third party with the verbal agreement of the complainant. The Order establishing the ICPC abolished the Police Complaints Board
HM
Conservatives:
A nglo -Irish Agreement to 1989
215
which had been set up under the Police (NI) Order 1976 and repealed the clause in the Police Act (NI) 1970 which provided for the establishment of a tribunal to consider any complaint appearing to affect the public interest. This power had only been exercised once and the government decided to include such authority within the remit of the ICPC. The Order was approved 79-13 with Labour abstaining.
Although
in principle the
reforms detailed above marked an improvement in
it is questionable whether they would have much practical effect in improving police-community relations. To a large degree these depended upon the attitude of the police 'on the ground' and,
the monitoring of the police and security forces,
with respect to the complaints system, the willingness of junior ranks to cooperate in investigations. Both of these factors were largely beyond the scope of legislative intervention. Additionally, the fact that the investigation
of complaints
government rejecting an independent scheme as impractical, gave rise to the question of whether complaints would be as vigorously investigated as possible. Much would depend on the tenacity and will of the remained with the
police, the
ICPC. Reservations about the effectiveness of the
new
provisions, the
ICPC
formally established at the end of February 1988, were echoed by the its
thirteenth report.
power
39
being
SACHR in
There were four main criticisms. First, the ICPC had no but was dependent on the requests of the
to request formal investigations
Police Authority, Secretary of State or the Chief Constable. Second,
it should be and have the authority to appoint its own personnel as additional investigators and not necessarily be restricted to the supervision of an investigation conducted by a police officer. Third, there was no power conferred on the ICPC to require the disclosure of evidence. Failure by a police officer to provide evidence should be made a
involved in
all
stages of investigations in appropriate cases
specific offence in the
RUC
the arrangements too
complex and
disciplinary code. Fourth, the
SACHR considered
difficult for the public easily to
and concluded that the new system might not go
far
enough
understand
in securing public
support.
The Public Order (NI) Order 1987, like other legislation, contained elements which improved individual rights and curtailed others. The positive aspects of Order included the repeal of the Flags and Emblems Act (NI) 1954 which This legislation had long been criticised by the SACHR, the Irish Republic and the Nationalist community. The law concerning incitement to hatred was strengthened as the original legislation of 1970 had been singularly ineffective. 40 Less attractive features included restrictions on the rights of demonstration and procession although this restriction has to be seen in the context of the intimidatory nature of certain Northern Ireland 41 marches. Reflecting the provisions of the Public Order Act 1986, the police
the
restricted the display of the tricolour.
had
to
be given seven days notice concerning the routing of marches.
Two
supplementary powers were included for Northern Ireland: notice had to be
216
British
government policy in Northern Ireland 1 969-89
given for processions or marches customarily held in a particular area or along a
and the Secretary of State was empowered to ban a procession in consequence of information provided by the Chief Constable or for any other
particular route
reason.
The
'catch alP nature of this provision indicates the potential for the
consolidation of executive power and the erosion of civil liberties. In the context
of Northern Ireland, such legislation could not be divorced from the
territorial
was the community which suffered from the intimidatory nature of such marches, especially in Portadown, and the principal opposition to the Order came from unionists who perceived it to be an attack on their traditional rights. The Order was presented in March 1987 and Labour, despite supporting elements in it, were to oppose the Order. Soley and Bell outlined three problems. First, asking the RUC to define the circumstances in which processions could be banned would put them in the position of making political decisions. Second, excessive power was being invested in the state at the expense of individual rights. Third, given the important implications of the legislation it should have been presented in the form of a Bill to permit more lengthy considerations of the clauses. The motion to approve was passed 160 votes to 106. It has been stressed that both the drift of legislation and particular incidents, such as the Ryan case and the early release of a soldier convicted of murder, claims of the two communities symbolised in marching. In general,
it
Nationalist
strained Anglo-Irish relations in this period with
spent in their attempted restoration. affair'
What
is
had perhaps the most serious implications
of the security forces. Stalker,
much
conference time being
commonly known
as the 'Stalker
for confidence in the operation
42
Deputy Chief Constable of the Greater Manchester
Police,
appointed to lead an inquiry into the shooting of seven unarmed men,
whom died, by the RUC in three separate incidents in Ireland
RUC
DPP, prompted Hermon
accounts of events and in
Manchester, invited Stalker review of
was
six
of
1982. Shaw, the Northern
an inquiry following concerns over 1984 Anderton, the Chief Constable of
to instigate
May
to lead
it.
It
seems
that
Hermon
expected a general
RUC operations and Stalker was consistently obstructed in attempts to
recover a tape which would help to establish the sequence of events and whether a police warning had been given before the shooting of two youths in a hay shed which the RUC suspected contained hidden arms. In September 1985 Stalker
RUC headquarters recommending prosecution of RUC officers without having had access to the tape or a transcript which
presented an interim report to eleven
Hermon
DPP was to order otherwise. In February 1986, on DPP instructed Hermon to allow Stalker access to the
refused unless the
receiving the report, the
tape. Just prior to collecting
it
Stalker was sent
on 'extended
leave'
pending an
inquiry into alleged misconduct and possible disciplinary proceedings arising
from
his
conduct as Deputy Chief Constable.
Stalker's removal inevitably
prompted speculation about
'dirty tricks'
and
conspiracy theories. Stalker believed that his removal from duty and subsequent
Conservatives:
A nglo -Irish Agreement to 1989
217
suspension from duty were 'wholly connected' with the Northern Ireland investigations with the objective of delaying the final report.
43
The
triviality
of the
changes brought and his re-instatement in August 1986 give some credence to his claim and he stresses the timing of his removal and the start of serious inquiries into his alleged misconduct did not begin until he
clearance to have access to the tape. Taylor, in his book on the
had received counters the
affair,
conspiracy theory by arguing that as the inquiry was to continue under the same
terms there was nothing to be gained by whichever party (the
government) was involved in the removal of Stalker. be postulated against Taylor.
It
44
may have been thought
RUC
at a
Anglo-Irish Agreement. Police Authority and
time
when
it
The impact
was
or the
reasons can
that the successor to
Stalker might have been less thorough and stubborn and/or that to protect the
RUC
Two possible it
was necessary
to bear the brunt of hostility to the
of disciplinary procedures, involving the
Home Office officials, and the effect on RUC morale could
have been disastrous.
45
Sampson, the Chief Constable of West Yorkshire, took over the inquiry in June 1986 and presented his report to Shaw in March 1987. It found evidence of conspiracy to pervert the course of justice and obstruction of the police investigation into the circumstances of the shootings and recommended criminal charges be brought against officers. On 25 January 1988 the Attorney-General announced in a Commons statement that the Northern Ireland DPP had decided that no further prosecutions should be brought in cases where charges of murder had already been brought. Four prosecutions for murder had been brought against RUC officers following the 1982 shootings and all had been cleared. Despite evidence of the commission of offences relating to perverting the course of justice no criminal proceedings were to be instituted since it would not be in the public interest or the interests of national security. It was this decision that provoked a bitter response from the Irish Republic and Labour as the AttorneyGeneral did not dispute that evidence existed that there had been attempts to pervert the course of justice. There was still the possibility of disciplinary action and Hermon had invited Charles Kelly, the Chief Constable of Staffordshire, to consider whether, and if so what, charges should be brought against junior officers.
On
26 January the
Irish
government requested a special meeting of the
Anglo-Irish Conference to discuss the decision not to prosecute, given the grave implications for public confidence in the administration of justice. This meeting
took place on 2 February following Haughey's expression of anger that the
Republic had not been consulted over, or had prior warning
of,
the Attorney-
GeneraPs decision. King was apparently unprepared to disclose to the Irish government what national security interests lay behind the decision and admitted Anglo-Irish relations were at their worst since the signing of the agreement.
46
Attempts to repair relations continued at an informal meeting held between King and Stanley, Minister for State, and Burke and Collins, respectively the Irish
218
British
government policy
in
Northern Ireland 1 969-89
Ministers for Energy and Justice, held on 10 February and between Thatcher
and Haughey
at a fringe
meeting of a European summit on 12 February.
Haughey described Thatcher's response
47
and it became clear government was not prepared to reconsider the decision. Labour's response included a call for an emergency debate on the Stalker/ Sampson report which was rejected, as was the demand for a judicial inquiry made in mid February. A motion from Irish representatives in the European as unsatisfactory
that the British
parliament condemning the decision not to prosecute was approved by 181 votes to 51.
The government tried
to defuse the situation
by arguing that the decision was
taken by a judicial figure and one independent of the executive. Therefore, the decision was not a governmental one. This defence provoked since
it
was unlikely
that
some scepticism
such a sensitive issue would have been decided upon
political involvement and the fact the government specifically denied Prime Ministerial pressure on the Attorney- General inclines one to think it protested too much. The separation of the executive and legal officers argument is rather tenuous given the close relation between the DDP and the AttorneyGeneral, the latter being a political appointee, and the government's eagerness to complain to the Irish government when Irish courts throw out extradition 48 warrants. The reasons why the government was prepared to risk a breakdown in relations with the Irish government over the issue can only be speculated upon but three factors may be of relevance. First, the morale of the RUC would have been further damaged by prosecutions. Second, if the government had sanctioned 'dirty tricks' it had to prevent further disclosures by invoking the national security argument. Third, the Northern Ireland Office which was more attuned to Irish sensibilities was largely marginalised in the post-report
without
developments.
49
Three subsequent
inquiries
appointed McLachlan,
emerged from the Stalker/Sampson
report.
King
HM Inspectorate of Constabulary, to review RUC pro-
cedures and practices and the role and responsibility of special branch. In
February King announced that Kelly would head an inquiry into the
RUC
activities
of
below the rank of chief superintendent and the Police Authority would consider possible disciplinary charges against officers above this rank. At the end of June 1988 the Police Authority, by a majority of one, decided that no officers
disciplinary proceedings should be instituted against officers
had
criticised the
behaviour.
The
Hermon and two
chief
concerning accusations of obstructionism during the inquiry. Sampson
The
following
conduct of
Irish
Hermon
but did not find evidence of criminal
government expressed disappointment over the decision.
week Kelly recommended
that disciplinary charges be brought
against twenty lower ranking officers which this resulted in eighteen
Hermon
accepted. In
March 1989
reprimands and one caution.
The capacity for security-force activity to cause disquiet among the Nationalist population, the Irish government and
civil
libertarians
was maintained not only by
Conservatives: Anglo-Irish Agreement to 1 989
the Gibraltar shootings of IRA
members of
in March 1988 which had echoes of the 1982 shootings but also by the suspected
members
'shoot-to-kih" controversy of the
collusion of
219
the security forces with loyalist paramilitaries. In
names and and the implication of UDR involvement in assassinations. Individual members of the UDR had been involved in sectarian attacks before and these developments raised the possibility of more widespread malpractice. On 5 October the longest meeting to date of the Intergovernmental Conference ended with Brooke, the Secretary of State, rejecting the Irish government call for a comprehensive review of the UDR and reaffirming its important role in Northern Ireland security. Annesley, Chief Constable of the RUC, invited John Stevens, Deputy Chief Constable of Cambridgeshire, to head an inquiry into the leaks which is still progressing at the September and October 1989 there were photomontages of Republican suspects from
time of writing.
a series of leaks of
RUC
stations
50
Economic policy
The government's economic policy was largely characterised by an attempt to exploit the gains made since the depth of the early 1980s recession. The development agencies were trying to move away from large-scale investment and failures of DeLorean
and Lear Fan, Development 51 Board (IDB) medium-term strategy for 1985-90 outlined this policy and highlighted the following points. Increased emphasis was to be placed upon the marketing and export of goods and services. Financial incentives were to be simplified and streamlined with assistance concentrated on research and development and marketing rather than capital investment. The IDB was to attempt to be more pro-active; client companies were to be invited to work with IDB executives not only on financial negotiations but also to develop overall strategies for the future. To facilitate these developments the IDB was to appoint development executives with responsibility for specific sectors. The policy was summarised thus: 'the IDB believes that its selection of, and concentration on, sectors and sub-sectors with real market potential for Northern Ireland must be one of the main planks in its strategy'. 52 In the section on home industry the above points were reiterated and new initiatives were outlined for rescue operations. Monitoring was to be improved to catch companies in difficulty earlier, the supply of rescue specialists was to be improved and new sources of private funds were to be utilised where possible if rescues were to be pursued. To facilitate marketing, perceived as one of the weak points of Northern Ireland industry, a Marketing Advisory Group was established to improve dialogue between the IDB and the business community, to address the marketing needs of local companies and to improve education and training in marketing. Efforts to reduce reliance on imports included the
the 'rescue' function, having learnt
and
to
from the
develop the sectors with growth potential.
The
Industrial
220
British
government policy
in
Northern Ireland 1 969-89
preparation of a products data base to provide companies with information
concerning locally produced goods and services to encourage government bodies to
purchase local goods.
Commitment was
reaffirmed to inward investment and four initiatives were
was to be improved which would concentrate funds in which Northern Ireland strengths could be matched or which would fill a gap in the province's industrial infrastructure. Second, emphasis would be placed on complete investment packages including research and development, financial assistance and personnel and market research. Third, priority was to be given to companies locating key back-up functions along with manufacturing facilities. This was an attempt to avoid the 'branch plant syndrome' from which Northern Ireland suffered in which only manufacturing outposts were established which were prone to contraction in times of recession. The fourth point related to geographical targetting: investment from Europe and Canada had been disappointing so Japan and Hong Kong representation was to be strengthened as potentially expanding sources of investment. The third main section of the report concerned the review of incentive schemes and four reforms were proposed. First, the packages available needed to be simplified. The IDB included grants for more than twenty separate purposes and others were administered by the Department of Trade and Industry, the Department of Economic Development and the European Community. Second, the Corporation Tax Relief Grant, which allowed a refund of up to 80% for job creation projects was to be revised to make it more competitive vis-a-vis the Republic of Ireland's incentive of a 10% ceiling on corporation tax. Third, a new scheme of marketing development grants providing support for ten marketing activities was to be introduced in response to criticisms that the IDB had been too orientated towards fixed-cost investment to the detriment of improved marketing. Fourth, miscellaneous changes included the simplification and improvement of procedures to reduce the time and cost of processing grant applications and the introduction of flexibility in incentive packages to make them detailed. First, 'targetting'
sectors to
tailored
more towards
service industries.
Both the constraints of government spending and the previous experience of collapses dictated that the IDB strategy was geared more to low-cost support and advice to existing companies than to large-scale industrial investment. This was prompted by evidence that Northern Ireland companies were relatively poor at developing export potential necessary given such a limited home market and would generally benefit from improved research and development and marketing. Specialist incentives were offered in opto-electronics, advanced manufacturing technology, microprocessor applications, industrial robots and software development to encourage both the development of hi-tech industries and the use of technology in business generally. In evidence to the Public Accounts
of the
IDB
Committee
revealed the changing emphasis of
in
1989
IDB
53
the Chief Executive
operations. In the period
Conservatives:
A nglo -Irish Agreement to 1989
1982-4 many of
221
operations were geared to helping companies survive in a
its
period of recession whereas in 1987-8
some 80-90% of
projects considered
were concerned with the promotion and creation of new employment. What is difficult to gauge is whether this relative recovery reflected the increased effectiveness of the Northern Ireland development agencies or the knock-on effect of the relative improvement in the UK economy. As far as inward investment was concerned, it remained a generally unrewarding area due largely to the image problem of Northern Ireland. However, it was not possible to ignore this
employment given the inability of home-generated investment to reduce significantly the rate of unemployment. Figures for jobs promoted from new inward investment projects were 224, 415 and 867 for the years 1985-6, 1986-7 and 1987-8 respectively which indicates the marginal contri-
potential source of
bution of this sector.
By
54
number of foreign
firms investing in Northern Ireland since American and the IDB retained offices in New York, San Francisco and Boston and a presence via consular offices in Cleveland, Chicago and Los Angeles. The greatest growth potential appeared to be in the Far East, reflected in the opening of an IDB office in Seoul in 1987 although by April 1989 only a total of four companies from Japan, Hong Kong and Korea had invested in 55 Northern Ireland with two subsequent closures. Although the main trends in IDB activity can be adduced it is difficult to assess far the largest
the early 1970s were
the effectiveness of its operations.
was
It
appears the ill-conceived allocations of large
and to that extent procedures and had improved. In the 1985 plan the IDB states that, once it had been reorganised along sectoral lines, one of the long-term performance indicators would be 'aggregate sectoral employment over time, related to IDB funds deployed'. The development of costs per job year would be the ideal standard measure although the IDB admitted problems and imprecisions in arriving at these figures. The number of jobs promoted per year had been used as a yardstick and cited by government but this is a somewhat flawed criterion. Promotions negotiated with a company when an incentive package was offered did not always result in actual jobs and it is difficult to assess how realistic job promotion targets were so the significance of a shortfall or exceeding of targets is consequently limited. Bearing these factors in mind, the IDB target for 1985-6 was 5,750 with 2,910 created, 4,187 created in 1986-7, 5,300 in 1987-8 after a target of 5,000 and 4,492 created in the first nine months of 1988-9. 56 With respect to the sectoral allocation of IDB money, over one-third of its budget between 1985-6 and 1987-8 was devoted to the textile industry which had experienced a revival monies
to risky projects
a thing of the past
strategies
among the slower improvement in manufacturing generally. General government concern with value for money and incentives
was reflected
in the reduction in the rate
the targetting of
of the standard capital grant
20% to 12.5% in November 1987. Viggers, Minister with responsibility for Economic Development, stated that the system of automatic grants had two from
British government polity in Northern Ireland 1 969-89
222 principal disadvantages.
It
did not take into account the question of the rela-
tionship between investment and jobs created, and had a possible displacement effect in placing competitors of those in possession of standard capital grants at a
March 1988 the General Assistance Grants Order 1988 repealed Part IV of the Industrial Development (NI) Order 1982 and abolished standard capital grants. The problems of displacement and deadweight (i.e. subsidising investment which would have been made anyway) were accepted by Labour who were not to oppose in light of disadvantage in local markets. In (Abolition) (NI)
the other support measures available.
Trends within the Local Enterprise Development Unit (LEDU), the industrial
support agency with responsibility for small firms, mirrored those of the
IDB. The
policy adopted in the early 1980s of expanded support for service was continued and emphasis was placed as much on back-up facilities as solely on financial support. By the nature of the size of companies supported, large numbers of job promotions were not feasible and the viability and likely longevity of employment were important factors. Such selectivity was reinforced by four basic criteria employed by LEDU in consideration of support. One of the following normally had to be fulfilled to gain backing: the product had to satisfy a local market need, had to be genuinely innovative in opening up a new market, displace imports into Northern Ireland or have the potential for providing exports. These reflected the problem of displacement as with the grants system; if LEDU funding only transfered jobs from one part of the province to another there was little rationale to it. Consequently grants were available for consultant costs to establish feasibility in exporting and developing market share and to promote quality development following reports which unfavourably compared the Northern Ireland small57 business sector with that of south-east England and Wales. To encourage research into the problems of small businesses and to act as a forum for advice, the Northern Ireland Small Business Institute was set up in 1985 with joint academic and commercial membership. The Local Enterprise Programme, administered by LEDU, reflected government favour for low cost support schemes rather than simply throwing money at recipients. Initiated in late 1983, the programme aimed to establish enterprise agencies in each of the twenty-six district council areas. Their function was basically two-fold; to provide start-up units in the form of vacant industrial premises or by financing the construction of purpose-built units and to advise on business plans, accounting and other specialist needs for companies. Up to 50% of funding was to be provided by LEDU and the remainder from the client companies. By 1989 twenty-four enterprise agencies were operational providing accommodation and common services to over five hundred small businesses employing nearly a thousand
industries
people.
The move
towards high tech and service sectors was confirmed
1988 when the
LEDU
announced plans
in
February
for job expansions having identified
Conservatives: Anglo-Irish Agreement to 1 989
223
These included computer software, advanced teleto promote exports, promotion of business and leisure/tourist facilities. This expansion was to be facilitated by
areas of potential growth.
communications, use of franchising services
government approval of a 30% increase in staffing levels in December 1986. Further expansion was envisaged in a five-year corporate plan, 'The Single Market and Beyond' launched in 1989 which planned for ten thousand job promotions annually by 1994 and the replacement of the area panel structure by a new system of local forums to improve linkages with local enterprises. Job promotions for the years 1985-6, 1986-7, 1987-8 and 1988-9 were 4,381, 4,543, 4,570 and 5,004 respectively and funding from the Department of
Economic Development
in
1988-9 stood
at
£26.56
million.
Food, engineering,
general manufacturing and services accounted for approximately 3,400 of the jobs promoted.
58
The parameters of the two development agencies'
strategies were reflected in, Department of Economic Development's 'Pathfinder' report entitled 'Building a Stronger Economy' which was published in July 1987. Six task forces had been established to consider topics including attitudes to enterprise, competitiveness, exports and the better utilisation of public funds. The aim was to reduce the economy's dependence on public subsidy since this had the effect of both blunting entrepreneurial skills and 'crowding out' better business judgments. Ways to mitigate such problems included the more selective use of grants (as reflected in the later abolition of SCGs) and the encouragement of private financial-sector contributions to economic development. The logic of this dictated indigenous private -sector growth as the motor of any revival in Northern Ireland and in particular the self-employed sector. This in turn would help to diversify the economic base of the province which had historically been over-reliant on a few key industries. The second important strand of government policy towards economic revival and the problem of unemployment was the use of job creation, retraining and self-employment schemes. These were part of general UK policy although Northern Ireland had its own schemes. Action for Community Employment (ACE) was the most important; its principal role being to provide low-cost community-based jobs for the long-term unemployed. The average number of ACE posts for the period was 3,890 (1985-6), 6,147 (1986-7), 6,200 (1987-8) and 8,670 for 1988-9 with expenditure increasing from approximately £18 million to £37 million over this period and the cost per job created rising from £4,560 to a projected £5,000 by 1990. The problem with the ACE scheme was that it generally lacked a training element, having been introduced as a low-cost response to rapidly increasing unemployment in the early 1980s. This feature had been criticised inter alia by the Northern Ireland Assembly Economic Development Committee. The criteria governing ACE were outlined by Viggers in November 1987: 'priority is given to projects which provide services for disadvantaged groups, those which promote permanent employment, and projects in areas where the level of ACE
and influenced
by, the
British government policy in Northern Ireland 1 96 9-89
224 provision
is
lower than the local incidence of long-term unemployment would
59
To overcome the problem of dependency and the limited duration of ACE positions an enterprise pilot scheme was introduced in May 1987 to
warrant'.
move from ACE schemes into self-employmenf. The second job scheme was the longer-established Enterprise Ulster (EU). EU had been under review throughout the 1980s and in 1983 was extended for three years. In May 1986 Rhodes-Boyson, Minister with responsibility for Economic Development, announced its extension for a further five years subject to periodic reviews. The principal reason for its continued review was its expense in terms of cost-per-job relative to the ACE scheme and the five-year extension was subject to a reduction in average costs. The numbers employed on EU schemes were 1,100 (1985-6), 1,174 (1986-7), 1,383 (1987-8) 1,400 (1988-9) and 1,080 the projected figure for 1989-90. Costs per job over this period ranged between just under £6,000 and £6,400. With a third of the ACE budget, future trends would seem to indicate the relative insignificance of EU in combating unemployment. Miscellaneous schemes included a new manpower training initiative introduced in June 1986 aimed at providing technical skills for those companies trading in external markets and two aimed at young people. The Youth Training Programme was extended in 1987 to guarantee places for all 17-year olds and a pilot scheme for employer-based training of 18- to 25 -year olds was launched with public funds. The Enterprise Allowance Scheme, operating as in Britain, had helped approximately six hundred people to found their own businesses by facilitate the
creation
1988. In 1988 the Youth Training
Programme budget was £34
million out of a total
of £116 million allocated to a variety of training and employment measures.
Training was decentralised with a host of groups and agencies involved administration including the centres, the
management
Manpower
in its
Services Commission, twelve training
training unit, eight industrial training boards with
and a system of training grants allocated by the Department of Economic Development. In April 1988 a government discussion responsibility for specific sectors
paper advocated a single organisation
was
to administer vocational training
arguing
and a sluggishness in responding to the demands of technological change. In September the DED published further proposals which promoted opposition from the sectoral training boards which feared loss of autonomy and an over-centralised system. The projects and mechanisms detailed above operated on a province-wide basis. The government also attempted to target areas as with urban policy in Britain. In July 1987 the DED announced a £10 million package to tackle the multiple problems of West Belfast entitled 'Making Belfast Work'. It included additional factory development, 500 more ACE jobs, an extra £500,000 for LEDU to supplement the five local enterprise agencies already operating in the area and various environmental schemes. The policy had similarities with British urban strategy in that it emphasised local community initiatives and that public that there
a lack of co-ordination in directing resources
Conservatives: Anglo-Irish Agreement to 1 989
225
funding should be only part of the answer, acting as a catalyst for further private -sector activity.
The scheme was
not without
its critics.
The
financial
problems of the area and compared unfavourably with the costs of the prestigious Laganside development and the commitment to community involvement took second place to an attempt to allocation
was small
in relation to the
channel funding via acceptable agencies such as the Catholic Church and away
from those with republican connections.
60
Enterprise Zones (EZs), as in the rest of the localised regeneration.
UK, were
further examples of
Two sites had been designated in Belfast in October 1981
September 1983. In 1988 the Department of the Environa report 'An Evaluation of the Enterprise Zone Experiment in Northern Ireland' prepared by a team of Cambridge University economists. As argued in a previous chapter the employment stimulation capacity of the EZs was limited and the report endorsed this. Of 7,300 jobs located in the zones, it was estimated that about 1,600 (16%) were net additional jobs in the zones themselves. Some more jobs were created in the local area from linkage effects associated with additional activity centred on the zone. However, 'for the and one
in
Derry
in
ment (NI) published
Province as a whole, the estimate of the negligible.
number of
net additional jobs
is
A small number of jobs have resulted from the zone policy working to
enhance the creation of new firms, but 61 from elsewhere in the Province'.
in general jobs
However, there were other gains from the panies which had been surveyed stated that significant in their operations.
It
also
on the zones have come
EZ strategy. About 50% of comEZ assistance had been crucial or
had the
effect of stimulating the property
market and focusing attention on areas which had previously been largely by-passed by economic regeneration or infrastructural development. Between 1981 and 1987 relief, capital
total
expenditure on
EZs was £16.1
million
composed of
rate
allowances, public infrastructure and land acquisition by public
agencies. Discounting expenditure
designation, the figure
is
which would have occurred without
EZ
£10.7 million which represents a cost per additional job
created of £9,200.
The report used two basic criteria to evaluate the EZ programme. One was the maintenance the
of,
or addition
contribution to
the
to,
economic
physical
activity
and employment, and the other
regeneration
of areas - environmental,
and in the property market. It would seem that the contribution of the EZ scheme lay principally in the latter area. It should be noted the report observed that Northern Ireland EZs performance did not appear to compare favourably with those in Great Britain although it was not possible to produce one single measure of relative performance. infrastructural
Urban projects also benefited from EC funding, principally through the European Regional Development Fund (ERDF) which funded infrastructural development and industrial support schemes and the European Social Fund (ESF) which sponsored employment and retraining schemes. In 1977 Northern
226
British
government policy in Northern Ireland 1 969-89
Ireland had been designated as one of five priority regions for
EC regional policy
and support from the ERDF was £16.9 million, £18.4 million, £23.2 million and £45.9 million for the years 1984-5, 1985-6, 1986-7 and 1987-8 respectively. ESF funding was £37.96 million, £24.96 million, £53.31 million and £57.89 million for the same period. Additionally, £57.9 million was granted from a 62 special urban renewal for Belfast projects. A second source of external funding was the International Fund for Ireland, established after the 1985 agreement, to which the USA, Canada, New Zealand and the EC contributed. By February 1989 the fund had approved support of over £52 million, 75% of which was allocated to Northern Ireland. It was estimated that, north and south, this contribution would create 4,500 new permanent jobs, preserve 1,500 existing ones and provide 4,000 short-term jobs in the construction industry. The bulk of the funding was to be used in the border counties area of the north and the Republic. Although such funding was obviously welcome, it was marginal when compared with UK public expenditure in Northern Ireland and this remained the key to hopes for publicly funded recovery. The impact of external funding was further limited if the government 63 used it as a substitute for its own expenditure. Northern Ireland was not to remain exempt from Conservative privatisation policy. Harland and Wolff and Shorts, two of the province's most important manufacturing companies, had been in government ownership since 1975. Harland and Wolff had faced similar problems as the rest of the UK shipbuilding industry but had benefited from government to a greater extent because of both the political situation and its position in the Northern Ireland economy. In the fifteen years to 1988 subsidies to Harland and Wolff had exceeded £1 billion despite attempts to diversify production and the cutting of the workforce from 64 8,000 in 1975 to 3,800 in 1988. The rate of public support had declined partly due to diversification but was still a considerable drain on the DED budget. For example in June 1987 Harland and Wolff was voted £42.6 million in the appropriation debates to cover costs including further redundancies, the contract for the
In
navy-commissioned auxiliary oil replenishment ship and consultancy fees.
December
a further £18.1 million
was voted
to cover contract losses
and
work-in-progress costs.
The government formally announced its decision to privatise Harland and Wolff in July 1988. Although the policy was generally unpopular with Labour, criticisms were muted as it was felt that the Northern Ireland shipyards had compared with the came from Northern Ireland inter-party delegation met Thatcher in February 1989
disproportionately benefited from government support British ones.
65
The most determined
representatives and a rare to register
its
opposition
protest.
For most of 1988
seemed possible that the yard would be purchased by Ravi who was considering the building of a luxury liner, The Ultimate Dream. However, the government was unwilling to offer a £70 it
Tikkoo, a shipbuilding tycoon
Conservatives:
A nglo -Irish Agreement to 1989
227
was tied to Tikkoo's purchase of the yard and from John Parker, Harland and 66 Wolff chairman, and Tikkoo over the issue. Commentators expressed doubts about Tikkoo's suitability owing to his lack of shipyard experience and his unwillingness to take responsibility for potential losses. In mid October 1988 it was announced that the contract for The Ultimate Dream had been lost. From mid 1988 the period of uncertainty had caused friction between the government, opposition and the management of Harland and Wolff. Until a buyer could be found the government had withheld further intervention funding and refused to let the company tender for new orders since the new owners might not have been able to honour previous commitments. In February 1989 420 further redundancies were announced, in part the result of the contract embargo. The all-party Select Committee on Trade and Industry endorsed the privatisation policy in early 1989 and recommended a speedy decision on the company's future to allow the lifting of the embargo on tendering for orders which was harming the long-term future of the shipyard. At the end of March King announced that, on behalf of the government, he had approved the sale to a management/employee team led by Parker and supported by Fred Olsen, the Scandinavian fleet owner who was committed to an order for three tankers. The terms of the deal were favourable for the buyers; they subscribed to £15 million share capital and acquired the assets of Harland and Wolff for £6 million. The government was to provide £60 million of loan stock, repayment terms related to performance and £38.75 million of grants to facilitate further rationalisation. The powers of the Secretary of State, contained in the Aircraft and Shipbuilding Industries (NI) Order 1979, were rescinded. Government plans for the privatisation of Shorts and Harland dated back to December 1984 but a detailed programme did not emerge until July 1988 at the same time as the Harland and Wolff announcement. Shorts had experienced similar problems of rationalisation and international competition. Its image was not helped in the USA market by accusations of bias against Catholic employment and losses for 1987-8 totalled £142.5 million. 67 In the July announcement, Viggers, the Minister responsible, had stated that the government would consider selling the three sectors of Shorts separately but by the end of 1988 he undertook to sell the company as a single unit. This was in response to the chairman's attack on ministerial criticism of company problems and fears that breaking up the company would result in asset-stripping. Following the Trade and Industry Report of February 1989, which recommended recapitalisation of Shorts to expedite the sale, the government took over responsibility of Shorts's debts to commercial banks at a cost of £390 million, replacing them with convertible loans at preferential rates. Further financial assistance would be dependent on negotiations with potential buyers. By December 1988, the closing date for initial submissions, thirty companies had expressed an interest in Shorts which by April 1989 had been reduced to two firm million subsidy for the ship unless
reacted
unfavourably
to
it
pressure
228
British
proposals: a consortium led by
government policy
GEC
in
Northern Ireland 1 969-89
and Fokker and Bombardier,
a
Canadian
company.
On 7 June 1989 King approved a heads of agreement for sale of Shorts to Bombardier, which was to pay £30 million for the share capital. *The government was to write off the existing £390 million loan and grant £79 million over four years for
new investment capital and £18
million for other costs, mainly training.
A further £275 million was to be advanced for recapitalisation, £60 million in the form of an interest-free loan. This was repayable if Bombardier broke commitments given concerning the future of the company. As the management and workforce desired, the company was to be kept as an entity comprising the aircraft, aerostructures and missile sectors. As with Harland and Wolff the Secretary of State's powers under the 1979 Order were rescinded. To conclude, government policy in this period reflected UK policy as a whole with an emphasis on trying to encourage private -sector activity and correspondingly lessen what it saw as the unhealthy dependence on subsidy. This entailed cheaper forms of public support and gave rise to criticism from the regional CBI 68 and the trade unions that insufficient funds were devoted to industrial support. With public-expenditure growth restricted and multinational investment remaining difficult to attract, the overall economic picture remained bleak as Northern Ireland growth rates lagged behind the British revival in the late 1980s. Bright spots included the stabilisation of manufacturing employment at 22% of the total, the upturn in the linen and textile sectors and the slight decline in the 69 rate of unemployment over the four-year period.
Social policy
Developments in the social policy area were dominated by consideration of fair employment provisions. The existing legislation had been passed in 1976 and evidence that it had failed to lessen the disparities in unemployment rates between the two communities and external pressure put the question of fair employment back on the political agenda. The reasons for the difference in unemployment rates remained a matter of dispute but its existence was less contentious. The research of the FEA and the Continuous Household Survey, published by the Department of Finance and Personnel in 1985 confirmed that the male Catholic unemployment rate was approximately 2.5 times that of male Protestants, with female rates showing a lesser disparity.
Pressure for change was both internal and external. The FEA felt that it was underfunded and lobbies from the US A and the Irish Republic were important in encouraging the government to reconsider fair employment legislation. USA pressure was largely based around the MacBride Principles, which were formulated in 1984 under the patronage of Sean MacBride, former IRA leader, Irish Minister for Foreign Affairs and founder member of Amnesty
229
Conservatives: Anglo-Irish Agreement to 1 989
The
had nine clauses, including better monitoring of the composition of the workforce, affirmative measures to increase repreInternational.
principles
sentation of under-represented groups, timetables for affirmative action, the
development of training programmes to benefit minority recruitment, the banning of provocative sectarian or political symbols at the workplace and measures to provide security for members of minority groups at work and in travelling to
There ciples.
and from
it.
are two crucial elements to note in considering the
The measures
MacBride Prin-
outlined above are unexceptional but
much
debate
occurred around the question of whether the principles advocated 'positive' or 'reverse' discrimination.
Such discrimination would
conflict with British legisla-
However, some do not necessarily advocate such measures. According to the FEA, the drafting of the principles was confusing and ambiguous. With respect to what the FEA considered permissible and impermissible recruitment practices under Northern Ireland legislation, the principles are 'likely to have a detrimental effect because they at worst stray over the line, and at 70 Secondly, opposition best cause confusion and doubt about where the line is'. to the principles is linked to those who support them. The government and other opponents felt that much of the American lobby was less concerned with improving the situation in Northern Ireland than with embarrassing the British govern71 ment as part of a pro-Republican withdrawal campaign. The principal tactic employed by MacBride lobbyists in the USA was to encourage state legislatures to pass legislation under which public and institutional investment funds would be directed to companies which operated the principles, including their subsidiaries in Northern Ireland. The campaign was strengthened when the New York state legislature passed a Bill in May 1986, following the lead of Massachusetts, supporting investment in companies operating the principles and by 1989 thirteen states had adopted them. This, of course, had no relevance in British law but helped to establish the credentials and tion
and was
used by the government as grounds to oppose them.
readings suggest that the principles
respectability of the Principles.
Rhodes-Boyson, Economic Development undermine claims that the government was not committed to fair employment, it was to launch a vigorous campaign against them. 72 The argument was that the principles advocated policies contravening the 1976 Act and could force US subsidiaries to disinvest if they were bound by the principles. On a tour of the USA to promote investment in Northern Ireland in September 1987 King attacked the principles and officials of the NIO and DED were also involved in anti-MacBride campaigning. The government began to formulate proposals as an alternative to the principles. That the American lobby was instrumental in concentrating the mind of government is argued by Rowthorn and Wayne who consider the proposals of mid 1985 onwards a 'direct result of pressure from the United States' and by Although
it
was reported
that
Minister, initially favoured the principles so as to
230
British
government policy in Northern Ireland 1 969-89
Richmond who states that 'by far the most significant factor in pushing equality of opportunity on to the government's agenda has been the MacBride lobby'. External pressure also
came from
73
the Irish government via the Anglo-Irish
fair employment was the most frequendy raised at the Conference, being discussed in at least twelve meetings. However, this source was less important than the US lobby, partly because Dublin tended to be more reactive and did not present its own specific proposals. It was content to leave this to the British government but was critical of the delay in proposals reaching the legislative stage. This broadly mirrored the position of interested parties in the north, including the SDLP and the Northern Ireland Committee of the Irish Congress of Trade Unions which opposed MacBride. From the background of political pressure we can turn to the evolution of legislation. In September 1986 the DED published a discussion paper entided 'Equality of Opportunity in Employment in Northern Ireland: Future Strategy Options'. The main proposals were the advocacy of stronger affirmative action,
Conference. Along with the administration of justice
topic
the introduction of contract compliance possibly through the use of financial sanctions, a multi-dimensional approach by which existing agencies in the field of
equal opportunities (the
FEA and the
Equal Opportunities Commission) would
be merged and the establishment of a government unit staffed by civil servants to
promote equality of opportunity outside the structure of any new Fair
Employment body. Problems with the 1976
legislation
had included the voluntary nature of staff if so what, affirmative action was
monitoring, the lack of clarity of whether, and legal, the
ease with which employers could register themselves as equal oppor-
tunity employers
and the lack of government sanctions against transgressors. The this. The FEA welcomed commit-
proposals went some way in recognition of
ment to make
the Declaration of Intent
more
effective, the possibility
of contract
On the debit side,
compliance and a new appeals procedure for individual cases.
the more direct government involvement in the promotion of equal opportunity was viewed with suspicion since the government had a poor record within the Northern Ireland Civil Service and the FEA feared such a development would weaken its own position. Similar reservations were expressed about the multidimensional approach. Its consideration by government was: 'consistent with a general impression that an objective of the Consultative Paper is to change the nature of the Fair Employment Agency to meet the criticism of the larger 74 employers'. A merger of agencies would facilitate the downgrading of the politically sensitive religious element in discrimination by combining it with the issue of sex discrimination.
Given the need
to canvass pressure -group opinion, the legal complexity of any
forthcoming legislation and the major report due from the considered, any
SACHR in
new Act was unlikely to emerge quickly. Thus,
were announced by King
in July 1987. 'Religious Equality
1987
to
be
interim measures
of Opportunity
in
Conservatives:
A nglo -Irish Agreement to 1989
231
Employment: Guide to Effective Action' was to be published by the DED in September 1987 replacing the 'Guide to Manpower Policy and Practice' of 1978. It aimed to help employers avoid indirect discrimination in recruitment and promotion, emphasise affirmative action and promote educational initiatives in increasing awareness of equal opportunities. The FEA grant from its funding department, the DED, was to be raised from £383,000 in 1987 to £512,000 in 1988. This helped finance the recruitment of eleven additional staff in January 1988 to make a total of thirty-one full-time FEA employees excluding the chairman.
The
75
SACHR Report 'Religious and Political Discrimination and
Equality of
Opportunity in Northern Ireland: Report on Fair Employment' was published in
October 1987
after
two years preparation.
It
reviewed the failings of the
particularly in respect of the lack of employers'
Manpower Policy and
FEA
knowledge of the 'Guide
to
and the weakness of the Declaration of Principle and Intent. Signatories had increased following the government decision to link contracts to its signing but it had little impact on monitoring or the development of affirmative action.
The
Practice'
76
report was critical of the
DED proposals of 1986. The multidimensional
approach and the establishment of a government unit were rejected and the formulation of equality of opportunity was considered imprecise.
The 1986
paper also failed to consider the setting of targets and timetables, affirmative action at the point of selection
and the use of
industrial tribunals to deal with
individual complaints of discrimination.
There were
a total of 123
SACHR recommendations
and only the principal
ones can be highlighted here. Quotas and reverse discrimination were rejected.
To facilitate equality of employment, indirect discrimination should be expressly prohibited and targets and timetables should be encouraged as a evaluating affirmative action initiatives. Organisations
on the
way of
register of holders
of a newly revised Declaration of Practice would receive a certificate of three years' duration
and renewal would be dependent on the monitoring of the
workforce's religious composition in an attempt to avoid the failings of the previous system. This would be supported by the limiting of government grants
and contracts
to those in receipt of the
Equal Opportunity Certificate and
subscribers to the Declaration of Practice.
A new Fair Employment body should replace the FEA and retain the power of company and
sector investigations
and of research. Following an
investigation,
voluntary undertakings by employers to take remedial action would be legally
binding and the
new commission
(the suggested tide) should
monitor the
implementation of agreements and ensure appropriate revisions were
where necessary. The Commission could apply
to the
High Court
to
made ensure
compliance of agreed policies. Individual cases should be considered by industrial
tribunals with the
commission empowered to assist complainants. The FEA had had the dual function of bringing
advantage of this was that the
British government policy in Northern Ireland 1 969-89
232
and adjudicating in cases which potentially jeopardised its between complainant and defendant. Tribunals were considered to be a better forum for adjudication as they were relatively speedy, informal, widely accepted as impartial and required to make detailed and'public decisions. complaints
impartiality
The
on voluntary action to improve equality of opportunity last resort marked a continuity with the procedure established in 1976. The new body was to have the same committee structure, including trade union and employer representation, as the FEA. It was suggested that budget and staffing responsibility be removed from joint control of the Departments of Finance and Personnel and Economic Development and placed with the NIO and via it the Secretary of State. Miscellaneous suggestions for co-ordinating government policy included the establishment of an equal opportunities unit in the NIO and ensuring that the LEDU and the IDB were aware of report's emphasis
with legal sanctions as a
the equal opportunities implications of their industrial support policies.
The White Paper 'Fair Employment in Northern Ireland' (Cm. 380) was May 1988, following speculation that the government had speeded
published in
up proposals
in an effort to placate the Republic after the strains of the Stalker and refusal to reconsider the convictions of the 'Birmingham Six'. This was 77 The preamble accepted the existence of discrimination denied by Viggers. although 'it is by no means the sole nor even the main explanation' of employment differentials and reaffirmed that the merit principle should remain paramount 78 which ruled out the use of quotas. The separation of individual case investigation and pattern/practice cases was endorsed; the former being the responsibility of a separate division of existing industrial tribunals and the latter being the principal role of the putative Fair Employment Commission. With respect to appeals, in individual cases these would only be permissible on points of law and taken to the Court of Appeal, replacing the County Court under the 1976 affair
and practice cases, employers' appeals against the commiswould be heard by the Fair Employment tribunal which would the be body responsible for enforcing the commission's directives. The High Court was rejected as the venue for appeals (contrary to the SACHR recommendation) as too costly for small employers and often subject to delays. Indirect discrimination was to be made illegal and to evaluate companies' progress monitoring was essential. Therefore, employers with more than ten employees (twenty-five in the first two years) were to be obliged to monitor annually the composition of their workforce and submit returns to the commission. The most important factor in combating indirect discrimination was affirmative action defined as 'special measures taken to promote a more representative distribution of employment in the workforce and designed to give all 79 sections of the community full and equal access to employment opportunities'. Examples included outreach schemes, less informal recruitment, more schools used as a pool by employers and the ban on flags and emblems in the workplace. A code of practice would be prepared by the commission. This would be a legislation. In pattern
sion's directives
Conservatives: Anglo-Irish Agreement to 1 989
233
source of information for employers and a basis on which the commission could
draw up voluntary undertakings for employers and impose directives for It would also be a guide for the tribunal in cases of individual discrimination and in appeals or enforcing orders of compliance from the commission. The code would be voluntary but measures would have statutory effect if incorporated by the commission into a directive. The code would be prepared initially by the DED, considered in draft by parliament in the forthcoming legislation and subject to revision by the Commission once in operation. The code would cover the following areas: aims and affirmative action.
philosophy of the
employer
new
legislation, definition
responsibilities,
motion procedures,
of key concepts, a
summary of
examples of good practice in recruitment and pro-
illustrations
of how indirect discrimination could be avoided,
explanation of the purpose of monitoring, setting out the range of affirmative action procedures, and the roles
and
responsibilities of trade unions
and
employees.
FEC would would be entitled to of co-operation which would be held unless it was found to be
Failure to register with, and submit monitoring returns to, the
become
a criminal offence.
receive a certificate in
On
registration an organisation
breach of statutory obligations,
viz. failing to
submit or update monitoring
returns or failing to comply with directives issued by the commission.
A breach of
1
the employers duties would be a criminal offence; if directives were not complied
with the commission could apply to the High Court for a contempt ruling which
could result in fines or committal. Further penalties included the withholding of grants and contracts from those companies which
To
had
lost certification.
would be underrecommendation for evaluation based on targets for reducing the differential between male Catholic and Protestant unemployment rates (to 1.5:1) was rejected on the grounds that other factors apart from discrimination were of significance. The White Paper proposals were debated on 1 July 1988. Labour was critical of government policy arguing that it had failed to incorporate sufficient of the SACHR recommendations and that commitment was lacking as the response to the problem of fair employment was largely determined by American pressure. McNamara outlined seven specific criticisms: merit was not adequately defined; affirmative action was too restrictive and weak by comparison with British legislation regarding racial and sexual discrimination; indirect discrimination was not properly defined; the appeals procedure, if multi-stage, could weaken the FEC; too many agencies in receipt of public money including Harland and Wolff were to be exempt from grant and contract compliance; the code of practice was not incorporated in primary legislation and thus not subject to detailed scrutiny in committee; and lastly targets and timetables were limited to the proportion of applicants from each community and did not cover the composition of the evaluate the effectiveness of legislation a formal review
taken after
workforce.
five years.
The
SACHR
234
British
The second reading of the 1989. Labour amplified
in
Northern Ireland 1 969—89
Employment
(NI) Bill was given on 3 1 January White Paper and considered, in some be even weaker. The aim of affirmative action was now
its
aspects, the proposals to
government policy
Fair
criticisms of the
defined as trying to secure
'fair
participation' of
all
groups
in*
the workforce,
whereas the White Paper definition referred to a 'more representative' distribution. Moreover, as 'fair' was not defined it was considered an unhelpful 80 The problem of the definition of affirmative action meant that the formulation. legality of training and outreach schemes aimed at under-represented groups could be challenged if such measures were not specifically endorsed in the legislation.
Labour
also felt that contract
compliance should be more actively pursued
rather than being a last resort sanction and that the
and responsible
to,
the
NIO
rather than the
FEC
DED,
should be funded by,
since the latter's close
relationship with employers could lead to a conflict of interest.
impose a
positive duty
upon the
private
and public sectors
to
The
Bill failed to
pursue equality in
employment and redress for individuals discriminated against was inadequate. level of damages which could be awarded was lower than in the 1976 legislation and there was no provision providing for the engagement or reengagement of victims of discrimination. It does not seem that the new legislation would jeopardise forms of affirmative action, as Labour feared, but what confused the issue was the lack of definition of what was being discussed as the new code of practice had not been formulated. This angered Labour as the House
The
could not discuss important elements including the definition of affirmative action, contract is
compliance and the operation of tribunals.
a contempt of the
Bill in the
House
that the
McNamara stated:
absence of detail about what the code and regulations
To register its
dissatisfaction,
'it
Government should expect us to consider the will contain'.
Labour moved an amendment declining
a
81
second
reading which was defeated by 268 votes to 194 and opposed the second reading
on
a three line whip. The government had a majority of 272 votes to 192. The government argued that Labour should support it as it agreed in principle
with the legislation and deal with
its
criticisms of detail in the
committee
stage.
Labour's opposition was in part based on pessimism about what could be effected in
committee. However after eighteen committee sessions and amendments in
the Lords sufficient improvements were
made
to gain
Labour support. These
included clarification that affirmative action programmes would not be subject to charges of reverse discrimination and were therefore
legal,
more scope
in
ways of
monitoring workforce composition, and the strengthening of goals and timetables.
The maximum
tribunal
award
in cases
of individual discrimination was
raised from £8,925 to £30,000 and the Bill's provisions were
more part-time employees. Labour had if
widened
the Secretary of State blocked an inquiry into discrimination on grounds of
national security, the failure to use contract compliance in a positive to
to cover
reservations including the lack of appeal
manner
encourage equality of opportunity and the refusal of government to
set a
Conservatives: Anglo-Irish Agreement to 1 989
235
unemployment differentials. Bill stronger and more workable than at the Labour considered On second reading stage and on 25 May supported the third reading which was passed 96 votes to 4. The Commission was to replace the Fair Employment Agency in January 1990. Fair employment dominates social policy in this period and other areas can be briefly considered. Housing policy in Northern Ireland largely reflected trends in the UK; the Housing (NI) Orders of 1986 and 1988 contained provisions extending the right-to-buy and grants for owners of defective housing sold by the public sector. Specific to Northern Ireland was the extension of NIHE tenants' rights in the 1986 Order and of NIHE powers with respect to control of houses in timetable for the reduction of Catholic/Protestant
balance,
multiple occupation. British housing policy in
new
was reflected
builds. Consequently,
in the
NIHE new
emphasis on private -sector
starts
activity
declined from 2,091 in 1985-6
1987-8 and 1,500 in 1988-9 with the private 82 annum. Public-sector emphasis was placed on renewal and rehabilitation and to facilitate this the 1986 Order allowed the NIHE to spend 100% of revenue from sales on capital projects; a power not accorded to local authorities in Britain. Government figures indicate that the state of Northern Ireland housing was gradually improving. Three criteria were used to assess the condition of dwellings. Unfit dwellings as the proportion of total stock fell from 10.4% in 1984 to 8.4% in 1987, fit dwellings in need of repairs over £3,000 in the same period fell from 15.5% to 14.1% and those in need of repairs over £10,000 fell from 5.1% to 3.9%. The housing budget was not exempt from overall public expenditure restraint and did not have the resources of the Prior era but per capita expenditure still exceeded that of Great Britain with total expenditure 83 stabilising at around £335 million per annum in the period 1 986-9. In September 1987 King announced the establishment of a new Community Relations Unit under the chairmanship of Brian Mawhinney, the Education Minister. The unit was not granted an operational budget as any projects approved by the Secretary of State would be sponsored by the relevant department. Its main functions were to examine major policy initiatives with respect to their possible impact on community relations, to review the impact on community relations of existing policies and programmes and to develop new ideas about the improvement of community relations and support those 'on the ground' working towards these ends. To supplement these aims a Community Relations Council was announced in June 1989 which was to include a Cultural Traditions Group devoted to educational and research projects exploring the cultural heritage of 84 the Northern Ireland communities. and 2,317
in
1986-7
to 1,632 in
sector figure stabilising at around 7,200 per
1
British government policy in Northern Ireland 1 969-89
23 6
Conclusion
Any hopes that the new between the United Kingdom and the Republic of Ireland could effect rapid improvements in the Northern Ireland situation were quickly dashed. Instead, the Intergovernmental Conference's most important role was to provide a forum in which tensions could be addressed. In the absence of scope for
The
period 1985-9 was largely one of consolidation.
relationship
further constitutional developments, governmental activity was focused
unemployment
long-established problems of security and the
upon the
differentials
between the two communities. Notes 1
As Kevin McNamara argued
in the
agreement's defence.
(HC
Vol. 153 Col. 1137
25/5/89).
2
See the security section
3
O'Learyetal. 1988
4
See Boyle and Hadden 'Breaking the Anglo-Irish Impasse' Fortnight 238
later in chapter.
p. 155.
May
1986
pp. 9-10. 5
See Connolly and Knox 1988
for
6
Financial Times 15/6/87 p.
and Fortnight 253 July-August 1987.
1 1
7
Financial Times 12/8/87 p. 5.
8
Fortnight
9
It
more
details.
260 March 1988.
can be argued that the 'Leninist' element in Sinn Fein thinking means that
electoralism forms only a secondary element in
For Adams's explanation of the Fortnight 259 February 1988. 10
talks
its
strategy.
and the Unionist reaction see
1
Financial Times 4/2/89 p. 4.
12
In February 1987, during the election campaign,
Haughey stated
that
articles in
Fianna Fail
would honour the agreement; a change of position from his attack on it in October 1986. For details of Unionist politics after the agreement and a defence of the CEC position see
Aughey 1989. 13 HC Vol. 99 Cols 1214-67 19/6/86. 136 Cols 403-76 29/6/88.
14
e.g.
Archer stated
HC Vol.
in a letter to the Secretary
119 Cols 198-263 7/7/87.
HC Vol.
of State of 28/1 1/85 mat the vote on
the agreement did not imply a return to bipartisanship, implicitly because of dis-
agreements over security policy and
1986
p. 8).
civil rights. (Fortnight
At a Northern Ireland Committee meeting
231,
at the
December 1985/January
Labour Party Conference
in
September 1987 McNamara, the shadow spokesman, dismissed a bipartisan approach and attacked Conservative preoccupations with security. (Fortnight 256, November 1987). 15
See J. Moore 'Livingstone:
A Minority of One' Fortnight 257, December
1987 pp.
9-10.
16
There is also
a
growing lobby in the Labour Party which supports the contesting of
elections in Northern Ireland. Kate
Hoey
is
the
MP
most
closely identified with this
group.
17
For
18
Financial Times 2 1/2/89 p. 4.
a detailed account of the operation of the
assembly see O'Leary
et al. op. cit.
1
.
.
237
Conservatives: Anglo-Irish Agreement to I 989
of Conference meetings see Appendix E.
19
For
20
HC Vol. 92 Cols 415-37
details
19/2/86.
HC Vol.
110 Cols 263-86 10/2/87.
HC Vol.
127 Cols 925-49 16/2/88.
HC Vol. 92 Col. 418
19/2/86.
21
Hurd;
22
Financial Times 23/12/88 p.
23
HC Vol.
24
See Jackson 1988.
25
HCVol. 107
26
See security section below for the relevant Financial Times 19/10/87 p. 10.
27
1.
143 Col. 215 6/12/88. Col. 1121 16/12/86. legislation.
28
Hogan and Walker 1989
29
Financial Times 12/10/87 p. 10.
30
King warned Lenihan, Fianna Fail Foreign Affairs Minister, of serious if the Act were not in force by the beginning of December. Financial Times 1 6/2/88 p. 1 3
p.
301.
implications
3
32
ibid.
33
Independent 14/12/88 p.
34
Guardian 16/12/88.
35
HC Vol.
36 37
See Greer 'He
38 39 40
Sunday Times 28/8/88 p. 1 Annual Report 1986-7 (HC 298. 1987). There had been only one prosecution brought under
41
Marches
1/12/88
p. 30. 2.
140 Col. 183 8/1 1/88.
May Be
Resurrected' Fortnight 268
December 1988
pp. 10-11.
Guardian 6/8/88.
in
this legislation.
Northern Ireland often served the function of establishing, or attempt-
ing to establish, territorial rights and thus were often points of conflict.
42 43 44
See Stalker 1988 and Taylor 1987 Stalker 1988 p. 187.
45
This
46 47 48
Financial Times 3/2/88 p. 44.
See Taylor op.
ibid.
latter
cit.
point
13/2/88
The DPP was
is
and
for fuller accounts.
letter in Fortnight
made by
Stalker op.
253 July/ August 1987.
cit.
p.
264.
p. 3.
at first in
favour of bringing prosecutions but decided against after
consultation with the Attorney General.
49
For the
NIO position see
'Tiring of an Irish Irritation' Fortnight 260,
March 1988
pp. 8-9.
50
The
miscarriage of justice concerning the 'Guildford Four' and doubts about the
'Birmingham 51
Six' also fuelled tensions
'Encouraging Enterprise:
between the governments.
A Medium-Term
Strategy for 1985-1990'. IDB,
Belfast, 1985.
52
ibid. p. 11.
53
Committee of Public Accounts: 'Matters
relating to
Northern
Ireland'.
HC 230,
1989.
54
Financial Times (Survey) 19/10/88. See also Gafikin and Morrissey 'A
the Jobs Crisis' Fortnight 251,
55
56
May
Way out of
1987 pp. 15-16.
For the origin of inward investment see HC Vol. 151 Cols 321-324 21/4/89. Figures from various government sources. See HC Vol. 151 Cols 485-6 25/4/89
British government policy in Northern Ireland 1 969-89
238 for a sectoral
breakdown.
57
Financial Times 3/12/87 p. 3 of survey.
58 59 60
Figures from
LEDU Annual Report 1988/89.
HCVol. 122
Col. 541 12/11/87.
See the Obair Report 1989 ch. 10 and Fortnight 265, September 1988, p. 13. 'An Evaluation of the Enterprise Zone Experiment in Northern Ireland.' DOE,
61 Belfast,
1988
p. 65.
HC Vol.
132 Cols 300-1 29/4/88. Northern Ireland Assembly Report. 'Additionality of Receipts from European
62 63
Funds'
NIA 46,
Belfast, 1983.
Subsidy and employment figures from Financial Times 1/7/88
64
26/1 1/88
The winning
65
May
66 67 68 1987 69
and Economist
of a Ministry of Defence order worth £120 million in 1986 was
described as appeasement of loyalist terrorism by
238,
p. 7
p. 39.
1986
Swan Hunter representatives.
{Fortnight
p. 14).
Financial Times 1/7/88 p. ibid.
11/1/89
The
local
7.
p. 24.
CBI condemned
the cut in the rate of SCGs. {Fortnight 257,
December
p. 5.)
Over the period 1985-9 the unemployment
18%. These
rate fell
from approximately
figures have to be treated with caution given frequent
changes
in the
22%
to
method
of calculation.
HC 246,
70
FEA Tenth Report
71
Of course the effectiveness of the MacBride principles is a separate question from
1985/86.
1987. p. 17.
the motivation of their advocates.
72
See D. Richmond 'Discrimination: The
Politics' Fortnight
257 December 1987
pp. 15-16. ibid, and Rowthorn and Wayne 1988 p. 130. 74 FEA Eleventh Report 1986/87. HC 302, 1988, p. 35. 75 SACHR. 'Religious and Political Discrimination and Equality of Opportunity in Northern Ireland: Report on Fair Employment.' Cm. 237, 1987, p. 36. 76 ibid. 77 Financial Times 6/2/88 p. 5. 78 'Fair Employment in Northern Ireland.' Cm. 380, 1988. paras. 1:6-1:12. 79 ibid. para. 3:16. 80 This point was also made by Christopher McCrudden, a discrimination legislation expert and member of the SACHR. {Guardian 2/3/89).
73
81
HC Vol.
82
Figures from the Government's Expenditure Plans 1989/90-1991/2.
146 Col. 212 31/1/89.
Cm.
618,
1989. Chapter 18.
83
ibid.
84
Possible future work of the group
November 1989
pp. 28-30.
is
discussed by
its
chairman
in Fortnight 278,
8
Conclusion
The preceding chapters have considered the major policy decisions of successive British governments. The conclusion will attempt to tease out some of the principal
there
themes
are
in policy
continuities
and address three questions:
in
policy;
second,
the
first,
the extent to which
significance
and extent of on
bipartisanship between the two major parties; and third, whether the emphasis different elements of policy changes over time.
The question of continuity There are various ways to categorise the principal texts in their treatment of government policy towards Northern Ireland. Given the themes of this work a useful working distinction is between those which ascribe continuity or consistency to British policy and those which do not. A major review of the literature not be attempted here but rather an indication of basic themes. Of the texts which argue that there has been consistency in British policy, a principal group is that which may be described as 'anti-imperialist' and is represented by, among others, the work of Farrell, Reed and the IFM. Their thesis argues that the colonial history of British involvement in Ireland created a process of uneven development which resulted in a largely Protestant bloc in the north east whose will
1
material interest lay with the maintenance of the imperial link. Sectarianism if not solely, to divide the working class and the partition of was an artificial device which denied self-determination to the Irish people and allowed the maintenance of British imperial interests, both strategic and economic, and prevented the completion of the national revolution. Although the direct economic basis of imperialism has declined, it is still
functioned, largely Ireland
important to retain the Irish link to maintain the political state.
stability
of the British
This, in turn, provides one of the conditions for the continued accumu-
lation of capital.
It is
not only the impact in Ireland but the destabilising effect
British government policy in Northern Ireland 1 969-89
240 within Britain
if
the state were to be defeated in Northern Ireland which
important element in the 'anti-imperialist' analysis. then,
is
to bolster sectarianism
and
to repress
2
Republicanism
maintain working-class disunity and
facilitate capital
a continuity in British policy which
is
is
an
The role of the British state, in
accumulation.
an attempt to
Thus there is The
directed towards these related ends.
description above provides only a bare outline of the 'anti-imperialist' position. It
should be added, so as to avoid accusations of caricaturing
that there are differences of emphasis
3
this interpretation,
between writers of this school. The works
of O'Dowd, Rolston and Tomlinson provide some of the more sophisticated interpretations.
how
4
Their work, both individually and
tactical shifts in policy
continuity. state
from
5
However,
it
collectively, seeks to explain
can be explained within a framework of strategic
remains true to say that
a Marxist perspective, stresses
this school, in its focus
on the
common themes. The party in power is
of little significance since the actions of both are determined by the logic of capital
accumulation and the preservation of the this
is
state's integrity.
The practical
effect of
and attacks on sectarianism do not and cannot policy and that British governments are opposed to
that meaningful reforms
emanate from British disengagement from Ireland. Therefore, the structural imperatives informing government policy ensure basic continuities. An emphasis on continuity is not exclusive to the 'anti-imperialist' school. It is also highlighted by writers holding a pluralist view of the state. For example, Boyle and Hadden reject the arguments of the 'crisis management' school and 6 emphasise the consistency in policy since direct rule. Examples include criminalisation and Ulsterisation in security policy, the succession of powersharing initiatives and the legislative and institutional reforms aimed at countering discrimination. O'Leary also stresses the continuity of policy illustrated by the development of a bureaucratic strategy by the Northern Ireland Office. This strategy is composed of an 'internal track' which aims to secure the broadest possible agreement within Northern Ireland and an 'external track' which is intended to promote good relations with the Irish Republic and the USA over Irish policy in order to avoid international embarrassment.
The work
of
Bew and
Patterson
is
British policy can be categorised by
7
prominent among those who deny that its
consistency. Rather
it
is
marked by
inconsistencies which can be partly explained by the deliberate policy of govern-
ments distancing themselves from Northern Ireland after partition. 8 Bew and Patterson write from a left-wing perspective but their interpretation is very different from the 'anti-imperialist' school. This is because they deny the adequacy of theories of imperialism to conceptualise the relationship between the British and the different unionist classes and groupings. British policy
is
both
less rational
and
less
malign than the 'anti-imperialists'
believe as evidenced by their functionalist view of the state.
9
Bew and
Patterson
are critical of the failures of British policy to tackle the persistence of sectarianism
and the communal
disparities in life
chances and access to resources. However,
241
Conclusion
this failure is
an unintended consequence of the years of re -involvement rather
than deliberate policy resulting from a strategy of dividing the working class.
10
In
book on Northern Ireland Bew and Patterson argue: 'the problem of the involvement of the British state in Northern Ireland 11 This one quotation sums up lies not in its existence but in its specific forms'. their rejection of notions of continuity which are based on pro-Republican the conclusion to their most recent
analyses of British policy as having a coherent imperialist rationale.
The second group subscribed to the
common
of texts which deny continuity or consistency
'crisis
management'
thesis.
These do not
is
that
which
necessarily have a
ideological or theoretical position; however, they share a belief that
British policy tends to
be
reactive, contradictory
and lacking a long-term per-
The following examples illustrate varieties of this thinking. The New Forum of 1984 accuses British policy of immobility and having a short-
spective.
Ireland
term focus and employs the term 'crisis management'. nationalist
underpinning of the forum report as
it
12
This analysis
reflects the
believes British policy con-
centrated overmuch on an internal solution to the Northern Ireland problem
when an all-Ireland element is necessary. The agreement of 1985
did not prevent
such criticisms; in June 1989 Garrett FitzGerald accused Britain of lacking a policy for Northern Ireland and of employing 'inept and unco-ordinated actions'.
13
Soley, a former Labour spokesman on Northern Ireland, uses the term 'crisis 14 management' in a similar fashion. The failure of British governments to state openly what they wished to see in the long term and to commit themselves for or against the maintenance of the Union has resulted in a largely reactive policy of dealing with each crisis as it emerges. This argument had a resonance in the Labour criticisms of the government security measures of 1988 (see Chapter 7) 15 and in McNamara's attack on political lethargy. O'Malley, in the excellent The Uncivil Wars: Ireland Today does not employ the term 'crisis management' but he shares the belief that British policy is inconsistent.
Indeed 'A Question of Inconsistency'
dealing with Britain's role. This
is
is
the sub-title of the chapter
particularly evident in the constitutional
which have included trying to convey that Northern Ireland is an UK and also recognising the Irish dimension. 16 O'Malley's conclusion is that no policy will work unless it is part of a long-term plan, and that inconsistencies and the memories of historical duplicity serve only to worsen the problem, leaving no party in Northern Ireland with faith in British intentions or
vacillations
integral part of the
who argues that long-term from a British government explicitly stating a preference for a particular constitutional option for Northern Ireland. What, then, is the status of these particular interpretations? Two of the above appear to be inadequate. The 'anti-imperialist' school is not convincing in its assurances. In this, he closely resembles Soley
improvement can only
result
explanation of why the British state
Northern Ireland or as
to
still
has an economic or strategic interest in
why disengagement would have such
far-reaching
British government policy in Northern Ireland 1 969-89
242
domestic repercussions. Even of their
critics do,
it is
if one
(and
periodically
Republicanism but Secondly, the the degree
this is a
crisis
many
up with the maintengovernment suppresses the armed ideological and cultural expression) of
which in the last analysis the ance of the Union. No doubt the
state supports are tied
capital
struggle
accepts a Marxist view of the state, as
not evident that the interests (of particular fractions) of
British
the
question of a different order.
management theory
or reactive school does not cope with
of consistency in certain policy areas as
Boyle and
Hadden
rightly
indicate. In a recent work, Arthur Aughey argues that the Anglo-Irish Agreement did not mark a qualitative shift in policy since it was informed by four well-estab-
lished British assumptions
Ireland
is
different,
when
dealing with Northern Ireland. First, Northern
and second, and
relatedly,
prevailing procedures of the state. Third, desirable;
and
fourth, stability
is
to
it
should be excluded from the
some form of Irish unity is
natural and
be achieved by the establishment of political
balance through structures of consociational democracy and joint British and Irish
governmental intervention.
17
Therefore the events of 1985 are consistent
with established policy.
Aughey's third point
is
questionable but the others illustrate the consistencies
in policy. Part of the consistency/inconsistency debate
elements of policy are focused.
It is
perhaps most
strategic consistencies coexist with tactical shifts
depends upon which
fruitful to
argue that broader
determined by specific
political
conjunctures and by other, perhaps less significant, factors such as the disposition of a particular Secretary of State.
18
Since 1972
all
governments have
rejected the political integration of Northern Ireland into British politics and
advocated some form of devolved settlement. Within
been
a succession of tactical shifts.
The form and
this consistency there
has
structures of a devolved
administration have been subject to seemingly endless refinements largely condi-
tioned by what was considered politically practicable in the years following the collapse of the Sunningdale agreement. Similarly, the legitimate extent and form
of the Irish dimension moved between a minimalist role advocated by the British
government in the mid 1970s to the formal and institutionalised input accorded government by the 1985 agreement. Similar examples may be found in security policy. The form of emergency legislation has remained consistent since the British government assumed direct responsibility for security in 1972. Ulsterisation and criminalisation have also been maintained despite the occasional strains the former provoked between the British parties and the attempts of Republicans to mobilise opinion against the to the Irish
latter.
19
Again, this does not preclude more reactive or ad hoc measures such as
those of 1988 or the seeming paradox of the British government dismissing
Republican violence as criminally inspired and yet entering into 1972 or negotiating truces as in 1975.
political talks as
in
To
conclude, one must avoid the reductionism of the 'anti-imperialists' and
the failure of the adherents of inconsistency to highlight important continuities in
243
Conclusion
policy. British policy
is
best understood as having both a strategic continuity and
the capacity for tactical adjustment; a focus
on the
can blind one to the
latter
importance of the former.
The question of bipartisanship was argued that there is continuity of government would tend to fit with the common perception that a bipartisan approach towards Northern Ireland exists between the two parties which have formed administrations in the period 1969-89. However, the degree of bipartisanship is not constant and an approximate periodisation of In the preceding section
it
policy at the strategic level. This
strong and
weak bipartisanship
will
be considered below.
20
Prior to this the
and factors which tend put such an evaluation in context.
ideological dispositions of the two parties towards Ireland to reinforce bipartisanship will
The
be sketched
historical attitude of the
to
two major British parties towards Ireland
indicates important ideological differences.
been sympathetic varied.
One
to Irish nationalism
Elements
in the
Labour Party have
although the reasons for such sympathy are
strand of support was the inheritance of radical/liberal conceptions
of national self-determination which in the Irish context meant on a thirty-two
county basis.
A second
strand,
the unification of Ireland
is
which can overlap with the
first, is
a necessary precondition for the
the belief that
advance of socialism
21
A third and more pragmatic reason is that the Irish electorate in was (and is) predominantly Nationalist and Labour voting. It therefore 22 does Labour no harm to be identified with Irish Nationalism. The Conservative Party had formal links with the Unionist Party, as its full name indicates, and until February 1974 the latter's MPs accepted the Conservative whip and membership of the Conservative Council. However, this relationship was severely strained following the British government intervention in 1969 and the splintering and recasting of Unionist representation with the emergence of new parties tended to undermine Conservative-Unionist linkages. It should be emphasised that the respective nationalist and unionist orientations of the Labour and Conservative parties were most frequently manifested among backbenchers and then only among a minority of members. Front bench influence has been marginal and correspondingly influence on policy making weak. Irish neutrality in the Second World War was an important influence on Labour front bench sentiments and the Ireland Act 1949 revealed the relative weakness of the pro-nationalist lobby in the Labour Party in its
in Ireland.
Britain
opposition to the restatement of the recognition of partition. Similarly, servative
Con-
support for the Union did not imply uncritical support for the
This is evidenced by the which have proved unpalatable to much of the Unionist community were introduced by Conservative governments. Of the factors which tend to reinforce bipartisanship, a major one is that both
aspirations or sensibilities of Unionist representatives. fact that since
1969 the
political initiatives
British government policy in Northern Ireland 1 969-89
244
parties accept the innate 'otherness' of Northern Ireland. this position is that
because of its historical development,
The its
general thrust of
sectarian divisions,
former devolved government and its physical separation from Britain, Northern Ireland is different from any other constituent part of the United its
Kingdom.
The
23
Northern Ireland has a history of devolution, a common land and 'different' politics is incontrovertible.
fact that
frontier with another sovereign state
The
inference drawn from this by successive governments since 1972
exceptional
(i.e.
non-British)
political
structures
are
is
that
necessary to ensure
political stability. At no time in this period did the party in government advocate the return of a devolved administration based solely on the rule of the majority party or the restoration of local authority powers with the majority party exercising sole control. This is justified on the grounds that the lack of majority party alternation in Northern Ireland and the permanent minority position of the Nationalist community renders 'normal' political
long-term
structures unsuitable.
The
24
'otherness' of Northern Ireland
two major British in the province.
parties to accept
25 It is
was
also reflected in the refusal of the
members from
there or to contest elections
debatable whether the exceptional nature of Northern
Ireland's confessional politics British parties to organise or
is
reinforced or even caused by the failure of
whether the refusal
reflects the perceived lack
support for British parties precisely because Northern Ireland
is
of
'different'.
However, the important point is that the parties which formulate Northern Ireland policy and are responsible for its administration are not in electoral competition in the province. Hence they have no need to contrast their policies with those of their electoral opponents in an attempt to win the support of those most directly affected by the policies - the Northern Ireland electorate. The lack of any electoral competition does not necessarily determine the mainten-
ance of bipartisanship, but provides no incentive for bipartisanship to be challenged. to
26
In any other area of policy making the opposition has an incentive
oppose the government
in
an attempt to gain electoral advantage;
this is not
the case as regards Northern Ireland.
There
is some evidence that maintaining bipartisanship per se was considered be of importance since disputes and acrimony between the parties could have an adverse effect on the situation in Northern Ireland. This seems of particular
to
Hogg, Lord Hailsham, emphasised the importance of party agreement and the
salience in the earlier period of British reinvolvement. In 1970 Quintin later
serious consequences in Northern Ireland
himself and Callaghan, the shadow April 1971 Wilson its
commended
predecessor embodied
Home
if
Home
there were disagreement between Secretary, over Irish policy.
27
In
the government for adhering to the policies of
in the declaration
of 1969 and in 1972 Maudling, the
Secretary, attached 'very great and serious importance' in trying to
present a united point of view from Westminster. 28 Between 1972 and 1974
245
Conclusion
Whitelaw set great store by keeping his Labour shadow, Rees, informed about 29 government deliberations. The implication was that as the situation in Northern Ireland was so serious it was necessary to approach it in a spirit of accord. The logic of this position is far from clear. There is no prima facie reason why the worsening of party relations in the Commons would have a resonance in Northern Ireland and worsen the situation. This could be an example of the insularity of parliamentarians and an overestimation of the impact of their deliberations on the wider political stage.
This factor should not be overemphasised as party relations appear to worsen in is in part a reflection of a general ideological divide which
the early 1980s. This
was developing and in part a reflection of Labour's reappraisal of Irish policy, both in the security and constitutional fields, in itself a reflection of the stalemate in the north.
Lastly, the experience of governing tends to act as a converging influence
the parties and to reinforce bipartisanship.
more
when
closely
indicate.
in
Thus
on
the parties resemble each other
government than stances adopted
in opposition
might
Experience in government and the constraints of limited policy options
can act as a tempering influence on a party when in opposition and mute criticisms of the government.
the Irish question
is
There
is
an unfortunate historical
intentions scope for improving things intractability
its
on the front benches that legacy and despite the best
a shared feeling
is
limited.
The
sobering experience of the
of the problem revealed to the party in government means there
is
a
corresponding reluctance to launch wholesale assaults on government when next in opposition.
Bipartisanship
support
may be
defined as the tendency of the party in opposition to
or, slightly differently,
towards Ireland.
The
not to oppose the policy of the government
degree of bipartisanship cannot be exactly quantified but
the voting and the stance adopted in debates
on
constitutional policy by the
opposition provide an approximate guide to relations between government and opposition.
It is
clear that the Conservative initiatives of
Sunningdale and the
Anglo-Irish Agreement marked high points in bipartisanship. Labour voted to
March 1973 which outlined the Sunningdale and the third reading of the Northern Ireland Constitution Bill which
support both the White Paper of strategy
was
to give legislative effect to the proposals.
members who saw
it
With the exception of some Labour voted
as deferring the possibility of unification,
overwhelmingly with the government to support the agreement of 1985; the motion being carried by 473 votes to 47. The reasons for this support are two-fold. Both initiatives reflected the parties' shared perception of Northern
Ireland as being different and both appeared at the time major breakthroughs in Irish policy. Constitutional activism is often a factor in reinforcing bipartisanship;
a perception by the opposition of quietism, fatalism or lethargy government is often a source of tension. 30
The two
initiatives
on the part of
of the Thatcher administration preceding the agreement,
British government policy in Northern Ireland 1 969-89
246
Atkins' Constitutional Conference and Prior's Assembly, also received 31
Three Labour support was more
support.
observations should be critical
than
made concerning
Labour
this period. Firstly,
time of Sunningdale and the
at the
agreement. This, however, was related to questions of detail* concerning the proposals rather than the substance and thrust of them. Secondly, the govern-
ment's policy was subject to more criticism from the Conservative integrationist wing, which challenged both the theoretical basis and the practicality of renewed devolutionary attempts, than from the Labour opposition. Thirdly, Labour had
made no practical difference subsequent Bill. 'Unity by consent' is White Paper and to its policy and did not conflict with devolutionary rather than a aspiration perhaps an formally adopted 'unity by consent' in 1981 but this
response to Prior's
proposals.
Relations between the Conservative government and Labour opposition were
most strained in the period 1970-72 preceding direct rule and from 1987. This can be related to the point made above. Criticisms focused upon the lack of political progress and, especially in the latter period, a feeling that the
ment had strategy.
settled for
33 It
must be emphasised
that bipartisanship
period marked a radical break in perceptions opposition. In
govern-
containment rather than trying to formulate a long-term
of,
was weakened; neither
or policy towards, Ireland by the
1970-72 Labour was concerned that the government was failing to on Stormont to reform governmental structures to
exert sufficient pressure
accommodate
the minority, but
it
did not advocate direct rule or any other
no practical alternative to the was the perceived style and pace of government policy, rather than its substance, which provoked the tensions between the parties. The only period between 1969 and 1989 when it appeared that government and opposition were developing fundamentally different positions concerning constitutional policy was in 1977-9. Rees's Convention strategy of 1974-5 was self-consciously seen as having a continuity with the Conservative policy which had preceded it and Pym, the Conservative spokesman, supported Labour's 34 rejection of integration. Pym's successor Neave, however, adopted a much more sceptical approach towards devolution and instead advocated a structure of
constitutional alternatives. In the later period
agreement was posited.
It
regional councils, a tier above the existing district councils, to democratise the
system of local government in Northern Ireland.
The implications of this development have to be qualified.
It was argued above temper opposition criticism and the integrationist roots among the Conservative front bench were shallow. Once returned to office in 1979 the regional council proposal was dropped and devolutionary trends were reasserted. This was in part due to the death of Neave which deprived the integrationists of front bench representation. Even without
that the experience of
this
loss,
dominated
it
is
government tends
to
questionable whether integrationist tendencies would have
in the post-
1979 period. Also,
it
is
unlikely that the break in
bipartisanship had developed to such an extent that the Conservatives would have
247
Conclusion
voted against any Labour devolutionary proposals, especially
spread support in Northern Ireland.
To
conclude,
it
can be seen that the factors acting
as outlined above have held
if
they had wide-
35
good although
to reinforce bipartisanship
does not
this
mean
perceptions are identical or that the degree of opposition support
is
that party
constant.
The
most important factor reinforcing bipartisanship has been the presentation by government of concrete proposals, especially if they appear to have international 36 Although Labour is generally more disposed towards unification approbation. this is not an important factor in policy formulation. The Irish dimension was downplayed by Labour itself when in office 1974-9 and did not prevent its support for Conservative policy in 1979-83 which similarly ignored its institutionalisation.
In the field of security policy there
perceptions are held by both parties.
It is
is
a parallel in that certain
common
important to note that the Labour Party
has never endorsed the legitimacy of political violence which has meant that disputes over security policy are not informed by major ideological differences
concerning militant
Republicanism.
However,
this
does
not
mean
that
differences do not exist between the parties concerning both the use of
emergency
legislation
and ad hoc security measures.
Relations between the parties and the degree of bipartisanship can be broadly
divided into three phases.
From 1970 to 1972
relations
were generally poor; from
the introduction of direct rule to the early 1980s there
was agreement between
the parties about the substance of policy although certain developments, such as the
ceasefire
of 1975, occasioned strains, and from the
1980s relations
deteriorated. Let us consider these phases in turn.
The drift
period preceding direct rule saw a general Labour discontent with the
of Conservative policy, reflected in votes against the government in
November 1971 and March
1972. Specific concerns related to the operation of
internment and the belief that the government failed adequately to supervise the 37
A parallel may be drawn with constitutional Labour criticisms did not mark a rejection of policy but the shortcomings of government implementation. For example, Labour's position on internment was confused and it was not clear whether they would have rejected security activities of Stormont.
policy in that
its
use
if in office.
The
38
introduction of direct rule and the strategy of criminalisation and gradual
and ease strains between the Labour did not uncritically accept the Emergency Provisions Act 1973 which formed the legislative basis of criminalisation, abstaining on second and third readings and moving amendments; but in subsequent years, at least to the early 1980s, there was no significant difference between the front benches concerning emergency legislation. Labour's position, if anything, became less 39 critical. The only sustained challenge to the consensus over emergency legislation came from a small group of Labour backbenchers, which in the 1970s never Ulsterisation tended to reinforce bipartisanship
parties.
British government policy in Northern Ireland 1 969-89
248
exceeded thirty-four in number, supported by Gerry Fitt and the occasional Liberal member. Their opposition centred on the erosion of civil liberties effected by the legislation and that exceptional judicial procedures could
undermine respect for the law and militate against the support for the security forces on which a policy of police primacy was premised. In the early 1980s Labour began to adopt a more critical position which culminated in opposition to the renewal of the PTA for the first time in 1983 and to the EPA in the following year. This clearly marks a break in policy but again the disjuncture between opposition stances and the realities of govern-
ment must be borne in mind and it is by no means a certainty that a future Labour government would repeal the two laws. In explaining this shift of policy three factors should be considered. Firstly, the persistence of the Northern Ireland 'problem' and the
Labour Party Ireland.
40
in general,
Some
sterility
and the
Conservative
of the malign influence of the of Livingstone, the Labour
of Mason's tenure was an impetus for the
left in particular, to
reappraise policy towards
members saw the Labour left
GLC
Party
move
as evidence
which included the well publicised sympathy 41 leader, for Sinn Fein. However, while it is
had made gains within the constituency parties in the early 1980s and had often adopted a more explicitly pro-Republican position, this would not explain the movement of the front bench which was fairly adept at resisting the demands of the left at the level of policy making. The second factor is that party spokesmen, including Hattersley and Archer, not of the left, were voicing concerns over the seeming permanence of the Acts and the complacency of the government. Votes against renewal were often related to the lack of government concern over reviews and insufficient attention to the true that the
left
implications for
civil liberties.
Thirdly, the post- 1979 period politics. It
is
often seen to
mark
the
end of consensus
has been suggested that Thatcher was less concerned than previous
premiers to maintain inter-party accord which also affected party relations over 42
Labour criticisms concerning the authoritarian drift of the government were mirrored by Conservative attacks on the irresponsibility of Labour Ireland.
by its failure to face up to the realities of terrorism. Such antagonisms are manifest in the post-agreement period with Labour hostility to a number of government decisions and actions, including the Ryan 43 case, the Stalker affair and the succession of security measures of 1988. Not only was opposition to emergency legislation renewal maintained but Labour
illustrated
felt that the government was employing a reactive and ill-conceived policy of containment since it lacked a political strategy.
In conclusion,
three
points
are
worthy of emphasis.
inter-party accord has characterised bipartisanship. Secondly, strains are tional policy as the differing party
Irish
policy to
Firstly,
sufficient
allow one to talk of
more evident in security than constituemphases on Maw and order' surface.
Thirdly, caution must be exercised in any assessment to separate the rhetoric of
!
249
Conclusion
opposition from
more thorough-going divergences
in the policy prescriptions
of
the parties.
Periodisation of government policy
The
work have considered four main areas of governeconomic and social. There is evidence that successive governments, as shown in policy documents and statements from ministers, believe that the different areas of policy interrelate and have an impact 44 However, it must be stressed that there are methodological on each other. problems in establishing whether this emphasis on interrelationship is reflected in policy formulation. For example, it is difficult to demonstrate a relationship in policy areas through contemporaneous developments. Relatively high public expenditure, the use and reform of specific industrial support agencies in Northern Ireland and the survival of corporatist structures illustrates that the government sees economic regeneration as part of a wider attempt to deal with the problem, since it is arguable that such measures are not solely a response to the economic problems of a depressed region but are informed by the hope, if nothing stronger, that economic revival will have a spin-off effect in ameliorating political alienation and the incidence of violence. However, much of economic policy, especially the use of public expenditure, is of an on-going nature and therefore lacks the high-profile character of constituprincipal chapters of this
ment policy:
constitutional, security,
tional initiatives. In a similar fashion,
many of
the social policy reforms con-
sidered in previous chapters involve specific institutional changes.
Once imple-
government perceived 45 there was little scope for further change in these areas. The basic point to be emphasised is that periods of inactivity in the development or restructuring of agencies and institutions in the areas of social and economic policy cannot necessarily be cited as evidence that governments do not consider these factors to be of importance in overall Northern Ireland policy. mented, often as a response
to specific grievances, the
In a fairly obvious way, constitutional initiatives are of a different order than
those in the economic and social policy arena. sincerity
It is
not to doubt government
concerning the value of initiatives to point out that there are imperatives
informing them, and benefits to be gained, which are independent from their relationship to other areas of policy.
One is the somewhat crude and unscientific
Any who was in office for an average of two to three years
but politically significant factor of being seen to be doing something. Secretary of State after 1972
without presenting proposals would run the risk of accusations of either defeatism or complacency by the opposition and of being seen to endorse direct
form of administration. A second factor is that on financial resources unlike further attempts to regenerate the economy and/or tackle the economic disadvantages of the minority community.
rule as an acceptable long-term
such
initiatives
make no
great claim
British government policy in Northern Ireland 1 969-89
250
The developments in the four policy areas detailed in previous chapters would suggest that government statements that the Northern Ireland 'problem'
more than mere
is
However, the different nature of the policy areas precludes a simplistic evaluation of their interconnection by the process of assessing whether legislation or policy changes act in concert. With these considerations in mind, specific phases in the period 1969-89 can be identified when certain areas of policy had a higher profile than others and when the emphasis moved between the 'internal' context and the bilateral one involving multifaceted are
rhetoric.
the Republic of Ireland.
The
first
phase of government policy covers the years 1969-72.
The principal
were an emphasis on specific institutional and legislative reforms as attempts to provide an internal solution to the legitimate grievances of United Kingdom citizens and the residual role of constitutional characteristics of this period
The
initiatives.
amenable
'problem' appeared to have well-defined causes which were
to specific prescriptions.
movement could be remedied by
The
articulated grievances of the civil rights
a combination of the extension of British
standards of liberal democracy and specific reforms reflecting the 'exceptional'
communal
divisions.
In essence there was a strategy of modernising and
centralising the structure of local administration
which was
blatant aspects of discrimination and provide for the services.
The
more
to mitigate the
most
efficient provisions
of
46
failure
direct rule in
of these reforms to prevent the escalation of violence resulted in
1972 and the beginning of the second phase.
negotiations which culminated in Sunningdale
government
The
process of
marked the recognition by the
that the 'problem' required a recasting of political institutions to
include guaranteed minority representation in any newly established assembly.
This was accompanied by a change of emphasis from solely internalised politics to their internationalisation via the proposed Council of Ireland structure. This is an important development in that it was a recognition by the British government that the question of national identity
was central and the Northern Ireland
question could not be resolved (solely) through the machinery of internal reform.
The
had a resonance in the combining policies across different areas. The power-sharing structure was intended to remedy the lack of nationalist confidence in the security forces, the Council of Ireland was to be granted a consultative role on policing strategy and, perhaps most importantly, both governments undertook joindy to consider ways to deal with the problem of 47 terrorists evading prosecution by crossing the border. It should be emphasised internationalisation of constitutional reform
security field and can thus be seen as a coherent attempt at
that such developments did not preclude further internal reforms
(i.e.
those
which could occur independendy from the new relationship with the Republic) such as the working party on discrimination set up in 1972. The important point is
that the
Irish
government had accepted the legitimacy and
dimension.
utility
of a formalised
251
Conclusion
The
third phase covers the years
differentiated
from
its
1974
This phase may be broadly
to 1980.
predecessor in two ways.
Firstly, as a reaction to the failure
of power sharing, internal attempts to deal with Northern Ireland once more
came to the
fore with a relegation of the direct input
succession
of abortive
constitutional
dimension. Secondly, there was
little
initiatives
movement in
from the Irish Republic. The downplayed the Irish all the area of social policy. This
can be explained by a lack of room for manoeuvre after the concentrated spate of reform in the period 1969-72. The only major change to supplement the agencies and legislation aimed at securing formal equality and the eradication of discriminatory practices was the Fair
Employment Act 1976 which had
genesis in the working party report of the previous phase. oversimplification to characterise this phase as
It
one of quietism informed by a
perception that no radical breakthroughs were on the agenda.
A
fourth phase
may be dated from
late
its
would not be an
48
1980 with the announcement of the Kingdom and the Irish
establishment of joint studies between the United
all the major policy areas (viz. citizens' rights, security matters, economic co-operation and possible new institutional structures). A forum for consultation was institutionalised in the InterGovernmental Council of 1981. Although ministerial contacts existed between the two governments when the
Republic in
Irish
dimension was excluded from constitutional
the council
is
of significance as
inadequate and
it
was within
it
initiatives,
was recognition
that
this structure that the
agreement was established. The quietism of the
late
the development of
an internal policy was
conference of the 1985
1970s had contained the
of violence but had not dealt with two other problems which made the government vulnerable to criticism; the lack of political progress and the con-
level
tinued disparities in Catholic and Protestant living standards. In addition to these
strikes
and the
electoral
unemployment
rates
and related
concerns, the aftermath of the hunger
emergence of Sinn Fein
in
1982 added
to the difficulties
of sustaining a policy of 'sitting tight' and hoping for gradual improvements.
The 1985 agreement,
the conclusion of this phase of trying to re-think ways
forward, had parallels with the policy of the Sunningdale period. Firstly,
marked the reintroduction of the
'internal'
management of Northern
it
Ireland
with incentives for the revitalisation of internal structures. Secondly, the political
involvement of the Republic was premised upon against terrorism, in particular
its
its
co-operation in the fight
undertaking to accede to the European Con-
vention on the Suppression of Terrorism. Thirdly, there was an undertaking to
consider different policy areas as a whole; an indication that the government
continued to recognise the multifaceted nature of adequate policy prescriptions for
Northern Ireland.
The
final
1985 and
49
phase may be dated from the signing of the agreement in November
its
maintenance
illustrates that the
government has endorsed
that the
principle of inter-governmental
management of Northern Ireland. However,
fact that the role
falls
of the Republic
the
short of any administrative responsibility for
1
.
British government policy in Northern Ireland 1 969-89
252 the North
means
that internal or unilateral initiatives
by the British government
remain, as in previous periods, crucial in the formulation of policy. This
is
by two policy developments which are of importance in the postagreement period; the rediscovery by government of the persistence of commuillustrated
nal disparities in
unemployment and
and the willingness of governments
the related inadequacy of earlier legislation
to utilise
ad hoc security measures represent-
ing the politics of the latest outrage.
To conclude, governments of both parties have maintained that constitutional or security initiatives in isolation are insufficient; they must reinforce each other
and be bolstered by economic regeneration and social reform. However, this does not mean that policy formulation can work as an integrated whole. A consistent attempt to formulate integrated policy is vitiated by the fact that Northern Ireland has largely remained of marginal importance to British policy 50 makers. Events within Northern Ireland have frequently undermined, and forced reappraisals of, policy. This helps to explain tactical shifts within the same area of policy and changing emphases between different policies over the last twenty years.
Notes
2
Reed 1 984, Reed 1984,
3
See Martin 1982
1
Farrell 1980, Irish
pp.
Freedom Movement 1 983
384 and 374. for a consideration of the 'anti-imperialist' position
and the work
of Bew and Patterson for a critique.
4
O'Dowd, Rolston and Tomlinson
5
Rolston 1986.
1980, Rolston 1986.
6 Boyle and Hadden 1985 p. 66. See management. 7 O'Leary 1987a. 8 Bew and Patterson 1985 pp. 88-95. 9 O'Leary op. cit. p. 18. 10 Bew and Patterson 1982-3. 1 Bew and Patterson 1985 p. 144. 12
New Ireland Forum
13
Interview with the Independent 7/6/89 p.
14
Soleyl985.
15
HC Vol.
later
in
section for theories of crisis
1984a. Section 4:3.
16
148 Col. 917 8/3/89. O'Malley 1983 pp. 205-6.
17
Augheyl989p.33.
18
The
broader strategic consistency
fits
6.
with O'Leary's internal and external track
model. 19
Strains over security policy and criminalisation arose in the period of the
ceasefire
when Rees was
Secretary of State.
The hunger
strikes
height of Sinn Fein mobilisation over criminalisation.
20
See below
in this section for a definition
IRA
of 1980-81 marked the
of bipartisanship.
253
Conclusion
This
21
is
the 'orthodox
the position adopted by James Connolly
left'
who inspired what may be termed
analysis of the Irish situation.
was Faulkner's belief about Harold Wilson. Faulkner 1978 p. 130. See parliamentary statements by Rees HC Vol. 903 Col. 54 12/1/76, Prior HC Vol. 72 Col. 853 28/4/85 and Soley HC Vol. 87 Col. 819 26/1 1/85. 24 Prior ibid. Alison HC Vol. 988 Col. 988 9/7/80 and Pym HC Vol. 874 Col. 898 22
e.g., this
23
3/6/74.
The
25 tions in
situation
is
changing with the establishment of model Conservative associa-
some Northern Ireland
constituencies.
See Roberts 1987 for a further consideration of this argument. Hogg HC Vol. 799 Col. 3 10 7/4/70 and Callaghan 1973 p. 65. Wilson HC Vol. 815 Col. 272 6/4/71 and Maudling HC Vol. 833 Col. 1086
26 27 28
20/3/72. Interview with Rees, London, 10/12/87.
29 30
This
31
For
32 33
See,
is
important in the post-agreement period; see later in this section for
details.
details of these proposals see ch. 5. e.g.,
HC Vol. 23 Col. 485 10/5/82. HC Vol. 917 Col. 917 Col. 917 8/3/89 and Labour
See McNamara's comments
accusations of the government's political bankruptcy in the debate on restrictions to the right of silence.
34 Rees 35
'Our
Compare with
policies will
HC Vol. 87 Col.
thetical
This
is
FitzGerald's criticisms, see note 13 above.
be firmly based on those of our predecessors
in office.'
See
also
1465 4/4/74.
supported by Atkins (Interview, London, 8/12/87). Although
and would depend on the form of the proposals, he thought
Conservatives would have opposed devolutionary initiatives
if
it
it is
hypo-
unlikely that the
they had support in
Northern Ireland.
36 to
This is particularly true of the Anglo-Irish Agreement. Opposition support is
likely
be forthcoming for a policy which has a large degree of international support.
37 38 39
See It
of State,
40
ch. 3 for details.
ibid.
was of course Labour who introduced the PTA and Mason, a Labour Secretary widely considered to have been one of the most 'hawkish' concerning security.
is
After electoral defeat in 1979 there was a reappraisal of policy by the
left in
many
1974-9 government. 41 See, e.g., the attacks by Stanbrook, Fraser and Waddington (who speaks of Labour's decay) in the PTA renewal debate in 1983. HC Vol. 38 Cols. 564-52 7/3/83. 42 Interview with Orme, Manchester, 21/9/87. 43 See the section on security ch. 7. 44 Examples include a statement in the Commons by Callaghan at the time of
areas in light of the perceived failings of the
Westminster's
initial
intervention
(HC
788 Col. 48 13/10/69), and White Paper of Cmnd 5259 para. 24) and that of 1982 Devolution' Cmnd 8541). Atkins and Prior
Vol.
1973 ('Northern Ireland Constitutional Proposals' (Northern Ireland: frequently
made
A Framework
for
reference to the inter-relationship of different policy areas. See Atkins
HC Vol. 988 Col. 552 9/7/80 and HC Vol. 22 Col. 870 28/4/82; Prior HC Vol. 21 693 5/4/82 and HC Vol. 23 Col. 470 10/5/82. 45
Col.
Examples include the establishment of the Housing Executive and the Community
Relations Commission, electoral reform and local government reorganisation.
British government policy in Northern Ireland 1 969-89
254
46 For details of the arguments for local government changes see 'Report of the Review Body on Local Government in Northern Ireland' Cmd 546 Belfast 1970. (Macrory Report). 47 The outcome was the establishment of the Joint Law Enforcement Commission which Britain hoped would result in agreement concerning extradition. For further details see security section in ch. 4.
48
In particular
Mason seemed
to believe general
economic regeneration rather than
further anti-discrimination measures was the key to improvements in the position of the
minority community and he also tended to downplay the significance of constitutional initiatives.
49
The areas mentioned in the agreement were: political matters, security and related
matters, legal matters including the administration of justice and the promotion of
cross-border co-operation (Article
2(a)).
The
Irish
government was
consider the 'role and composition' of bodies such as the
also permitted to
SACHR, the FEA, the EOC, the
Police Complaints Board and the Police Authority for Northern Ireland (Article 6).
50 For Cabinet attitudes to the Northern Ireland question see the statement of Sir Frank Cooper, former Permanent Secretary in the NICS, in Hennessy 1986 p. 168.
Appendix A: Principal legislation
1969-89
Principal constitutional
and security legislation 1969-89
Constitutional (including electoral reform
Date
and White Paper proposals)
Security (excluding annual renewals of
emergency legislation)
1969 Electoral
Law Act (NI)
Ulster Defence Regiment Act
Local Government Act (NI)
1970 Criminal Justice (Temporary Provisions) Act (NI)
Public Order
(Amendment) Act (NI)
Police Act (NI)
1971 Electoral
Law Act (NI) 1972
Local Government Act (NI)
Prosecution of Offences (NI) Order
Northern Ireland (Temporary
Detention of Terrorists (NI) Order
Provisions) Act
Northern Ireland (Border
Poll)
Northern Ireland Act
Act
1973
Northern Ireland (Border
Poll)
Order
Northern Ireland (Emergency Provisions) Act
'Northern Ireland Constitutional Proposals',
Cmnd 5259
Northern Ireland Constitution Act
256
British
government policy
in
Northern Ireland 1 969-89
Principal constitutional and security legislation 1969-89 Constitutional (including electoral reform
Date
and White Paper proposals)
continued
Security (excluding annual renewals of
emergency legislation)
1974
'The Northern Ireland Constitution',
Cmnd 5675 Northern Ireland Act
Prevention of Terrorism (Temporary Provisions) Act
1975 Criminal Jurisdiction Act
Northern Ireland (Emergency Provisions)
(Amendment) Act
1976 Prevention of Terrorism (Temporary Provisions) Act
1977 Police (NI)
Order
1978 Northern Ireland (Emergency Provisions) Act
1979
House of Commons
(Redistribution of
Seats) Act
'The Government of Northern
Ireland:
A Working Paper for a Conference', Cmnd 7763 1980
'The Government of Northern
Ireland:
Proposals for Further Discussion',
Cmnd 7950 1981
1982
A Framework for Cmnd 8541
'Northern Ireland: Devolution',
Northern Ireland Act 1983
1984 Prevention of Terrorism (Temporary Provisions) Act
1985
'Agreement between the Govt of the UK of Great Britain and Northern Ireland and the Govt of the Republic
of Ireland',
Cmnd 9657
257
AppendixA Principal constitutional and security legislation 1969-89 Constitutional (including electoral reform
Date
andWh ite Paper proposals)
continued
Security (excluding annual renewals of
emergency legislation)
1986 Northern Ireland Assembly (Dissolution)
Order 1987
Northern Ireland (Emergency Provisions) Act
Public Order (NI) Order Police (NI)
Order
1988 Criminal Evidence (NI) Order
1989 Elected Authorities (NI) Act
Prevention of Terrorism (Temporary Provisions) Act
British government policy in Northern Ireland 1 969-89
258
Principal economic and social policy legislation 1969-89 Economic
Date
Social (including centralising of local government functions)
1969 Ministry of Community Relations Act (NI)
Community
Relations Act (NI)
Commissioner
for
Complaints Act (NI)
Parliamentary Commissioner Act (NI)
1970 Industrial Investments
(Amendment)
Social
Needs (Grants) Act (NI)
Prevention of Incitement to Hatred Act
Act (NI)
(NI)
1971
Housing Executive (NI) Act
Development Act (NI) (Amendment)
Industries
Industrial Investments
Act(NI) 1972 Education and Libraries (NI) Order
Finance Corporation (NI) Order
Health and Personal Social Services (NI) Order
Planning (NI) Order
1973 Enterprise Ulster (NI) Order
1974 1975
Community Relations (Amendment)
Shipbuilding Industry (NI) Order
(NI) Order
Shipbuilding Industry (No. 2) (NI)
Order 1976 Industrial
Development (NI) Order
Housing (NI) Order Fair Employment (NI) Act 1977 1978
Industries
Development (NI) Order
Housing (NI) Order 1979
Aircraft
and Shipbuilding Industries
(NI) Order
Appendix A
259
Principal economic and social policy legislation 1969-89 Economic
Date
continued
Social (including centralising of local government functions)
1980 1981 Industrial Investment
Housing (NI) Order
(Amendment)
(NI) Order
Enterprise Zones (NI) Order
1982 Industrial
Development (NI) Order 1983
Housing (NI) Order 1984 1985
1986
Housing (NI) Order 1987 1988
Housing (NI) Order
General Assistance Grants (Abolition) (NI) Order
1989 Fair
Employment (NI) Act
Appendix B:
and
Principal constitutional initiatives
party positions
Legislation/debate
NI (Temporary Provisions) Bill
Intro-
Official
duced
opposition
by
response
Remarks (R
=
Reading)
1
Cons.
Abstention
2R:9 Conservatives oppose 3R:4 Conservatives oppose 2 3R:8 Labour members oppose
Cons.
Support
2 Conservatives,
Cons.
Support
1
1972
NI (Border
Poll) Bill
1972
(23/11/72)
Motion
to
Paper,
approve White
Cmnd 5259,
1
Labour
member oppose motion
28-29/3/73
NI
Constitution Bill 1973
Cons.
Abstention
2R:
1
Labour, 2 Conservatives
oppose (24/5/73)
Support
3R:
1
Labour,
1
Conservative
oppose (3/7/73)
NI
1974
Bill
2R and 3R
Lab.
Support
No division on 2R and 3R
Lab.
Support
38 Labour members oppose
15/7/74
House of Commons
2R
28/11/78
(Redistribution of Seats)
1978
Bill
NI
2
Bill
1982
Cons.
2
Abstention
2R: 21 Conservatives oppose
Abstention
3R: 3 Labour 19 Conservative
Support
14 Labour, 20 Conservatives
10/5/82 1
oppose 29/6/82 Anglo-Irish Agreement
(Motion
to
Cons.
Approve)
oppose
27/11/85 Notes:
x
Includes
2 1 teller.
Includes 2
tellers.
1
Appendix C: Principal security legislation
and party
positions
Legislation/
Intro-
Debate
duced
Remarks
Opposition
by
Debate following internment
Lab.
22/23/9/71
Labour did
68 Labour members helped
not divide
force division and voted for
House
adjournment
Callaghan motion attacking
Govt security policy 29/11/71 Motion condemning Govt
Lab.
Defeated
First time
Labour divided House
by Govt Lab.
Defeated by Govt
over lack of urgency in security policy 1/2/72
NI
Bill
23/2/72
Detention of Terrorists (NI)
Cons.
Supported
No division on 2R or 3R
Cons.
Abstained
32 Labour opposed
Cons.
Abstained
2
1
Order 1972 11/12/72
NI (Emergency Provisions) Bill
on2R
1973
Labour voted opposed
in favour; 15
17/4/73 Abstained
6 Labour opposed
1
on3R 5/7/73
EPA
1973 Continuance
2
Lab.
Supported
18 Labour opposed
Lab.
Supported
No vote on 2R or 3R
Lab.
Supported
23 Labour opposed
2
Lab.
Supported
10 Labour opposed
2
Order 1974-9/7/74 Prevention of Terrorism
(TP)
Bill
EPA
1973 2nd Continuance
28/1 1/74
Order 1974 5/12/74 1974 Continuance Order 1975 19/5/75
PTA
262
British
government policy in Northern Ireland 1969-89
Appendix C
continued
Legislation/
Intro-
Debate
duced
Remarks
Opposition
Lab.
Supported
No vote taken
EP Amendment Bill 2R 27/6/75; 3R 14/7/75
Lab.
Supported
No vote taken
Prevention of Terrorism (TP)
Lab.
Supported
16 Labour opposed
Lab.
Supported
No vote taken
Lab.
Supported
1 1
Lab.
Supported
No vote taken
Lab.
Supported
No vote taken
1977
Lab.
Supported
16 Labour opposed
1977
Lab.
Supported
No vote taken
Lab.
Supported
No vote taken
Lab.
Supported
23 Labour opposed
Lab.
Supported
No debate
Lab.
Supported
1 1
Lab.
Supported
34 Labour opposed
2
Cons.
Supported
19 Labour opposed
2
Cons.
Supported
18 Labour opposed
1980
Cons.
Supported
26 Labour opposed
2
EPA
1978 Continuance Order 1980 22/7/80
Cons.
Supported
21 Labour opposed
2,4
EPA
Cons.
Supported
22 Labour opposed
2,4
EPA
1973 Continuance Order
1975 26/6/75
Bill
2R 26/1 1/75
EPA 2nd
2
3
Continuance Order
1975 11/12/75 Prevention of Terrorism (TP) Bill
Labour opposed 2
3R 28/1/76
EPA Continuance
Order 1976
2/7/76
EPA 2nd
Continuance Order
1976 17/12/76
PTA Continuance Order
2
9/3/77
EPA Continuance Order 30/6/77
EPA 2nd
Continuance Order
1977 8/12/77
PTA Continuance Order 1978
2
15/3/78
EPA
1978 Continuance Order
1978 30/6/78
EPA 2nd Continuance Order
Labour opposed 2
1978 6/12/78
PTA Continuance Order
1979
21/3/79
EPA
1978 Continuance Order
1979 2/7/79
EPA
1978 2nd Continuance Order 1979 11/12/79
PTA Continuance Order
1
4/3/80
1978 2nd Continuance Order 1980 10/12/80
l
Appendix
C
263
Appendix C
continued
Legislation/
Intro-
Debate
duced
Remarks
Opposition
by
PTA Continuance Order 1
8/3/8
1981
Cons.
5
Abstained
37 Labour opposed
2
26 Labour opposed
2
16 Labour opposed
2
but would divide
House over motion
EPA
1978 Continuance Order
Cons.
Abstained
Cons.
Abstained
Cons.
Abstained
52 Labour opposed
2
Cons.
Abstained
18 Labour opposed
2
Cons.
Abstained
16 Labour opposed
2
Cons.
Opposed
First time
1981 2/7/81
EPA
1978 2nd Continuance Order 1981 15/12/81 PTA Continuance Order 1982 15/3/82 EPA 1978 Continuance Order
7
1982 30/6/82
EPA
1978 2nd Continuance
Order 1982 9/12/82
PTA Continuance Order
1983
EPA
Labour voted
against
PTA
7/3/83 1978 Continuance Order
Cons.
Abstained
Cons.
Opposed
1978 2nd Continuance Order 1983 8/12/83
Cons.
Abstained
Prevention of Terrorism (TP)
Cons.
Opposed
Cons.
Opposed
No vote
(1
Labour
teller)
1983 12/5/83 Prevention of Terrorism (TP) Bill
2R 24/10/83
EPA
Bill
EPA
Labour opposed 2
3R 25/1/84
1978 Continuance Order
EPA
1978 2nd Continuance Cons. Order 1984 20/12/84 PTA 1984 Continuance Order Cons.
Opposed Opposed
1985 21/2/85
EPA
1978 2nd Continuance Cons. Order 1985 26/6/85 EPA 1987 Continuance (No. 3) Cons. Order 1985 16/1/86 EPA 1978 (Amendment) Order Cons
Opposed Opposed Supported
1985 16/1/86
PTA Continuance Order
First time
EPA 8
1984 5/7/84
1986
Cons.
Opposed
Cons.
Opposed
19/2/86
EPA
1 1
1978 2nd Continuance Order 1986 19/6/86
Labour voted against
264
British
government policy in Northern Ireland 1969-89
Appendix C
continued
Legislation/
Intro-
Debate
duced
Remarks
Opposition
by Bill
Cons.
Labour oppose continuance Order but not 2R
1987
Cons.
Opposed
Bill
Cons.
No vote taken
PTA Continuance Order 1988
Cons.
Opposed
Cons.
Opposed
NI (Emergency Provisions)
2R taken with 3rd Continuance Order 1986
16/12/86
PTA Continuance Order 10/2/87
NI (Emergency Provisions)
3R 8/4/87 16/2/88
EPA Continuance
Order 1988
25/2/88 Prevention of Terrorism (TP) Bill
EPA
Abstained. Labour backbench rebellion.
43 vote against
Prevention of Terrorism (TP) Bill
Cons.
2R 6/12/88 Cons.
Opposed
Cons.
Opposed
3R 30/1/89
1978 and 1987
Continuance Order 1989
8/3/89
NOTES:
l
Figures include
taken with second reading. 5
4
2
Figures include
tellers.
Soley, later deputy spokesman,
3
2nd. Continuance Order was one of the tellers.
House over the lack of a review into the PTA. 6 Although the Labour Front Bench accepted the need for the EPA.
Hattersley presented a motion to divide the
operation of the 7
1 teller.
Labour Conference 1981
Conservatives rejected. to the
8
called for an urgent review of the
EPA which the
Opposition to renewal was the result of the lack of amendment
EPA following the Baker Report.
265
Appendix D:
Northern Ireland Office Ministers
Secretaries
of
Ministers of
Under-Secretaries
State
ofState
State
Conservative
W. Whitelaw
1972-74
Lord Windlesham
(24/3/72-1/12/73)
F.Pym
D. Howell (26/3/72-5/11/72)
(26/3/72-5/6/73)
Channon
P.
P. Mills
(26/3/72-5/11/72)
(2/12/73-4/3/74)
W. van Straubenzee
(5/11/72-4/3/74)
Lord Belstead (5/6/73-4/3/74)
(5/11/72-4/3/74)
D. Howell (5/11/72-4/3/74)
Labour
M. Rees
1974-79
Orme
S.
(5/3/74-9/9/76) R.
Mason
Lord Donaldson (11/3/74-14/4/76)
(7/3/74-8/4/76)
Moyle
R.
J.
Concannon
J.
Dunn
(27/6/74-10/9/76)
(10/9/76-4/5/79) J.
Concannon
(27/6/74-14/4/76)
(14/4/76-4/5/79)
Lord Melchett
(14/4/76-4/5/79) R. Carter
10/9/76-4/5/79)
(14/4/76-4/5/79) T. Pendry
(11/11/78-4/5/79) Conservative
H. Atkins
1979-89
(5/5/79-13/9/81) J.
Prior
(14/9/81-10/9/84)
D. Hurd (11/9/84-2/9/85) T. King
(3/9/85-24/7/89)
M.
Alison
Lord Elton
(7/5/79-15/9/81)
H. Rossi (7/5/79-5/1/81) A. Buder
(5/1/81-11/9/84)
Lord Gowrie (15/9/81-13/6/83)
(7/5/79-15/9/81) P.
Goodhart (7/5/79-5/1/81)
G. Shaw (7/5/79-5/1/81) D. Mitchell (5/1/81-13/6/83)
266
British
government policy in Northern Ireland 1969-89
Appendix D
continued Secretaries
of
Ministers of
Under-Secretaries
State
ofState
State
Conservative
1979-89
P.
Brooke
Lord Mansfield (13/6/83-12/4/84)
(25/7/89-
R. Rhodes-Boyson
J.
Patten
(5/1/81-13/6/83) N. Scott
(11/9/84-11/9/86)
N. Scott
(15/9/81-10/9/86) C. Patten
(12/9/86-11/6/87) J.
Stanley
I.
Stewart
(14/6/83-5/9/85)
Lord Lyell
(13/6/87-25/7/88)
(12/4/84-24/7/89) R.
J.
Cope
Needham (10/9/85-
(25/7/88-24/7/89) B.
(25/7/89-
Mawhinney (23/1/86-
P. Viggers
(11/9/86-24/7/89)
Lord Skelmesdale (25/7/89P.
Bottomley
(25/7/89-
I
wish to thank Gordon Gillespie of the Department of Political Science, Queen's
University Belfast for information used in this appendix.
Appendix E Anglo-Irish Intergovernmental
meetings 1985-89
Date
Venue
Principal matters discussed
11/12/85
Belfast
Security co-operation, relations between security
30/12/85 10/1/86
London London
13/2/86
London
11/3/86
Belfast
forces and the minority community, legal matters.
Special meeting to discuss
Maze hunger strike.
Extradition, public confidence in administration
of justice, Irish language, Flags and
Emblems Act.
Administration of justice, extradition.
Cross-border security co-operation, forthcoming public order legislation, details of cross-border
co-operation in social and economic
9/5/86
London
17/6/86
Belfast
fields.
Extradition, public confidence in justice, housing,
co-operation on development of tourism.
Minority confidence in security forces, cross-
border security co-operation,
29/7/86
London
6/10/86
Dublin
Irish language.
Special meeting requested by Irish to discuss sectarian attacks.
Implementation of cross-border security
recommendations, possible consultative paper
on
fair
language, International
31/10/86
London
Bill
of Rights,
employment,
Fund
Irish
for Ireland.
Special meeting requested by Irish to discuss
cross-border security co-operation.
8/12/86
Belfast
Public Order (NI) Order, provisions of
Emergency Provisions Bill,
Irish
concern over use
of 'supergrasses'.
22/4/87
Belfast
Fair
employment measures,
operation.
security co-
268
British
government policy
in
Northern Ireland 1969-89
Appendix E
continued
Date
Venue
Wl/Kl
London
Principal matters discussed
Fair
employment measures,
security co-
operation, cross-border co-operation on
economic/social matters.
21/10/87
Belfast
Administration of justice, extradition,
of Conduct,
16/11/87
Dublin
2/2/88
Belfast
fair
RUC Code
employment proposals.
Security matters.
Special meeting called by Irish to discuss
Attorney General's statement concerning
Stalker/Sampson inquiry.
16/2/88
Belfast
Resumed
24/2/88
Dublin
Fair
25/3/88
London
discussions of matters of 2/2/88.
employment proposals, International Fund. Security co-operation, commitment to improve community-security force relations in NI, Irish concerns over Stalker/Sampson report, prison policy.
4/5/88
Dublin
Cross-border security co-operation, administration of justice,
fair
employment
proposals, social and economic problems of W. Belfast.
17/6/88
Belfast
Security co-operation, recent difficulties
concerning extradition, administration of justice, fair
employment, measures
for
W.
Belfast
regeneration.
27/7/88
London
Cross-border security co-operation, security
force-community Belfast, policy for
relations, fair employment, W. young offenders, International
Fund. 13/9/88
Dublin
Reviewed on-going work concerning between community and security
relations
forces,
preparation of fair employment legislation.
2/11/88
Belfast
Further review of measures to improve security
and confidence
in the administration
of justice,
preparation of fair employment legislation.
14/12/88
Belfast
British
concern over
failure to extradite
Ryan,
cross-border security co-operation, security
force-community relations, British statement that fair
8/2/89
London
5/4/89
Belfast
employment
legislation pending.
Fair employment, extradition, security force-
community
relations.
Cross-border security, extradition, progress review of agreement.
24/5/89
Belfast
Completion of review of working of the agreement.
in
Appendix E
269
Appendix E
continued
Date
Venue
Principal matters discussed
15/9/89
Dublin
'Leaking' of information by role
5/10/89
London
NI
security forces,
and future of UDR.
Further discussions of topics raised
at
15/9/89
meeting.
18/10/89
Belfast
Continuation of topics of previous two meetings: confidence in security forces and administration of justice. Britain outlined attempts to improve vetting of
UDR recruits. Irish favour
comprehensive inquiry into
force-community this proposal.
all
aspects of security
relations. British disagree with
Bibliography
1
Interviews
Fair
Employment Agency
Officials. Belfast,
Local Enterprise Development Unit
31/7/86.
Officials. Belfast,
31/7/86.
Stan Orme. Manchester, 21/9/87. Clive Soley. London, 7/12/87.
Lord Colnbrook (formerly Sir Humphrey Lord Whitelaw. London, 9/12/87. Merlyn Rees. London, 10/12/87.
2
Atkins).
London, 8/12/87.
Newspaper and journals
Economist Financial Times Fortnight
Guardian Independent
Sunday Times Times
3
Theses
Gallagher D.R.S. 'The Failure of Attempts to solve the Northern Ireland Problem 1972-80.' PhD. Queen's University, Belfast, 1984. Sheffield G.
The Army
in
Support of the
Civil
Power: Northern Ireland 1969-1976.'
M.Litt. Aberdeen University, 1980.
Stubbs B. 'The Attitude of the British Labour Party M.Phil.
London
University, 1974.
to the Irish
Question 1906-51'
271
Bibliography
4 Official publications (This covers British and Northern Ireland government publications. Publications are listed chronologically,
although there
is
not a
strict
published in the same year. Place of publication 'Belfast Regional
is
chronology when two or more items are
London
Cmd 451. HMSO, Belfast, 1963. Cmd 479. HMSO,
Survey and Plan.' (Matthew Report).
'Economic Development
in
Northern
unless stated).
Ireland.' (Wilson Report).
Belfast, 1965.
Cmd 532. HMSO, Belfast,
1969.
'Report of the Advisory Committee on Police in Northern Ireland.' (Hunt Report).
Cmd
'Disturbances in Northern Ireland.' (Cameron Report).
535.
HMSO, Belfast,
1969.
Communique and Declaration issued after a meeting held at
'Text of a
19/8/69.'
Cmnd 4154. HMSO,
Communique
'Text of a
Downing St. on
10
1969.
issued on 29 August 1969 at the conclusion of the
visit
of the
Home Department and the Northern Ireland Government in 10th October 1969.' Cmnd 4178. HMSO, 1969.
Secretary of State for the Belfast
on 9th and
'Report of the Review Body on Local Government in Northern Ireland.' (Macrory Report).
Cmd 546. HMSO, Belfast,
1970.
'Northern Ireland Development Programme 1970-1975.'
Cmd
547.
HMSO,
Belfast,
1970.
'A Record of Constructive Change.'
Cmd 558. HMSO, Belfast,
1971.
'The Future Development of the Parliament and Government in Northern 560.
HMSO, Belfast,
Ireland.'
Cmd
1971.
'Review of Economic and Social Development in Northern Ireland: Report of the Joint
Review Board.' (Cairncross Report).
Cmd 564. HMSO, Belfast,
1971.
'Report of the Inquiry into Allegations against the Security Forces of Physical Brutality in
Northern Ireland, arising out of events on the 9th August 1971.' (Compton Report).
Cmnd 4823. HMSO,
1971.
'Report of the Committee of Privy Counsellors appointed to consider authorised pro-
cedures for the interrogation of persons suspected of terrorism.' (Parker Report).
Cmnd 4901. HMSO,
1972.
Northern Ireland Office. 'The Future of Northern Ireland:
A
Paper
for Discussion.'
Belfast, 1972.
'Report of the Commission to consider Legal Procedures to deal with Terrorist Activities in
Northern
Ireland.' (Diplock Report).
Cmnd 5185.
HMSO 1972.
'Violence and Civil Disturbances in Northern Ireland in 1969.' (Scarman Report).
566.
HMSO, Belfast,
Cmd
1972.
'Northern Ireland Constitutional Proposals.'
Cmnd 5259. HMSO,
1973.
'Report and Recommendations of the Working Party on Discrimination in the Private
Sector of Employment.' (Van Straubenzee Report).
HMSO, Belfast,
1973.
Expenditure Committee (2nd Report). 'Regional Development Incentives.'
HMSO,
HC
85.
1973.
Northern Ireland Assembly Papers 'Report of the
(various). Belfast, 1974.
Law Enforcement Commission.' Cmnd
5627.
HMSO,
1974.
Northern Ireland Office. Northern Ireland Discussion Paper. 'Finance and the Economy.' HMSO. Belfast, 1974.
272
Bibliography
Northern Ireland Office. Northern Ireland Discussion Paper
HMSO, Belfast,
tion: Procedure.'
2.
'Constitutional
Conven-
1974.
'The Northern Ireland Constitution.' Cmnd 5675. HMSO, 1974. Committee of Public Accounts (4th Report). 'Appropriation Accounts (Northern
HC 304. HMSO,
Ireland).'
1974.
'The Northern Ireland General Elections of 1973.' Cmnd 5851. HMSO, 1975. Department of Housing, Local Government and Planning. Discussion Paper. 'Regional Physical Development Strategy.' HMSO, Belfast, 1975. Northern Ireland Office. Northern Ireland Discussion Paper 3. 'The Government of Northern Ireland:
A Society Divided.' HMSO.
Belfast, 1975.
'Regional Development Incentives.' Observations on the 2nd Report of the Expenditure
Committee.
Cmnd 6058. HMSO,
1975.
'Report of a Committee to consider, in the context of
measures
HMSO,
to deal with terrorism in
civil liberties
and human
Ireland.' (Gardiner Report).
rights,
Cmnd 5847.
1975.
Department of Finance. 1975-80.
Northern
'Social
and Economic Trends
in
Northern Ireland' Nos. 1-6
HMSO Belfast.
'Economic and Industrial Strategy (Quigley Report).
Northern Ireland: Report by the Review Team.'
for
HMSO, Belfast,
1976.
'The Handling of Complaints against the Police: Report of the Working Party for Northern Ireland.' (Black Report). Cmnd, 6475. HMSO 1976. 'The Northern Ireland Constitutional Convention. Text of a letter from the Secretary of State for Northern Ireland to the Chairman of the Convention.' Cmnd 6387. HMSO, 1976.
Northern Ireland Development Agency: Annual reports 1976/77
to
1981/82.
'Northern Ireland Regional Physical Development Strategy 1975-95.'
HMSO,
Belfast,
1977.
'The Protection of
Human
Rights by
Law
in
Northern
Ireland.'
Cmnd
7009.
HMSO,
1977.
'Review of the Operation of the Prevention of Terrorism (Temporary Provisions) Acts
1974 and 1976.' (Shackleton Report). Cmnd 7324. HMSO, 1978. Department of Manpower Services. 'Guide to Manpower Policy and
Practices.'
HMSO
Belfast, 1978.
'Report of the Committee of Inquiry into Police Interrogation Procedures in Northern Ireland.' (Bennett Report).
Cmnd
'The Government of Northern
HMSO,
7497.
Ireland:
HMSO,
1979.
'The Government of Northern Ireland: Proposals
HMSO,
1979.
A Working Paper for a Conference.' Cmnd 7763. for
Further Discussion.'
Cmnd
7950.
1980.
Committee of Public Accounts. 14th Report.
HC 612. HMSO.
1980.
Cmnd 8414. HMSO, 1981. A Framework for Devolution.' Cmnd 8541. HMSO, 1982.
Anglo-Irish Joint Studies. 'Joint Report and Studies.'
'Northern Ireland:
Industry and Trade Committee (Seventh Report). 'Government Support for Trade and Industry in Northern Ireland.'
HC 500. 398 (1) and (1 1) HMSO,
1982.
'Observations by the Government on the 7th Report of the Industry and Trade
Committee.'
HC 85. HMSO,
1982.
'Review of the Operation of the Prevention of Terrorism (Temporary Provisions) Act
273
Bibliography
1976.' (Jellicoe Report).
Cmnd 8803. HMSO,
1983.
Northern Ireland Assembly: Economic Development Committee. 'Report on Industrial Development Incentives.' Paper 45. HMSO, Belfast, 1983. Northern Ireland Assembly. 'Additionality of Receipts from European Funds.' Paper 46.
HMSO, Belfast,
1983. Fair
Employment Agency for
Northern Ireland into the non- industrial Northern Ireland
Civil Service.' Belfast,
Fair
Employment Agency. 'Report of an Investigation by the
1983. 'Anglo-Irish InterGovernmental Council:
7/4/83 and related documents.'
Communique
Cmnd 9094. HMSO,
of the Anglo-Irish summit on 1983.
Committee of Public Accounts (25th Report). 'Financial Assistance to DeLorean Motor Cars Ltd.' HC 127 (1) and (11). HMSO, 1984. 'Review of the Northern Ireland (Emergency Provisions) Act 1978.' (Baker Report).
Cmnd 9222. HMSO,
1984.
'Agreement between the Government of the United Kingdom of Great Britain and
Northern Ireland and the Government of the Republic of
HMSO,
Ireland.'
Cmnd
9657.
1985.
'Department of Finance and Personnel.'
HMSO,
Religion No. 2/85,
PPRU Monitor: Continuous Household Survey,
1985.
Department of Finance and Personnel. 'Northern Ireland Annual Abstract of Statistics'.
HMSO, Belfast,
1986.
Human
Standing Advisory Commission on tion
and Equality of Opportunity
Cm.
237.
'Fair
HMSO,
in
Rights. 'Religious
and
Political
Discrimina-
Northern Ireland: Report on Fair Employment.'
1987.
Employment in Northern
Ireland.'
Cm 380. HMSO,
1988.
'An Evaluation of the Enterprise Zone Experiment in Northern Ireland'
DOE
(NI),
Belfast, 1988.
Committee of Public Accounts. 'Matters Official Reports. (Hansard).
relating to
Northern Ireland'
HC 230,
1989.
HMSO.
Government Expenditure Plans, (various). HMSO. Employment Agency. Annual Reports (various). HMSO. Northern Ireland Commissioner for Complaints. Annual Reports (various), HMSO. Northern Ireland Parliamentary Commissioner for Administration. Annual Reports Fair
(various).
HMSO.
Standing Advisory Commission on
5
Books and
Human Rights. Annual Reports (various). HMSO.
articles
Anderson J. 1983 'Geography as Ideology and the Politics of Crisis: the Enterprise Zone Experiment.' in Anderson et al. (eds) 1983 313-50. Duncan S. and Hudson R. (eds) 1983 Redundant Spaces in Cities and Regions? Studies ,
and Social Change. IB A Special Publications No. 15, London. Archer J.R. 1978 'Northern Ireland: Constitutional Problems and the problem of Identity.' Review ofPolitics 40 (1 1) 225-70. in Industrial Decline
Arthur P. 1977 'Devolution as Administrative Convenience: Ireland.' Parliamentary Affairs
30
(1)
A
Case Study
in
Northern
(2)
157-74.
97-106.
1983 'Anglo-Irish Relations since 1968.' Government and Opposition 18
274
Bibliography
1984 Government and Politics ofNorthern Ireland. Longman, Harlow. 1985 'Anglo-Irish Relations and the Northern Ireland Problem.'
Irish Studies in
International Affairs 2 (1) 37-50.
1986a 'Policing and Crisis
Politics:
Northern Ireland as* a Case Study.'
Parliamentary Affairs 39 (3) 341-53.
1986b 'Labour and Ireland' Government and Opposition 21 (3) 372-6. 1987 'The Anglo-Irish Agreement: Events of 1985-86.' Irish Political Studies 2 99-107.
Asmal K. (Chairman) 1985 Shoot
to
Use ofFirearms by the Security Forces
Aughey A. 1989 Under Co., London. Aunger E.A. 1975
Siege: Ulster
Kill? International Lawyers' Inquiry into the Lethal in
Northern Ireland. Mercier Press, Dublin.
Unionism and the Anglo-Irish Agreement. Hurst and
'Religion and Occupational Class in Northern Ireland.' Economic
7(1)1-18. 1983 'Religion and Class: Osborne (eds) 1983 24-41.
and
Social Review
An
Analysis of the 1971
Census Data'
A
and Carter C.F. 1972 The Northern Ireland Problem: Oxford University Press, Oxford.
Barritt D.P. Relations.
Barry B. 1975 'The Consociational Model and Political Research 3 (4)
Benn T. 1985
Business:
in Collins (ed.)
Bew P. 1986 'Northern
Cormack and
Study
in
Group
Dangers.' European Journal of
393-412.
G. 1982 Troublesome London.
Bell
its
in
The Labour Party and the
Irish Question. Pluto Press,
1985 130-143.
Ireland' Capital and Class
28 13-15.
Gibbon P. and Patterson H. 1979 The State in Northern Ireland 1921-72. Manchester University Press, Manchester. Gibbon P. and Patterson H. 1980 'Some aspects of Nationalism and Socialism in Ireland 1968-78,' in Morgan and Purdie (eds) 1980. and Patterson H. 1982-3 'The Protestant-Catholic Conflict in Ulster.' Journal of
— —
36 (2) 223-34. and Patterson H. 1985 The British State and Thatcher. Verso, London.
International Affairs
Birrell
W.D. 1972
the Ulster Crisis:
Northern
'Relative Deprivation as a Factor in Conflict in
Sociological Review
20
(3)
From Wilson
to
Ireland.'
317-43.
1973 'The Stormont-Westminster Relationship.' Parliamentary Affairs
XXVI
(4)
471-91.
1978a 'The Centralisation of Local Government Functions (4) 23-37.
in
Northern Ireland -
An Appraisal.' Local Government Studies 4
—
.
1978b 'The Northern Ireland
Civil Service
- from Devolution
to Direct Rule.'
Public Administration 56 305-19.
1981 'A Government of Northern Ireland and the Obstacle of Power- Sharing.'
52 184-202. and Murie A. 1973 'Social Policy
Political Quarterly
in
Northern
Ireland,' in
Jones
(ed.)
1973
134-55.
and Murie A. 1980 Policy and Government in Northern Ireland: Lessons of and Macmillan, Dublin. Bishop P. and Mallie E. 1987 The Provisional IRA. Heinemann, London. Devolution. Gill
1
275
Bibliography
Black
W. 1977
'Industrial
Development and Regional
Policy.' in
Gibson and Spencer
1977 40-78. 1980 'The Economy of Northern Ireland: Performance and Prospects.' The
(eds)
Irish
Banking Review (June) 25-30. Blades M. and Scott D. 1970 'What Price Northern Ireland?' Young Fabian Pamphlet 22
London. Boal F.W., Doherty P. and Pringle D.G. 1974 'The Spatial Distribution of some Social
Problems
in the Belfast
Urban
Community
Area.'
Relations
Commission Research
Paper, Belfast.
and Douglas J.N. H.
.
(eds)
the Northern Ireland Problem.
1982
and Division: Geographical Perspectives on London. Northern Ireland.' Geography Magazine 41 (5)
Integration
Academic
and Robinson R.H. 1969 'Conflict
Press,
in
331-6.
Boserup A. 1972 'Contradictions and Struggles
in
Northern
Ireland.' Socialist Register
157-92.
Bowman J.
1982 DeValera and the
Boyle K. and
Ulster Question.
Hadden T. 1984 'How
to
Read
Oxford University Press, Oxford.
the
New
Ireland
Forum
Report.' Political
Quarterly 55 (4) 402-17.
and Hadden T. 1985 Ireland: A Positive Proposal. Penguin, Harmondsworth. and Hadden T. 1986 'Breaking the Anglo-Irish Impasse.' Fortnight 238 9-10 May. Hadden T. and Hillyard P. 1975 Law and State: the Case ofNorthern Ireland. Martin Robertson, London. Hadden T. and Hillyard P. 1980 Ten Years on in Northern Ireland: The legal Control of Political Violence. Cobden Trust, London. and Hannum H. 1976 'Ireland in Strasbourg: Final Decisions in the Northern Ireland Proceedings before the European Court of Human Rights.' Irish Jurist 1 243-78. ,
,
,
——
.
Bradley J., Hewitt V. and Jefferson C. 1986 industrial Location Policy and Equality of
Opportunity in Assisted Employment in Northern Ireland 1949-1981.'
Paper 10,
FEA Research
Belfast.
Brett C.E.B. 1970 'The Lessons of Devolution in Northern Ireland.' Political Quarterly 41
261-80.
1982 'Housing
in
Northern
Ireland.'
1986 Housing a Divided Community.
Bridges L. and Bunyan T. 1983 'Britain's
Criminal Evidence
Housing Review 31
Institute
new Urban
Bill in Context.' Journal
Brown M. and Baldwin S. 1980 The & Kegan Paul, London.
(3)
75-6.
of Public Administration, Dublin. Policing Strategy
ofLaw and Society
10
(1)
-
the Police and
85-107.
Yearbook ofSocial Policy in Britain in 1979.
Buckland P. 1979 The Factory of Grievances: Devolved Government 1921-1939. GUI and Macmillan, Dublin.
in
Roudedge
Northern Ireland
1981 A History ofNorthern Ireland. Gill and Macmillan, Dublin.
Budge
I.
Bulpitt
J.
and O'Leary C. 1973 Belfast: Approach to Crisis. Macmillan, London. 1983 Territory and Power in the United Kingdom: An Interpretation. Manchester
University Press, Manchester.
Burton F. 1978 The Politics ofLegitimacy. Roudedge & Kegan Paul, London. Busteed M. 1976 'Small-Scale Economic Development in Northern Ireland.' Geographical Magazine 92 (3) 172-81.
Scottish
276
Bibliography
Butler D. and Butler G. 1986 British Political Facts 1900-85. Macmillan, London.
Byrne D. 1980 'The Deindustrialisation of Northern Ireland.' Antipode 12 (1) 87-96. CallaghanJ. 1973 A House Divided. Collins, London. Cameron G.C. and Wingo L. (eds) 1973 Cities, Regions and Public Policy .'Oliver and Boyd, Edinburgh.
Campbell C. 1988 (2)
'Irish Extradition
Developments.' Northern Ireland Legal Quarterly 39
191-7.
Canning D., Moore B. and Rhodes J. 1987 'Economic Growth in Northern Ireland: Problems and Prospects,' in Teague (ed.) 1987 211-35. Canning P. 1985 British Policy towards Ireland 1921-1941. Oxford University Press, Oxford. Cartmill D. and Singleton D. 1984
'Low Cost Home Ownership in Northern Ireland with
special reference to Homesteading.' Housing Review 33 (2) 43-7.
Chapman
1972 'Housing Reform
P.
Planning 35
(3)
in
Northern
Ireland.'
Official Architecture
and
\7\-4.
Clarke L. 1987 'Broadening the Battlefield: the H-Blocks and the Rise of Sinn Fein.' GUI
and Macmillan, Dublin. Collins
M.
(ed.)
Common R.
1985 Ireland after Britain. Pluto Press, London.
1976 'Regional Development Prospects
in Northern Ireland.' Area 8 (1) 4-9. Concerned Community Organisations 1984 The Supergrasses. Belfast. Connelly A.M. 1982 'Non- Extradition for Political Offences: A Matter of Legal Obliga-
tions or simply a Policy Choice?' Irish Jurist 17 59-83.
Connolly M. 1983 'Central-Local Relations
in
Northern Ireland:
A Report to the SSRC
Ulster Polytechnic Paper, Jordanstown.
and Knox C. 1988 'Recent
Political Difficulties
of local government in Northern
and Politics 16 (2) 89-97. and Loughlin J. 1986 'Reflections on the Anglo-Irish Agreement'. Government and
Ireland.' Policy
Opposition 21 (2) 146-60.
Cormack
R.J.
and Osborne R.D.
Equal Opportunity
in
(eds)
1983 Religion, Education and Employment: Aspects of
Northern Ireland. Appletree Press, Belfast.
Osborne R.D. and Thompson W. 1980 Structure of Opportunity in Belfast.'
'Into
Work? Young School-Leavers and
FEA Research Paper No.
the
5, Belfast.
Cowan R. 1982 'Belfast's Hidden Planners.' Town and Country Planning 5 1 (5) 163-5. Cox W.H. 1987 'Managing Northern Ireland Intergovernmentally: An Appraisal of the Anglo-Irish Agreement.' Parliamentary Affairs 40
(1)
80-97.
1989 'Northern Ireland: Factory of Books.' Parliamentary Affairs 42 Craig F.W.S. 1975
British General Election Manifestos
(3)
423-6.
1900-1974. Macmillan, London.
1982 Conservative and Labour Party Conference Decisions 1945-1981 Parliamentary Research Series, Chichester.
"Troops Out" is no policy.' New Statesman 20/9/85 10-12. Crossman R. 1977 The Diaries of a Cabinet Minister: Vol 3 1968-70. Hamish Hamilton, London. Darby J. 1976 Conflict in Northern Ireland: the Development of a Polarised Community. Gill Crick B. 1985
'
and Macmillan, Dublin. 1983 Northern Ireland: The Background to the Conflict. Appletree Press, Belfast. and Williamson A. (ed.) 1978 Violence and the Social Services in Northern Ireland. Heinemann, London. (ed.)
277
Bibliography
Davies R. and
McGurnaghan M.A. 1975 'Northern
Adversity.' National Westminster Bank Quarterly Review
McGurnaghan M.A. and Sams
K.I.
Progress and Prospects.' Regional Studies
Dawson G.W. 1984 'Defensive Planning in
1 1
Ireland:
The Economics
of
May 56-68.
1977 'The Northern Ireland Economy:
297-307.
Belfast.' Irish
Geography XVII 27-41.
Ditch J.S. 1977 'Direct Rule and Northern Ireland Administration.' Administration 25 (3) 328-37.
—— in
and Morrissey M. 1979 'Recent Developments (eds) 1980 206-27.
in
Northern Ireland Social Policy'
Brown and Baldwin
Doherty P. 1982 'The Geography of Unemployment.' 225-47.
in
Boal and Douglas (eds) 1982
Donnison D. 1973 'The Northern Ireland Civil Service.' New Society 5/1/11 8-10. Douglas J.N. H. and Osborne R.D. 1981 'Northern Ireland Increased Representation
in
the Westminster Parliament.' Irish Geography 14 27-40.
Downey J. 1983 Them and Us. Ward River Press, Dublin. Driver C. 1981 'Review of Morgan and Purdie 1980 and Bew, Gibbon and
Patterson
1979.' Capital and Class 14 121-31.
Dunford M., Geddes M. and Perrons D. 1981 'Regional Policy and the crisis in the UK: a long-run perspective.' International Journal of Urban and Regional Research 5 377-410.
Ombudsmen:
the Northern Ireland Commissioner 50 82-93. Rights Reports. 1978 2 EHRR 25 Republic ofIreland v. UK.
Elcock H.J. 1972 'Opportunity for
for Complaints.' Public Administration
European
Human
Evelegh R. 1978 Peace-Keeping
in
a Democratic Society: the Lessons of Northern Ireland.
Hurst and Co., London. Eversley D. 1989 Religion and Employment in Northern Ireland. Sage, London. Fair
Employment Agency. 1976 'An
Industrial
and Occupational
Profile of the
Two
Sections of the population in Northern Ireland: an analysis of the 1971 Population
Census.' Research Paper
1978 'Attitude
1
Work
.
Belfast.
Northern Ireland.' Research Paper 2. Belfast. 1978 'Educational Qualifications and Religious Affiliations in Northern
Research Paper
to
in
Ireland.'
3, Belfast.
Fanning R. 1985 'Anglo-Irish Relations:
Partition
and the British Dimension
in
Historical Perspective.' Irish Studies in International Affairs 2 (1) 1-20. Farrell
M. 1980
(2nd ed) Northern Ireland: The Orange State. Pluto Press, London.
the Protestants: The Formation of the USC and the RUC 1920-27. Pluto London. Faulkner B. 1978 Memoirs ofa Statesman. Weidenfeld and Nicolson, London.
1983 Arming
Press,
Fisk R. 1975 The Point ofNo Return. Andre Deutsch, London.
1983 In Time of War:
Ireland, Ulster
and
the Price
of Neutrality 1939-45. Andre
Deutsch, London. Flackes
W.D. 1982 'A Short Road
1983 Northern Ireland: A Gafikin F. and Morrissey (ed.)
to the Sea.' Fortnight 188,
Political Directory.
M. 1987
October.
BBC Publications, London.
'Poverty and Politics in Northern Ireland.' in
Teague
1987 136-59.
Gallagher E. 1985 'Anglo-Irish Relations in the European Community.' International Affairs 2 (1) 21-35.
Irish Studies in
278
Bibliography
Gallagher F. and Worrall S. 1982 Christians
in Ulster
1969-1980. Oxford University
Press, Oxford.
Gallagher T. and O'Connell
J.
1983 Contemporary
(eds)
Irish Studies.
Manchester
University Press, Manchester.
Ganz G. 1977 Government and Industry. Professional Books, Abingdon. Gibbon P. 1981 Review of Boyle et al. 1980' British Journal of Law and
Society 8 (1)
135-8.
Gibson N. 1973 'Economic Conditions and Policy in Northern Ireland.' Economic and Social Review 4 (3) 349-64. 1982 Political and Economic Integration, in Rea (ed.) 1982 97-112. and Spencer J.E. (eds) 1977 Economic Activity in Ireland: A Study of Two Open Economies. Gill and Macmillan, Dublin. Gifford T. 1984 Supergrasses: The Use ofAccomplice Evidence in Northern Ireland. Cobden Trust, London. Girvin B. 1986 The Anglo-Irish Agreement 1985. in Girvin and Sturm (eds) 1986 150-65. and Sturm R, (eds) 1986 Politics and Society in Contemporary Ireland. Gower Publishing Co., Aldershot.
Goodyear P.M. and Eastwood D.A. 1979 'Regional Development and Spatial Equity in Northern Ireland.' Economic and Social Review 10 (4) 321-40. Graham D. 1984 'Discrimination in Northern Ireland: the failure of the FEA.' Critical Social Policy 3 (3) 40-54.
Greer
A.J.
The
1987 'The Northern Ireland Assembly and Accountability of Government: 40 (1) 98-1 12.
Statutory Committees 1982-86.' Parliamentary Affairs
S. 1987a 'Supergrasses: A Coda.' Fortnight 249 7-8. 1987b 'The Rise and Fall of the Northern Ireland Supergrass System.' Criminal Law Review 663-70. 1988 'Review of Stalker 1988.' Journal of Law and Society 15 (3) 316-19.
Greer
- and Hadden T.
1983 'Supergrasses on Trial.' New Society 24/1 1/83 330-31. and White A. 1986 Abolishing the Diplock Courts: The Case for Restoring Jury Trial
Scheduled Offences in Northern Ireland. Griffiths
H. 1974 'Community Conflict
in
Guelke A. 1984 'The American Connection 1
(4)
A Case-Study in Agency New University of Ulster.
Northern Ireland:
Conflict.' Occasional Papers in Social Administration,
Studies in International Affairs
in
Cobden Trust, London.
to the
Northern Ireland
Conflict.' Irish
27-39.
1985 'International Legitimacy, Self Determination and Northern Ireland.' Review ofInternational Studies 11
(1)
37-52.
Haagerup N. (Rapporteur) 1984 'Report drawn up on behalf of the Political Affairs Committee on the situation in Northern Ireland.' European Parliament Working
Document 1-1526/83. Hadden T., Hillyard P. and Boyle K. 1980 'How
Fair are the Ulster Trials?'
New Society
13/11/80 320-22. Hadfield B. 1986 'The Anglo-Irish Agreement 1985 - Blue Print or Green Print?' Northern Ireland Legal Quarterly 37
Hainsworth Studies
P.
(1)
1-28.
1981 'Northern Ireland:
A
European Role?' Journal of Common Market
XX (1)1-15.
1983 'Direct Rule
in
Northern Ireland: The European Community Dimension
1972-79.' Administration 31
(1)
53-70.
119
Bibliography
1985 Northern Ireland
in the
European Community in Keating and Jones (eds) 1985
109-132.
Hamill D. 1985 Pig
in the
Middle: the
Army
in
Northern Ireland 1969-84. Methuen,
London. HarknessD. 1969 The Restless Dominion: The Irish Free State and the British Commonwealth ofNations 1921-1931. Macmillan, London. Harrison R.L. 1982 'Dwelling Unfitness in Northern Ireland: Changes since 1974.' Housing Review 31
(3)
82-3.
Harrison R.T. 1982 'Assisted Industry, Employment Stability and Industrial Decline:
Some Evidence from Northern
Ireland.' Regional Studies 16 (4)
267-85.
Development Policy and the Restructuring of the Northern Ireland Economy.' Environment and Planning C: Government and Policy 4 (1) 53-70. Harvey R. 1981 Diplock and the Assault on Civil Liberties. Haldane Society of Socialist Lawyers, London. Harvey S. and Rea D. 1982 The Northern Ireland Economy with Particular Reference to Industrial Development. Polytechnic Innovation and Resource Centre, Ulster Polytechnic. Newtownabbey. Hastings M. 1970 Ulster 1969: The Fight for Civil Rights in Northern Ireland. Victor Gollancz, London. Hayes M. 1972 'The Role of the Community Relations Commission in Northern Ireland.' Administration 20 (4) 86-106. Hennessy P. 1986 Cabinet. Blackwell, Oxford. 1986
'Industrial
Hepburn A.C.
(ed.)
1981 Employment in Divided Societies. Centre for the Study of Conflict,
New University of Ulster. Hewitt C. 1981 'Catholic Grievances. Catholic nationalism and Violence in Northern Ireland during the Civil Rights Period: a Reconsideration.' British Journal ofSociology 32 (3)
362-80. 1983 'Discrimination in Northern Ireland: a Rejoinder.'
British Journal
ofSociology
34(3)446-51. 1985 'Catholic Grievances and Violence
in
Northern
Ireland.' British Journal of
36 (1)102-5. Hillyard P. 1981 'From Belfast Sociology
to Britain: Some Critical Comments on the Royal Commission on Criminal Procedure.' Politics and Power 4 83-97. 1983 Law and Order in Darby (ed.) 1983 32-60. and Boyle K. 1982 'The Diplock Court Strategy: Some Reflections on Law and Politics
of Law.' in Kelly et
al.
eds 1982 1-20.
1984 'Converting Terrorists: The Use of Supergrasses in Northern Ireland.' Journal ofLaw and Society 11 (3) 335-55. Hoare A.G. 1976 'Spheres of Influence and Regional Policy: The Case of Northern and Percy-Smith
J.
Ireland.' Irish Geography 9
89-99.
1981 'Why They Go Where They Go:
The Political Imagery of Industrial Location'.
Transactions (Institute ofBritish Geographers) 6 152-75.
1982 'Problem Region and Regional Problem.'
in
Boal and Douglas (eds) 1982
195-223.
Hogan G. and Walker C. 1989
Political Violence
and
the
Law
in Ireland.
Manchester
University Press, Manchester.
Hogwood R. 1982 'The Regional Dimension of Industrial Policy.' in Madgwick and Rose
280
Bibliography
(eds)
IDB
1982 34-66.
Medium-Term
1985 'Encouraging Enterprise: a
Strategy for 1985-90.' IDB.
Belfast. 1985. Irish
Freedom Movement 1983 An
Anti-Imperialist's
Guide
to the Irish
War. Junius,
London. Jackson
1988 'The Northern Ireland (Emergency Provisions)
J.
Act.' Northern Ireland
Legal Quarterly 39 (3) 235-57.
Jenkins P. 1981
Jennings A.
'Political Constraints:
(ed.)
1988
London. Jennings T. and Greer S. 1986
London.' in Watt
under
'Justice
Fire: the
(ed.)
Abuse of
1981 157-67.
Civil Liberties in
Northern
Ireland' Pluto,
'Final Verdict
on Supergrass System.' Fortnight 232 8-9,
21 January.
Jones K.
(ed.)
1973 The Yearbook ofSocial Policy
in Britain
1972.
Roudedge
& Kegan Paul,
London. Keating M. and Jones B. (eds) 1985 Regions
Community. Oxford University
in the European
Press, Oxford. Industrial Location and Planning in the United Kingdom. Methuen, London. Kelly H. 1972 How Stormont Fell. Gill and Macmillan, Dublin. Kelly M., O'Dowd L. and Wickham J. (eds) 1982 Power, Conflict and Inequality. Turoe
Keeble D. 1976
Press, Dublin.
Kennedy L. 1986 Two Ulsters: A Case for Repartition. Queen's University, Belfast. Kenny A. 1986 The Road to Hillsborough: The Shaping of the Anglo-Irish Agreement. Pergamon Press, Oxford. Korff D.
1982 The Diplock Courts
in
Northern Ireland:
A
Fair Trial? Studie
En
Informatiecentrum Mesenrechten.
Kyle K. 1975 'Sunningdale and
after: Britain,
Ireland and Ulster.' The World Today 31
(11)439-50.
Leavy
J.
1973 'Structure or Process?
Ireland.' Studies
New
Approaches
to the
Problem of Northern
62 107-22.
Politics of Process and the Irish Question: Some Further Reflections.' 64 17-23. Lee J.J. 1984 'Ireland Forum - Forging a New Reality!' Administration 32 (3) 115-21. Lijphart A. 1975 'Review Article: the Northern Ireland Problem; Cases, Theories and
1975 'The
Studies
Solutions.' British Journal of Political Science 5 (1) 83-106.
McAleese D. 1981 Comment on McClements. McAllister
I.
in
Watt
(ed.)
1981 116-21.
1975 'The 1975 Northern Ireland Convention Election.' Survey Research
Centre, University of Strathclyde. Occasional Papers 14. Glasgow.
1977a The Northern Ireland Social Democratic and Labour Party:
Political Opposition in
a Divided Society. Macmillan, London.
1977b 'The Legitimacy of Opposition: The Collapse of the 1974 Northern Ireland Executive.' Eire-Ireland 12 (4) 25-42.
1983 'Territorial Differentiation and Party Development
in
Northern
Ireland.' in
Gallagher and O'Connell (eds) 1983 37-63.
and Nelson
S.
1979 'The Modern Development of the Northern Ireland Party
System.' Parliamentary Affairs 32 (3) 279-316.
Parry R. and Rose R. 1979 'United
Kingdom Rankings: The Territorial Dimension
281
Bibliography
of Social Indicators.' Studies in Public Policy 44. Centre for the Study of Public Policy,
Glasgow.
and Wilson B. 1978 'Bi-confessionalism in a Confessional Party System: the Party.' Economic and Social Review 9 (3) 207-25.
Northern Ireland Alliance
McCallum J.D. 1973 (eds)
United Kingdom Regional Policy 1964-72 in
McCashin A. and Morrissey M. 1985 'Housing 33
Cameron and Wingo
1973 217-98.
(3)
Policy:
North and South. 'Administration
291-325.
McClementsL. 1981 'Economic
McCrudden
Constraints' in Watt (ed.) 1981 100-115.
Remedies
J.C. 1981 'Legal
for Discrimination in
Employment.' Current
Legal Problems 34 211-33.
1983 'The Experience of the Legal Enforcement of the Fair Employment (Northern Ireland) Act 1976.' in
Cormack and Osborne
1983 201-21.
(eds)
McDonough R. 1986 'In Response to Jennings and Greer.' Fortnight 234 McGarry J. 1988 'The Northern
Ireland.' Political Quarterly
McGrath M. 1983
14,
24 February.
Anglo-Irish Agreement and the Prospects for Power Sharing in
59
Another
'Extradition:
(2)
236-50.
Irish Problem.' Northern Ireland Legal Quarterly
34 292-314.
MacLennan D. and ParrJ.B.
(eds)
\91 9 Regional Policy: Past Experience and New Directions.
Martin Robertson, Oxford.
Madgwick
P.
and Rose R.
(eds)
1982 The
Territorial Dimension in United Kingdom Politics.
Macmiilan, London.
Maguire P.R. 1975 'Parliament and the Direct Rule of Northern
Ireland.' Irish Jurist 10
81-92. 1981 'The Standing Advisory Commission on
Human
Rights 1973-80.' Northern
Ireland Legal Quarterly 32 31-61.
Martin J. 1982 'The Conflict in Northern Ireland: Marxist Interpretations.' Capital and Class 18 56-71.
MaudlingR. 1978 Memoirs. Sidgwick and Jackson, London. Moore B. and Rhodes J. 1975 'The Economic and Exchequer Implications of British Regional Economic Policy.' in Vaizey (ed.) 1975 80-102. and Rhodes J. 1976 'Regional Economic Policy and the Movements of Manufacturing Firms to Development Areas.' Economica 43 17-31. Rhodes J. and Tarling R. 1978 'Industrial Policy and Economic Development: the experience of Northern Ireland and the Republic of Ireland.' Cambridge Journal of Economics 2 99-1 14.
Rhodes J. and Tyler P. 1977 'The Impact of Regional Policy in the Environmental Studies Review
Morgan (eds.)
1
1970s.' Centrefor
67-77.
A. 1980 'Socialism in Ireland
- Red, Orange and Green.'
in
Morgan and Purdie
1980 172-225.
and Purdie B. (eds) 1980
Morgan K. 1985
Ireland: Divided Nation, Divided Class. Ink Links,
London.
'Regional Regeneration in Britain: the Territorial Imperative and the
(4) 560-77. and Sayer A. 1983 'Regional Inequality and the (eds.) 1983 17-49.
Conservative State.' Political Studies 33
Morrissey
M. and Ditch J. 1982
Northern
state in Britain.' in
Anderson
et al.
'Social Policy Implications of Emergency Legislation in
Ireland.' Critical Social Policy 1 (3) 19-39.
282
Bibliography
Moxon-Browne
Munck R.
E. 1983 Nation, Class
and Creed in Northern
Gower, Aldershot.
Ireland.
1985 Ireland: Nation, State and Class Struggle. Westview Press, Boulder.
1986 'Northern
Murie A.S. 1974
Ireland.' Capital and Class
'Spatial Aspects of
Ireland.' Irish Geography 7
Stress in Northern
53-67.
W.D., Hillyard
Birrell
Movement in Northern
28 5-13.
Unemployment and Economic
and Roche PJ.D. 1973 'A Survey of Industrial
P.
Ireland between 1965 and 1969.' Economic and Sodul Review 4
231-44.
A
Murray R. and Osborne R.D. 1977 'Segregation on Horn Drive -
New Society 21/'4/77 Nelson
S.
1984
Ulster's Uncertain Defenders.
New Ireland Forum
Cautionary Tale.'
106-8. Appletree Press, Belfast.
1983a The Cost of Violence arisingfrom
the Northern Ireland Crisis since
1969. Dublin.
1983b
A
Comparative Description of the Economic Structure and Situation, North and
South. Dublin. .
1983c Public Sessions No. 2: Submissions of C. Carter and L. Ryan. Dublin. 1984a Report. Dublin.
.
1984b The Economic Consequences ofthe Divison ofIreland since 1920. Dublin. 1984c The Macroeconomic Consequences of Integrated Economic Policy, Planning and
Co-ordination in Ireland. Dublin.
— 1984d —
The Legal Systems, North and South. Dublin.
1984e Public Sessions No. 11: Submission ofC. Soley. Dublin. Newark F.H. 1955 'The Law and the Constitution' in Wilson (ed.) 1955 14-54.
Northern Ireland Economic Council. 1981 'Public Expenditure Comparisons between Northern Ireland and Great Britain.' Paper 18, Belfast. 1982 'Youth Employment and Training.' Paper 27, Belfast.
Northern Ireland Housing Executive. 1972 'The Work of the Housing Executive.' Belfast.
1975 'Housing Condition Survey 1974.' Belfast. 1984 'The Belfast Experience: Housing Renewal
in
Northern
Ireland.'
1985 'Northern Ireland House Condition Survey: Report of the Physical Survey.' Belfast.
Norton
P.
1975 Dissension
in the
House of Commons: Intra-Party Dissent
in the
House of
Commons Division Lobbies 1945-1974. Macmillan, London. 1980 Dissension in the House of Commons 1974-1979. Clarendon Press, Oxford. Obair Report 1989 (Rolston B. and Tomlinson M.) 'Unemployment in West Belfast' Beyond the Pale Publications, Belfast. O'Dowd L. 1982 'Regionalism and Social Change in Northern Ireland.' in Kelly et al. (eds.)
1982 90-115.
1985 'The Crisis in Regional Strategy: Ideology and the State Ireland.' in
Rees
et al. (eds)
in
Northern
1985 143-65.
1987 'Trends and Potential of the Service Sector 1987 183-210.
in
Northern
Ireland.' in
Teague
(ed.)
—
and Rolston B. 1985 'Bringing Hong Kong
to Belfast?
The
case of an Enterprise
Zone.' InternationalJournal of Urban and Regional Research 9 (2) 218-32. -
Rolston B. and Tomlinson
War.
CSE Books, London.
M. 1980
Northern Ireland: Between Civil Rights and Civil
283
Bibliography
Rolston B. and Tomlinson M. 1982 'From Labour to the Tories: The Ideology of Containment in Northern Ireland.' Capital and Class 18 72-90. and Tomlinson M. 1980 'Urban Politics in Belfast: Two Case Studies.' International Journal of Urban and Regional Research 4 72-97. O'Halloran 1987 Partition and the Limits ofIrish Nationalism: an Ideology under Stress. Gill
and Macmillan, Dublin.
O'Hearn D. 1981 'Accumulation and
the Irish Crisis.' Monthly Review 32 (10) 31-44.
1983 'Catholic grievances, Catholic nationalism: a comment.'
British
24 {2>)tt%-45. 1985 'Again on Discrimination in the North of Ireland: a Reply British Journal ofSociology 36 (1) 94-101.
Journal of
Sociology
-
O'Leary B. 1987a 'The Anglo-Irish Agreement: Folly or
to a Rejoinder.'
Statecraft?' West European
Studies 10 (1) 5-32.
——
1987b 'The Anglo-Irish Agreement: Meanings, Explanations, Results and
a
Defence.' inTeague (ed.) 1987 11-40.
O'Leary C,
Elliott S.
and Wilford R. 1988 The Northern Ireland Assembly 1982-1986: a London.
Constitutional Experiment. C. Hurst,
Oliver J.
1978a 'Ulster Today and Tomorrow.'
Political
and Economic Planning
Broadsheet No. 574.
1978b Working at Stormont. Institute of Public Administration, Dublin. 1982 'The Evolution of Constitutional Policy in Northern Ireland over the Past Fifteen Years.' in Rea (ed.) 1982 60-91. O'Malley P. 1983 The Uncivil Wars. Blackstaff Press, Belfast. O'Neill T. 1972 The Autobiography of Terence O'Neill. Rupert Hart-Davies, London.
Osborne R.D. 1978 'Denomination and Unemployment
in
Northern
Ireland.'
Area 10
280-83.
(4)
1980 'Fair Employment in Northern Ireland.' New Community 8 129-137. 1981-2 'Equality of Opportunity and Discrimination: The Case of Religion in Northern Ireland.' Administration 29 (4) 331-55. 1982 'Fair Employment in Cookstown? A Note on Anti-Discrimination Policy in Northern Ireland.' Journal of Social Policy 11 (4) 519-30.
and Cormack
R.J.
1986 'Unemployment and Religion in Northern (3) 215-25.
Ireland.'
Economic and Social Review 17
1972 'The Evolution, Disintegration and Possible Reconstruction of the Northern Ireland Constitution.' Anglo-American Law Review 1 368 476. 1980 'Constitutional Solutions to the Irish Problem.' Current Legal Problems 33
Palley C.
—
121-46. 1
.
1981 Ways Forward: The Constitutional Options. inWatt(ed.) 1981 183-206.
Parson D. 1980 'Spatial Underdevelopment:
hehnd: Antipode
The
Strategy of Accumulation in Northern
12 (1) 73-87.
1981 'Urban Renewal and Housing Action Areas in Belfast: Legitimation and the Incorporation of Protest.' International Journal of Urban and Regional Research 5
218-30.
Pounce R.J. 1981 Industrial Movement in the United Kingdom. Department of Industry, London. Power P.F. 1976 'Violence, Consent and the Northern Ireland Problem.' Journal of Commonwealth and Comparative Politics 14 (2) 119-40.
284
Bibliography
1977 'The Sunningdale Strategy and the Northern Majority Consent Doctrine in (1) 35-67.
Anglo-Irish Relations.' Eire-Ireland 12
PringleD.G. 1985 One Island, Two Nations? A Political Geographical Analysis ofthe National Research Studies Press, Letchworth.
Conflict in Northern Ireland.
Prior J. 1986/4 Balance ofPower.
Hamish Hamilton, London.
Probert B. 1978 Beyond Orange and Green. Zed Press, London.
Purdie B. 1983 in Gallagher
The Friends of Ireland: and O'Connell
(eds)
British
Labour and
Irish
Nationalism 1945-49.'
1983 81-94.
Rea D. (ed.) 1982 Political Co-operation in Divided Societies. Gill and Macmillan, Dublin. Reed D. 1984 Ireland: The Key to the British Revolution. Larkin Publications, London.
Newby H. and Rees T. (eds) 1985 Political Action and and Ideology. Macmillan, London. Rees M. 1985 Northern Ireland: a Personal Perspective. Methuen, London. Roberts H. 1987 'Sound Stupidity: The British Party System and the Northern Ireland Question.' Government and Opposition 22 (3) 315-35.
Rees G., Bujra J., Littlewood
P.,
Social Identity: Class, Locality
Rolston B. 1976 'Reforming the Orange State: Problems of the Northern Ireland
munity Relations Commission.' Thames Papers 1985 'Community Services Policy 5 (2)
in
in Social Analysis Series 1,
Northern Ireland: the
last
Com-
56-85.
ten years.' Critical Social
83-92.
1986 'Review of Bew and Patterson 1985 and Boyle and Hadden 1985 : Journal of 13 (2) 257-62.
Law and Society
and Tomlinson M. 1982 'Spectators
Crime
in Ireland' in Kelly et
al.
(eds)
at the Carnival
of Reaction? Analysing Political
1982 21-43.
and Smyth J. 1983 A Social Science Queen's University Belfast. Rose R. 1971 Governing without Consensus: An Irish Perspective. Faber and Faber, London. 1976 Northern Ireland: A Time of Choice. Macmillan, London. 1982 'Is the United Kingdom a State? Northern Ireland as a Test Case.' in Rolston B., Tomlinson M.,
O'Dowd
L., Miller B.
Bibliography ofNorthern Ireland 1945-1983.
Madgwick and Rose (eds) 1982 100-136. Rowthorn R. 1981 'Northern Ireland: An Economy
in Crisis.' Cambridge Journal of
Economics 5 1-31.
1987 'Northern Ireland: An Economy in Crisis.' in Teague (ed.) 1987 1 1 1-135. Rowthorn R. and Wayne N. 1988 Northern Ireland: The Political Economy of Conflict Polity Press, Westview. Salt J.
and Johnson J.H. 1975 'Recent Trends
ployment
in
Northern
in the
Level and Distribution
Ireland.' Tidjschrift Voor Economische
En
Of Unem-
Sociale Geografie
66
(4)
225-33. Schmitt D. 1980 'Equal Opportunity as a technique towards the control of violence.
The case of Northern Ireland's Fair Employment Agency.'
Peace and Violence
1
political
Current Research on
33-46.
Scorer C. and Hewitt D. 1981 The Prevention of Terrorism Act: The Case for Repeal.
NCCL,
London. Shannon W.V. 1986 'The Anglo-Irish Agreement' Foreign Affairs 64 (4) 849-70. Sim J. and Thomas P. 1983 'The Prevention of Terrorism Act: Normalising the Politics of Repression.' Journal of Law and Society 10
(1)
71-85.
Simpson H.G. 1973 'The Northern Ireland Housing 95-8.
Executive.' Housing Review 22 (3)
285
Bibliography
Simpson
J.
1983 'Economic Development: Cause or Effect Darby (ed.) 1983 79-109.
in the
Northern Ireland
Conflict.' in
The Paradox of Reform in Northern Ireland.' Housing Review 31 (3) 77-81. 1983 'Belfast Housing Renewal Strategy: A Comment.' Housing Review 32 (2) 41-4.
Singleton D. 1982 'Housing in a Divided Community:
1985a 'Housing and Planning Policy in Northern Ireland: Problems of ImplementaDivided Community.' Policy and Politics 13 (3) 305-26.
tion in a
1985b 'Housing Allocation Policy and Practice 34(1)9-12. 1985c 'Housing Policy Patten.' Housing Review
34
in
in
Northern
Ireland.'
Housing Review
Northern Ireland: Interview with the Minister, Chris 155-9.
(5)
1986 'Northern Ireland Housing: (2) 48-53.
Number One
Priority but for
how much
longer?'
Housing Review 35
Smyth J. 1976 'Dependent Interdependence: Papers in Social Analysis Series
1,
Ireland and British Imperialism.' Thames
34-55.
Smyth P.D.H. 1987 'The Northern Ireland Assembly 1982-1986: The Failure of an Experiment.' Parliamentary Affairs 40 (4) 482-500. 1988 'The Northern Ireland Assembly - A New Exposition of Democracy?' Administration 36 (2) 91-126.
Soley C. 1985 in Collins (ed.) 1985 144-53. Spjut RJ. 1977 'The Northern Ireland Constitutional Settlement of 1973 and the Loyalist Opposition.' Irish Jurist 12 243-260. Stalker J. 1988 Stalker. Harrap,
Steed G.P.F. and
London.
Thomas M.D. 1971
'Regional Industrial
Change
in
Northern
Ireland.'
Annals ofthe Association ofAmerican Geographers 61 344-60. Sunday Times Insight Team. 1972 Ulster. Andre Deutsch. London. Taylor P. 1980 Beating the
1987
Teague
Stalker.
P.
Terrorists?
Penguin, Harmondsworth.
Faber and Faber, London.
1987 'Multinational Companies
moded Model
in the
Northern Ireland Economy:
An Out-
of Industrial Development.' in Teague (ed.) 1987 160-82.
1987 Beyond the Rhetoric: Politics, the Economy and Social Policy in Northern Lawrence and Wishart, London. Thompson B. 1989 'The Anglo-Irish Agreement 1985: Machinery for Muddling Through?' PSA Paper. Townsend A.R. 1980 'Unemployment Geography and the new Government's "regional" aid: Area 12 (1)9-18. VaizeyJ. (ed.) 1975 Economic Sovereignty and Regional Policy. Gill and Macmillan, London. Walker C. 1988 'Political Violence and Democracy in Northern Ireland.' Modern Law Review 51(5)605-22. Wallace M. 1971 Northern Ireland: Fifty Years of Self- Government. David and Charles, (ed.)
Ireland.
Newton Abbot. 1982 British Government in Northern Ireland: From Devolution Charles,
Walsh
to
Direct Rule.
David and
Newton Abbot.
D.J.P. 1982 'Arrest and Interrogation: Northern Ireland 1981 .' Journal of Law
Society
9
(1)
1983 The Use and Abuse of Emergency Legislation
London.
and
37-62. in
Northern Ireland.
Cobden
Trust,
286
Bibliography
Watt D. (ed.) 1981 The Constitution ofNorthern Ireland: Problems and Prospects. Heinemann, London. Weir S. 1983 The Keynesians across the Water.' New Society 9/6/83 384-6. White B. 1984 John Hume: Statesman ofthe Troubles. Blackstaff Press, Belfast. Whyte J.H. 1978 interpretations of the Northern Ireland Problem: An Appraisal.' Economic and Social Review 9 (4) 257-82. — 1983 How Much Discrimination Was There under the Unionist Regime 1921-68? in Gallagher and O'Connell (eds) 1983 1-35. Wilkinson P. 1986 (2nd edn) Terrorism and the Liberal State. Macmillan, Basingstoke. Wilson H. 1971 The Labour Government 1964-70: A Personal Record. Weidenfeld and Nicolson, London. 1979 Final Term: The Labour Government 1974-76. Weidenfeld and Nicolson, London. Wilson T. (ed.) 1955 Ulster Under Home Rule. Oxford University Press, Oxford. 1989 Ulster: Conflict and Consent. Blackwell, Oxford.
—
Index
Attlee,C13, 15
Abse,L. 113
Community Employment (ACE) 164-5, 187, 223-4
Aughey, A. 242
Action for
Adams, G. 196 Alison,
M.
Baird, E. 101
Baker Report 158, 182-5,205
141, 145, 151,265
Alliance Party 41, 44, 49, 54, 97, 100, 142,
144, 150, 197, 199
Barry, P.
177,208 216
Bell, S. 199, 205,
AmeryJ. 149
Bennett, A. 203
AndertonJ. 216 Anglo-Irish Agreement 189, 193 movement towards 175-7
Bennett Report 118-22, 142, 156, 213 Bevin,E. 12-13
provisions of
BiffenJ. 176
177-80
Biggs-Davison,J. 149, 174
Anglo-Irish Intergovernmental
'bipartisanship'
Bleakley, D.
Conference details of meetings 200,
Appendix
E
review of 201-2, 245 Anglo-Irish Intergovernmental Council 146, 148, 174, 178-9
243-9
44
Border Poll (1973) 50, 94 Boundary Commission 2 Brittan, L.
176
Brooke, P. 219, 266
Anglo-Irish Parliamentary Tier 174-5,
200-1
Budgen, N. 149 Burke, R. 217
Anglo-Irish Treaty (1921) 2
Butler, A.
141,161,265
Annesley, H. 219 'anti-imperialists'
Anti-Partition
239-42
League
14,
Cairncross Report 75, 77 Callaghan, J. 17, 19, 20, 23, 24, 40, 82,
16
Archer, P. 182, 184, 199, 203, 205, 248
Assembly (1974), elections Assembly (1982) 175, 246
to
53
149-50 suspension of 199-200
elections to
H. 142, 144, 146, 155, 165, 167, 179,181,246,265
Atkins,
101-2,197,199,245 opposition to integration 47
White Paper (1973) 52
Cameron Report 20, 32, 34, 36 Campaign for Democracy in Ulster 16 Campaign for Social Justice 17 Carrington, Lord 58, 145-6
288
Index
Carron, O. 146
talks
Carter, R. 90, 135,265
with
Mason 100
detention
Catherwood, F. 194
1972 Order and provisions 65-7
Chamberlain, N.
repeal of Order 73
Channon,
10, 12
P. 46, 83,
265
Devlin, B. 52, 71, 130
Diplock Report (1972) 67-71, 156
Chichester-Clark, J. 23, 26, 41 Churchill,
W. 12-13
Direct Rule
Civil Authorities (Special Powers)
(NI) 1922 Collins,
7, 18, 25,
Act
30, 60, 6, 73
introduction of 45-7
Donaldson, Lord 90, 265
Dukes, A. 208
G. 209
Colville, Viscount
202-3
DunlopJ. 142
Commissioner 84-5
Complaints 33, 82,
DunnJ.90,265
for
Community Relations Act (NI) 1969 34 Community Relations Commission (CRC) 24, 35-6, 78, 85, 133 Community Relations Council 235 Community Relations Unit 235 Compton Report 60-6
Eden, A. 12
Concannon, J. 90, 102, 149, 155, 265 Connolly, J. 48 Constitutional Conference (1980) 144 see also Atkins, H. Constitutional Convention (1975) 93-100
Enterprise Allowance
Cooper,
I.
Elected Authorities (NI) Bill 210-11 Electoral
Law Act (NI) 1968
English,
M. 72
187,
224
enterprise zones 163-4, 185, 225
European Convention on the Suppression of Terrorism
Cosgrave, L. 54 CostelloJ. 14-15
Council of Ireland (1973 proposals) 51,
Extradition
CraigJ.3,11,17
Fair
W.
41, 56, 97
Fair
Criminal Evidence (NI) Order 1988
212-13,257
1987, 207
84, 130-3, 178,
228 passim
Employment Commission 232-3, Employment
in
Northern Ireland'
(White Paper) 232-3
Cripps, S. 11
Fair
management' 198, 240-1
Employment
(NI) Act 1976 84, 130,
258 Fair
Darlington Conference 48-9
Employment
(NI) Bill/Act 1989
233-5, 259
Delargy,H. 14-15
DeLorean 127-8,
207, 251
235 'Fair
Criminal Jurisdiction Act 1975 105
'crisis
(ECST) Act
Employment Agency 187,
Cranbourne, Viscount 149
(ECST)
European Regional Development Fund (ERDF) 225-6 European Social Fund (ESF) 225-6 extradition 55, 104-6, 201, 207-9
54-5,91,179 Counter Redundancy Scheme 79 Craig,
Scheme 224
Enterprise Ulster (EU) 79, 126, 164-5,
130
Cooper, R. 130
19
Lord 141, 265 Elwyn-Jones, Lord 67, 71 Elton,
Farrell,M. 130,239 159, 185, 219
deValera,E.9-13 Democratic Unionist Party (DUP) 97,142,144,150,194,196-7
Faulkner, B. 17,34,43 attitude to internment 18, 56,
support for Prior's devolution plans 148
57-8
resignation as leader of Ulster Unionist
Party 56 resignation as Prime Minister 45,
64
1
289
Index resignation from Executive 91
Finance Corporation (NI) Order 1972 77, 80, Fitt,
258
G. 53, 71, 95, 102-3, 116, 122, 130,
142,151,248 FitzGerald, G. 148, 150, 175, 177, 189, 208, 241 'five
Hurd, D. 172, 175-7, 184, 187, 202-3, 211,265
techniques' 60-1
Fraser,J. 213
Friends of Ireland 14, 16 'Future of Northern Ireland' (Discussion
Paper) 48
Independent Commission for Police Complaints (ICPC) 214-15
Development Advisory Committee (ID AC) 160 Industrial Development Board (IDB) 161, 185-7,219-21,232 Industrial Development (NI) Order 1982 161,222,259
Industrial
Industrial Investment (General Assistance)
Act (NI) 1966 31,76 Gardiner Report 66, 106 Goodhart,
P.
Industries
Development Act (NI) 1966 31,
76
141,265
Government of Ireland Act 1920 Gow, I. 176 Gowrie, Lord 141, 176, 265 Griffiths, H. 35-6
1,
49
Industries
Development (NI) Order 1976
123 'Integrationism', Conservative
moves
towards 101-2 International
Fund
for Ireland 201,
Harland and Wolff 129, 159, 194, 226-7
internment 56-60, 213
Harrington, Marquis of
Ireland Bill/Act 1949 14-16, 45, 49
1
Hattersley, R. 59, 60, 151, 153-4, 180,
203,211,248 Haughey, C. 144-5, 150, 196-7, 200-1, 208,213,217-8 Hayes, M. 35-6
Irish
226
Free State (Consequential Provisions) Act 1922 2
Irish National Liberation
Army (INLA)
117 Irish
Healey, D. 91
Republican
Army (IRA)
47, 99, 21
1,
219
Heath, E. 40, 50, 58, 93
on internment 59 statement on ill-treatment of suspects 62
Jellicoe
Report 152-4, 180
Jenkins, R. 17, 114-15, 154
Hermon, J. 156,213,216-18
John, B. 144, 145, 265
Hogg, D. 203 Hogg, Quintin 40, 244 Hooley,F. 113
Joint
Law Enforcement Commission
55,
74, 104-6, 207
Joint Security
Committee
24, 27
Housing Executive (NI) Act 1971 82, 258 Housing (NI) Order 1976 134-5, 258 Housing (NI) Order 1983 166, 259 Housing (NI) Orders 1986, 1988, 235, 259
Kaufman, G. 202 Kelly, C. 217-18
housing policy 82, 134-5, 165-6, 235
King, T. 172, 195, 200-1, 208-9, 212-13,
also
see
Northern Ireland Housing
Executive
Howe,G
KilfedderJ. 142
218,227,229-30,265 Kinnock,N. 174, 199,208
45,176-7
Howell, D. 46, 80, 265
Lawrence,
Hume, J.
Lenihan, B. 145, 209
24, 63, 130, 146, 150, 173, 175,
176, 196
Hunt Report
I.
213
Litterick,T. 113 24, 25-30, 119
Livingstone, K. 248
290
Index
Northern Ireland (Border Poll) Act 50, 255 Northern Ireland Civil Rights Association
Lloyd, P. 149
Local Enterprise Development Unit
(LEDU)
77, 80, 123, 130, 160, 162,
187,222^,232 Local Enterprise Programme (LEP) 222 local
government reform 18-19, 37-8
see
Macrory Report Lyell, Lord 172, 266 Lynch, J. 58 also
(NICRA) 17 'The Northern Ireland Constitution' (White Paper 1974) 93-4 Northern Ireland Constitution Act 1973 46, 53, 255
'Northern Ireland Constitutional Proposals' (White Paper 1973) 50-3,
255
MacBride principles 228-9 McCusker, H. 194-5 MacDonald, M. 11 MacDonald, R. 9
Northern Ireland Development Agency
McNamara, K.
Northern Ireland (Emergency Provisions)
16, 71, 73, 102, 199, 206,
(NIDA) 123-4, 160 Northern Ireland (Emergency Provisions) Act 1973 67, 71-4, 106-9, 255
(Amendment) Act 1975 108-9, 256
211,234 Macrory Report 37-8, 102 Maginnis, K. 195-6
Northern Ireland (Emergency Provisions)
Maguire, F. 142
Northern Ireland (Emergency Provisions)
Mallon, S. 196 Mansfield, Lord 172, 266
Mason, R.
91, 149, 151, 159, 167, 184,
248, 265
and Bennett Report 118-19, 122 economic policy 126-7 'five
point plan' 100-3
Matthew Report 3 1-2 Maudling, R. 45, 58, 62, 64, 85, 244 Mawhinney, B. 147, 235, 266
Mayhew,
P.
209
Millar, F. 195
Act 1978 109, 177, 181-2, 204, 256 Act 1987 204-6, 257
Northern Ireland Finance Corporation 77-8, 123, 160
Northern Ireland Housing Executive
(NIHE)
37, 43, 82, 165-6, 235
Northern Ireland Labour Party (NILP) 49, 53
Northern Ireland (Temporary Provisions) Act 1972 46, 255 Official Unionist Party
(OUP)
Ministry of Community Relations Act (NI)
O'Kennedy, M. 145
1969 34, 78, 258 Mitchell, D. 141,265
O'Neill, T. 17-20,23,41
MolyneauxJ. 144, 194-6 Morrison, H. 13, 15 Moyle, R. 90, 265
see
Ulster
Unionist Party
Orme,
S. 90, 91, 94, 95, 123, 129,
Paisley,
1.
265
18, 41, 56, 71, 101, 122, 148,
194-6 Parker Report 62-3
Nationalist Party 48, 53
Parliamentary Commissioner Act (NI)
Neave,A.98, 101, 124, 141,246 Needham,R. 172,266
Parliamentary Commissioner for
New Ireland Forum 173-4, 178-9, 189 Northern Ireland Act 1972 64, 70 Northern Ireland Act 1974 95-6, 256 Northern Ireland Act 1982 149, 256 Northern Ireland (Assembly) Dissolution
Order 1986 200, 256
1969 33,258 Administration (PCA) 19, 24, 33, 43, 82, 84, 85 Patten,
C 141, 266
Patten, J.
266
Pendry, T. 90, 265 Police (NI)
Order 1987 214-15, 257
291
Index Powell, J. E. 148,206
Shorts and Harland 129, 226, 227-8
Prevention oflncitement to Hatred Act
Silkin, S. 71
Simon, J. 11
(NI) 1970 36, 258
Prevention of Terrorism (Temporary Provisions) Act
1974 112-18, 151-2,
248,251
256 Prevention of Terrorism (Temporary Provisions) Act 1984 180-1,
256
Prevention of Terrorism (Temporary Provisions) Act 1989 202-4,
257
PriorJ. 141, 146, 165, 167, 172, 174, 175,
188,235,266 economic policy 162-3 'rolling devolution' 146-50
Social Democratic
(SDLP)
150, 167, 172-3, 193, fall
230
of Executive 90-93
opposition to Prior initiative 148
results in
Assembly elections 53
submission to Darlington Conference
48-9
65, 255
Public Order (NI) Order 1987 215-16,
257
talks with talks
F. 246,
and Labour Party
41, 44, 46, 142, 144, 146,
proposals for Convention 96-7
Prosecution of Offences (NI) Order 1972
Pym,
Sinn Fein 74, 146, 150, 173, 175-6, 183, 189, 195-6, 197, 198, 199, 210-11,
265
Mason 100
with Sinn Fein 195-6
talks with Unionists
196-7
Quigley Report 125-6, 162
Needs (Grants) Act (NI) 1970 258 Soley,C 174, 181,216,241
'Record of Constructive Change' (White
Soskice, F. 17
Social
Paper) 43 Rees,
M.
Spring, R. 150
67, 99, 103, 106, 116, 145, 149,
159,179,197,245,246,265 and 1974 Executive 90-2, 95 Convention report 98 Regional Employment Premium 31-2 Republican Labour Party 48 Robinson, P. 194, 195
affair'
158, 201,
Stallard,A.71
Standard Capital Grants (SCGs) 31, 76,
159,221,222,223 Rights
(SACHR)
Human
84, 85, 133-4,
154-5, 157, 166-7, 178, 184, 188,
Rose, P. 16
H. 141, 265
Royal Ulster Constabulary
and 'Stalker 216-19,232,248
Stalker, J.
Standing Advisory Commission on
Rhodes-Boyson, R. 172, 224, 229, 266
Rossi,
36,
(RUC)
6,
26-30, 56, 73, 103, 110-12, 119-22, 158, 177-8, 203, 205, 214,
216-18
206,215,231-3 StanleyJ.217,266 Stevens, J. 219 Sunningdale Conference 54-6, 90, 245 'supergrasses' 156-8, 213
'Ryan case' 208-10, 216, 248
Tebbit,N. 176 Sands, R. 146
Scarman Report Scott,
Thatcher, 24,
26
N. 141,148, 156,205,266
Shackleton Report 116-18, 151
Shaw,G. 141,160, 161,265
M.
141, 144, 145, 175-7, 194,
197,200,212,213,218,243 Thomson, G. 60 Thorne, S. 113 Townsend, C. 212
Sheerman, B. 203 Shepherd, R. 212
Treaty ports 10
Short, C. 203
Ulster Defence Association
(UDA)
194,
292
Index Unionist Task Force and Report 195
196,211 Ulster Defence Regiment
(UDR) 29-30,
104,110,158,177,219 Ulster Defence Regiment Act 1969 29 Ulster Special Constabulary
(USC) 6-7,
United Ulster Unionist Council 56, 90,
(UUUC)
96-8
Urban and Rural Improvement Campaign (URIC) 78
26 Ulster Unionist Party 53, 148, 150, 172,
Van Straubenzee, W. 83-4,
130, 265
Viggers, P. 221, 223, 227, 232, 266
194, 199
opposition to Prior initiative 148
response to 1980 Conference 144
Wells, P. 15
submission to Darlington Conference
Whitelaw,
talks with talks
with
Mason 100
SDLP
'Way Forward'
146
document 189 (UVF) 74, 109
Policy
Ulster Volunteer Force
Ulster Workers' Council
(UWC)
91,
46, 47, 53, 58, 64, 116, 151,
242 unemployment statistics (1971-74)
58, 90,
Wilson Report 3 1-2
Windlesham, Lord 46, 265
99
Youth Opportunities Programme (YOPs)
'Ulsterisation' 103, 109-10,
81;
(1974-79) 129; (1979-83) 165; (1985) 187
W.
153,154,176,245,265 Wilson, H. 17, 19, 23, 42, 43, 47, 91,93,244
48
129, 164
Youth Training Scheme (YTS) 164, 165, 224
Cunningham DA 990
Michael
J.
.U4
Br
BC86
illS
in Northern
Treland 1969-89
42.4025 C9
DATE
GET
DA 990 V4 BC86
r
c
World Affairs Council
ia
">-. M ichaei
of No. Calif.
Library
982-2541 312 Sutter
or
982-0430
St., Suite
200
San Francisco, CA 94108 DEMCO
1969 successive British governments have attempted to solve or contain the Northern Ireland 'problem'. This book provides a comprehensive and dispassionate account of the multidimensional policy approach pursued by successive Since
administrations.
The author examines
constitutional, security,
social policy over the last legislative
and
economic and
twenty years and the evolution of
institutional reforms in these distinct but related
areas. Constitutional initiatives, including the Anglo-Irish
Agreement, emergency legislation directed at political violence, attempts at economic regeneration, housing reform and fair
employment
legislation are
among
the areas covered.
Additionally, the conclusion deals with the degree of bipartisanship between the Conservative and Labour parties in policy-making and the changes in policy emphasis over the period. There
is
also a critical evaluation of existing
interpretations of
An
government
essential reference
politics, this will also
information for
all
work
policy.
for students of
Northern Ireland
provide an invaluable source of
those interested in the development of Anglo-
Irish relations, the politics of divided societies, public
administration and anti-terror strategies. Michael Cunningham
is
Lecturer in Politics at
Wolverhampton
Polytechnic.
ISBN D-7nQ-2SLA-0
Manchester University Press
780719"025686